MASTER NEGA TIVE NO . 92 -80623 MICROFILMED 1992 COLUMBIA UNIVERSITY LIBRARIES/NEW YORK „„ , . ^ as part of the Foundations of Western Civilization Preservation Project" >T . r^T^.r Funded by the NATIONAL ENDOWMENT FOR THE HUMANITIES Reproductions may not be made without permission from Columbia University Library COPYRIGHT STATEMENT pe copyright law of the United States - Title 17 United States Code - concerns the making of photocopies or other reproductions of copyrighted material ... Columbia University Library reserves the right to refuse to accept a copy order if, in its judgement, fulfillment of the order would mvolve violation of the copyright law AUTHOR: NETTLESHIP, HENRY TITLE: ECTURES AND ESSAYS PLACE: OXFORD DA TE : 1895 COLUMBIA UNIVERSITY LIBRARIES PRESERVATION DEPARTMENT BIBLIOGRAPHIC MICROFORM TARHFT Master Negative # Original Material as Filmed - Existing Bibliographic Record -l/«>^MnMa 370.4 N381 Restrictions on Use: Nettleship, Henry, 1839-1893. Lectures and essays, by Henry Nettleship ... 2d ser., ed. by F. Haverfield ... with portrait and memoir. Oxford, Chirendon press, 1895. xllll, 269, (1| p. front, (port) 20 cm. Bibliography : p. 255-266. Contents.— Preface.— Memoir by Mrs. Nettleship.— i. Johan Nlcolal Madvlg.— II. The ori^nnal form of the Roman satiira.— ill. Literary criticism in Latin antiquity.— iv. The historical development of classi- cal Latin prose.— v. The life and poems of Juvenal.— vi. The study of Latin granmiar among the Romans In the first century a. d.—vii. On the preseiit relations l)et\ve(»n claHslcal research and classical educa- tion in England.— VIII. The moral influence of literature.— IX. ClasHical ^ (Ck)Dtinued on next card) i50ki, 1—2936 y TECHNICAL MICROFORM DATA REDUCTION RATIO: FILM SIZE: 3.^2^ IMAGE PLACEMENT: lA (" IIA^ ]B IIB DATE FILMED: ^~£j5j(/f2^ INITIALS __r ^ -. HLMEDBY: RESEARCH PUBLICATIONS , INC WOOnnRIDGF7cT c Association for information and Image Management 1100 Wayne Avenue, Suite 1100 Silver Spring, Maryland 20910 301/587-8202 Centimeter 12 3 4 iiimiiiliiiiliiiiliiijliiiilinil LMl Inches T tt 5 6 liiiiliiiili 7 8 9 10 iiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiliiiiliiiiliiiiliiiiliiiiliiiili TIT 1 TTT 1.0 I.I 1.25 UiUUM I I I I 1.4 Ifi i^-^ 1 ^-^ |5^ III! — - 2.2 |»3 mz^ ^1 Itt tl£ 2.0 U lUUU 1.8 1.6 11 „l 12 13 14 15 mm I I I I I I I I I I I I I I 1 MfiNUFfiCTURED TO PIIM STflNDPRDS BY fiPPLIED IMRGE. INC. JL_*L«L«/ ^ &i -al . _Xi . Harrow), and Henry Smith. To the friendship of the latter and his sister he owed much in his early Oxford days, and this was renewed on his return to Oxford. For Mark Pattison and his wife (now Udy Dilke) he had a strong regard, which ripened into an intimacy that continued till the Rector of Lincoln's death, in 1884. To Mark Pattison, perhaps, was due not only the further development of his critical faculty, but wider views of scholarship. To John Conington he was drawn not merely by a sympathy of pursuits but by some- thing similar in their mental attitude towards higher and deeper subjects. He had attended the Professor's lectures and, being singled out as a promising young scholar, was in- vited to breakfasts, to walks, and to informal reading parties. The two soon became intimate friends, and in 1864 Conington asked his help in an edition of Vergil originally undertaken in conjunction with Prof. Goldn-in Smith, who had been called away by the Oxford Commission in 1854. Henr>' Nettleship undertook the last six books of the ^eneid, but finding he could not keep pace with Conington, it was settled that he should edit only Books X and XH. Towards the end of this year he had conceived the idea, supported by the Rector, of spending some time at a German University, in order to become acquainted with the German method of teaching classical philolog)-. His friend Mr. Clive having undertaken his college work for a term, he left Oxford for Berlin m April, 1865, furnished with introductions from the Rector to Prof. Emil Hiibner at Berlin, and Prof. Jacob Bernays at Breslau, and matriculated as an ordinary student at the Berlin University. His letters to the Rector have been preserved, and he describes his first impressions of a German scholar as follows : f * Bernays seems to have not only touched upon but VOL. II. Jj xvin MEMOIR. penetrated every branch of philology, and always brings a clear and comprehensive judgement to bear upon the matter in hand. In his build, manner, and in a certain toughness of mind which one seems to discern in him, he gives one the impression of a thorough Jew.' Hiibner he finds 'extremely edifying on intellectual matters.' He describes conversations with Bernays upon Spinoza, Greek scholarship, and scholars in England generally. Then upon *the English competitive examination fever,' of which Bernays speaks with strong disapprobation, saying that so far as it had been introduced into Germany it was spoiling the character of the young men. He seems to have found Bernays 'very stimulating, but like all talented men now, rather critical than constructive.' He goes on to say, ' I perceive that in Oxford we have hardly 'any idea of what is meant by knowledge of a subject either in itself or in relation to its surroundings. This is confirmed since I have begun to attend lectures here.' He describes a lecture of Moritz Haupt's on the Epistles of Horace and one of Hiibner's on Roman Inscriptions. ' How splendid it would have been to have lived in Germany thirty or forty years ago ; there seemed such a life in those times compared with anything we have now. I have been looking into a life of Robert Schumann, who was a student at Heidelberg in 1829; in what a ferment were men's minds then. He is full of mysticism and rhapsody, now everything is dead, the age of critics has succeeded that of artists and philosophers, we have great players but no composers Here one has a kind of feeling they have worked through what we are only feeling for in England, and that the " Aufschwung " has ceased and not much is left but the dust and ashes of materialism.' He writes a good deal about the political questions of the time ; of Mommsen's pamphlet on the annexation of Schleswig Holstein of the debates in the Chambers on the Budget,— 'one is astounded at the impudence of the Government and the appa- rent helplessness of the Opposition, who can only use ver>' strong language.' Again : ' What you say about the impossibility of STAY IN BERLIN. XIX applying the notion of progress to philology I now see to be true, unless a more distinct conception, and here and there a better adjustment of a skeleton, can be called progress.' Speaking of religion and men's conception of it, he says: 'We must choose between a ghost and a puppet : when shall we have a new and healthy symbolism ? One plunges into art, but that is not enough We have pretty well succeeded in emptying the old bottles, but where is the new wine ? ... I am so busy adjusting my skeleton that I have no time to look into philosophical books.' That he derived great delight as well as benefit from this stay in Berlin was evident not only from his letters but from the pleasure with which in later years he always referred to it. He did not make Mommsen's acquaintance at this time, but he heard him lecture, and also speak at the Archaeological Society, and conceived an immense admiration for him. At Hiibner's house he became intimate, constantly spending the evenings there in the enjoyment of music and conversation, which ranged, the professor says, over a variety of subjects. He left Berlin in August, 1865, filled with new ideas and enthusiasms, and feeling more strongly how imperfect was the Oxford ideal of that day, and how much lay before him if he ever hoped to accomplish anything worthy to be called 7t>ork. He not only appreciated German methods, but tried to make them the basis of his own. He some- times spent part of a long vacation on the continent, and the friends who accompanied him have happy recollections of those tmies, of his fresh enjoyment of everything— his geniality, unfailing good temper, and of his finding a humorous side to everything disagreeable \ Intense admiration for beautiful scenery, associated in him with love for music and poetry, at times made him long for Pressure of work has prevented Mr. Br>'ce from contributing, as he had hoped, some account of his long friendship with my husband. He writes of a summer tour in 1863: 'The days he and I spent together are often present to my mind. I wish I could adequately convey how great was the charm of his companionship.' b 2 XX MEMOIR. the power of adequate expression in melodies which floated in his mind. But this gift, to his great sorrow, was denied him, kept under, perhaps, by the continual pressure of the more practical necessities of life. In 1868 domestic anxieties were pressing upon him, and he felt he ought to find some post which would enable him to render his family more definite pecuniary assistance. His father's failing health compelled him to give up work : none of his brothers were likely for some time to be in a position to render any substantial help: he therefore turned his thoughts towards a mastership at Harrow, where there was a vacancy. He was concerned lest the Rector should misunder- stand his action, or think him neglectful of college interests in taking this step suddenly, and he therefore wrote to him confidentially, explaining his reasons at some length. This and other anxieties had told on his health, and for some months he had been low and depressed, and a suff*erer from sleeplessness, but a month in the Harz mountains with his great friend, Mr. Willingham F. Rawnsley, did much to restore him, and he went to Harrow in September, 1868. He first took a low form in the school, then shared the sixth-form composition with Mr. Westcott (now Bishop of Durham), and the Rev. E. M. Young (now Canon of Salisbury), and later on took a pupil-room. He was most conscientious in his school-work, sparing no trouble over any boy who showed the least desire for learning, and trying to implant in his pupils a love for classics. Yet school-work was always more or less distasteful to him, and he disliked the prevailing worship of athletics. He was certainly not cut out for a schoolmaster, though he endeared himself to many of his pupils by his kmdness and helpfulness, and was on terms of the friendliest intimacy with his colleagues. Shy and retiring in manner, and not shining in general conversation, he was an original and delightful companion in a icte a tet, or with one or two friends. He would plunge with startling abruptness into the subject uppermost in his MASTER AT HARROW. XXI own thoughts, and our first acquaintance began in this way at a dinner-party. Music was the subject, and I was struck with the clear and decisive opinion he had formed for himself of Beethoven's songs, differing much from that of the ordinary amateur. Conscious of his own defects of technique, he with characteristic determination put himself into Mr. John Farmer's hands, and set to work on a new system of piano-playing from the beginning. Henry Nettleship and my father were attracted to each other by similarity of opinions, each having a love of knowledge for its own sake, a width of intellectual outlook, and a certain impatience of the narrowing influences of a schoolmaster's life. This friendship deepened into warmer regard as time went on, and on our marriage in December, 1870, my husband became a real son of the house, sharing in all our joys and sorrows. It is an often-recurring expression in my father's letters to us both, 'I don't know anything that makes me happier to dwell on than the thought of your happiness.' The year before he had suffered a severe blow in the sudden death of Prof. Conington, and it was some months before his mind recovered its usual tone. He writes to the Rector of Lincoln on Oct. 25 : ' To me the loss is far more than I can at present estimate. It was not merely that he had taken a minute interest in everything concerning me, and that I had in return the deepest wish for his fuller development, but he and I saw (I think), without confessing it to each other, deeper into each other's souls than it is given to most friends to do : hence my desire to have been with him, or at least within call, during his last hours. I am at least glad to think that we recently exchanged confidences which indirectly concerned eternal interests; but I had not seen him for two or three months. It is diflficult at first in such a shock to keep one's hold on things here, and to remember that the mere space of fifty years or so is the utmost barrier that one can with any certainty count on as keeping one from the Great Presence into which one would almost fain follow at once a beloved soul.' XXll MEMOIR. Again, he speaks of Conington's intense craving for human sympathy as an impulse which materially injured his mental development, and diverted his powers from objects more worthy of them. ' Our last conversation and serious corre- spondence were upon this subject. ... I had urged him to undertake some really great work— not that I had any right to speak a loco superiore : it was the feeling of the same thing in myself which gave me some insight into his character.' Soon after we were married he said to me, ' I wonder if you know what a difference it makes in my work to feel there is someone who understands, to whom I can say everything : the old haunting feelings of uncertainty and distrust are gone : I can put my whole self into my work now.' And again, * I am so glad you are not ambitious : ambition would have paralyzed me : I should never do any good in my own line unless I were working for the work's sake.' In August, 1871, while he was engaged on the first edition of Conington's Persius, we went to Bonn, for the Beethoven festival held there that year. We spent the morn- ings chiefly in the University Library, he working, and I helping h.m to verify references, Prof. Bernays frequently coming in for half an hour's talk. The concerts were an intense enjoyment, and I well remember my husband's pleasure at finding some of our musical German friends sharing in his admiration of Charles Halle's playing. Beethoven's xNinth Symphony had quite a fascination for him, and for some years we never missed an opportunity of hearing it in England: each time he used to feel some part or other become clearer to him-it was impossible to take it all in at once. He read aloud a great deal at this period-the whole of Carlyle's Fredenck tne irreat among other books. ^nixu r TT'"^" ^' °"" "°'^^ °" ^""'•'' Books X and .MI. In ,873 he edited Books V and VI of the Aeneid for an abridged edition (Bell & Sons) In the spring of ,873 the late President, Mr. Wilson, came \t^SiVtmmAu JfA-l RETURN TO OXFORD. xxni to Harrow, to invite him to return to Corpus Christi College as Fellow and Tutor, in place of Mr. Hicks, who had married and taken a living. By arrangement with the Dean of Christ Church, his lectures and tutorial assistance were to be open to undergraduates at Christ Church who were reading for honours in Classical Moderations. He hesitated at first, as the prospect of succeeding eventually to a house mastership at Harrow of course offered greater pecuniary advantages. But there was no doubt as to which position was more congenial, as he could never hope for leisure for independent study at Harrow, so the offer was accepted, and neither of us ever repented of the decision. We came up to Oxford in October, 1873, and I think the next five years were, as far as work was concerned, perhaps the happiest of his life. He enjoyed the personal intercourse with responsive pupils, and they fully appreciated his help, as well as his never-failing sympathy. One says, * His method of teaching was a revelation : he had an unequalled power of interesting his pupils. He made me realize for the first time that Vergil and Horace were literature like Shelley and Byron. One felt he knew ancient literature as a whole, and in its relation with English and all modern literature. He was essentially inspiring, and put heart and soul into the things he taught : he was a real teacher, without the shadow of a trace of the pedant or pedagogue.' Another says, 'No one else ever taught me any scholarship.' Others speak of the influence of his private intercourse with his pupils, of the pains he took to help them before going in either for University scholarships or Moderations. He would get a man to his rooms, and finding out his weak points, make things clear to him, giving him lunch and playing on the piano after, till it was time to return to the Schools, refreshed physically and mentally ; or he would let men come to him for half an hour a week for consultation and advice as to their work. * He was always full of the most interesting information, of striking and original suggestions. The inspiring effect of XXIV MEMOIR. II these interviews was not easily to be forgotten." One of his former pupils has an affectionate recollection of a walking tour at the Ukes, 'of talks on Vergil and Beethoven, then of the future, and the question of ordination, a never-to-beforgotten help and influence.' Others of Sunday walks and talks at Oxford, of wise and friendly counsel, elder-brotherly interest in younger men, of happy healthful influence at a critical period of their hves. ' His manner in lecturing was quiet and reserved and at first was not felt to be impressive, but attention was soon compelled by the suggestiveness and originality of his remarks and he acquired a deep and lasting hold over the minds of the more receptive portion of his audience. He seemed to have at h.s command a storehouse of clear and scholarly comment and I lustration. Notes preserved on lectures of philology at that .me show how sound and clearly intelligible was the'Lching fn !dHV ^^'' '"''"'''' '^°"''"«^ '^^ ^^' interesting m addition to a minute criticism of the text, one day a week was given to a general review of the character and significan e of the Vergihan epic' Another pupil says, 'Mr. Nettleshin-! w.de and exhaustive knowledge, his enthu'siasm for aS tudies his sympathetic insight and brilliant fancy contributed to render this description of Vergil and his time a mode of or even playful ironv but hv th ^^'"^ '"^'^^^"^ work wit'; Ihat'r; hrdtemsZl: ?^"S '"' ''''"''' •ookedTittfJel T^^Dry-ottd'r' rT ''^^'"^ sight, Mr. ? I do.' ^ ''S'l rather hard at At Harrow he had little timo f^, i;. aJd(,,6 „„„, ,„ „„ •,"" '»' '■"•■y wort, l,,«„d PROFESSOR OF LATIN. XXV edition of Conington's Persius, as well as vol. iii. of his Vergil, he published Suggestions Introductory to a Study of the Aeneid (1875). His reading had been 'wide,' as recom- mended by Prof. Bernays, and now he was seeking some direction for future labours. An opening came in an invita- tion to prepare for the Clarendon Press a new Latin-English Dictionary, of about the same compass as the Greek Lexicon of Liddell and Scott. The idea approved itself to him, and he finally accepted the proposal, having first, as he thought, secured the co-operation of Prof. J. E. B. Mayor, and having reasonable expectation of assistance from younger scholars in Oxford. He had given a good deal of consideration to the question, and had taken the opinion of my father, and also of Prof. H. A. J. Munro, who was one of the friends with whom he was most in touch at this time. Mr. Munro was a frequent correspondent up to the time of his death in 1885, and always took great interest in the progress of the Dic- tionary. The book was to be completed by June, 1887, and m June, 1875, my husband set to work at it definitely. His aim, as expressed by himself in a letter to a friend, was not to revise or correct existing dictionaries, but to produce an entirely new work by fresh reading of the ancient texts and authorities, and moreover to arrange the references chrono- logically, so that the historical development might be clearly perceived. Had he fully foreseen at this time the difficulties of the work, and its complicated and laborious nature, he would not have undertaken it without at all events requiring a longer time for its completion. In 1878 he published an Essay on the Roman Satura ; and in June of the same year was elected to the Corpus Professorship of Latin Literature. It had been suggested to him after Conington's death that he should become a candidate for the vacant chair, but he had then declined to put himself in competition with Mr. Edwin Palmer (now Archdeacon of Oxford). Among the letters of congratulation that now poured in is one from Mark Pattison, who writes : ' Much more may XWI MEMOIR. » I congratulate ourselves on having got a philological professor whose mmd enshrines the ideal of complete knowledge Z progressive scence. The longer I live the more clearly I seen, o see that, without the inspiration of this ideal, nei.lL grL knowledge of the subject nor the most finish d scholarsht can contribute to true learning.' "O'arsnip In spite of his pleasure at the appointment, and at the Uicfonar), he was sorry to give up his tutorial work and :adres°T;tt^irr:V"'^^^°"^^^"-^ ''' -" he wri.s, .and ^^^ ^:i.^ ^^ ^^ ::^ to be d,rec.ly useful.' And again, ' ^Vhen one thinks of wh a Professor ought to be ! and how little even the stlge m n seen, ,„ get done towards accomplishing their deal ' St a! ^'k''' ■''"' ''= d-PP-"'-ent was proportion! pect he la !f " h" """" '""' "^ ^^°''--' '^ --t nt ''"dress as Tutor, unless his lectures were frimeH fnr .h. purposes of the Schonk tk^ .,■ ■ '"med for the system mid. ,> , , ^°"'i'"0"s of the examination ^jstem made it impossible for lecturers our of tK» „ j- beat to obtain many listener, • ,uT T ordinary being so great, an unS "d^, e ha7" ° .^""^P"'-^^ ^'^ own initiative Ii„f n! Y , ! "° '""^ '° ''""o"' his teaching, a d felf he H " ^^ " ^'^"""^'^ ^""'^ "^ hard to'reconcS hU^^r 3^1^ ^ '^ ^u""' " ' was not sufficient • he w.n,„^ """S^- Writing he could unfoM new deafas'.r'"'^' ""'"^"^ '° "■•'°- course of his own studies ' °''""'' '° '^™ '» 'f"= He gave public lectures on • Ancient r • on ' Textual Criticism in I J a '-"'^' °^ ^'^rgil,' Poetical E..press : 7n L^ ' " l"'"'""^':' ' "^^-^'"P--' o^ NatureinClassicalUtnX-'HiZT, °' ^"""" °^ ;Wnt Advances in Ut 'scholS sT'".''""^'""' Latin (.ammarians.' and others, som IT; p,,2'" °" '''^' ' ''-' "'" '""'- P"^"-'- ■■" the n^t ,e„, as IVORK AT OXFORD. XXVI I they appear in the Bibliography at the end of this volume, merely noting that in the Memoir of my father, the Rev. T. H. Steel (1882), he clearly expresses his own views upon classical education in schools. During the summer of 1882 he had an illness which, though slight in itself, might have developed into something more serious, and from the effects of which he did not recover for many months. It was then found that he suffered from a disease of the heart, and this accounted for much of the depression and fatigue he had at times experienced, for which there had seemed no apparent cause. This discovery could not be concealed from him, and at first naturally tended to increase the depression, against which, however, he strove so successfully, that beyond his immediate relatives and the medical men he consulted, no one was aware of the feeling or its cause. His great powers of physical and mental endurance were, however, heavily taxed, and companionship and sympathy became more than ever a necessity to him. He writes during a short absence from home : * When I am alone, I can't help my brain working, and thinking out difficulties in scholarship or metaphysics, and I get so tired.' Sir W. Gull confirmed the opinion that the affection of the heart might not prove fatal or indeed increase, provided he was careful to avoid overtaxing his physical or mental powers, and recommended him to think about it as little as possible, which advice after a time he partially succeeded in following. He had unwillingly to abjure lawn-tennis (any sudden exertion being dangerous), and also climbing, a favourite form of amusement, though he never had a very steady head. He taught his children to row, and took to this form of exercise again himself. For a short time he seriously contemplated giving up the projected Dictionary, and asking the Press to cancel the agreement, feeling the close consecutive strain too much for him. But in itself it interested him much, and he was always hopeful of obtaining further assistance : in the autumn there- XXVlll MEMOIR, fore he again set to work, meaning to devote himself entirely to it. But sustained mental effort in the evenings gave him sleepless nights, which unfitted him for the next day. He had never been able to work late; the morning he always felt to be his best and most productive time. He began half an hour before an eight o'clock breakfast, and at nine set to work again. Intervals between lectures were spent at the Bodleian at work on the Dictionary, part of the afternoon was given to lectures for the Women Students, and then he read at home till dinner-time. Of course he got most done in the vacations. He was with difficulty induced to take a few days' holiday at Christmas or Easter: in the long vacation he gave himself a month's rest, but even then his mornmgs were occupied with extra work which he could not fit in while at home. During the next few years he brought out new editions of the Vergil, adding much valuable matter in the shape of extra notes, besides several essays. He also published a collection of his own Lectures and Essays (Oxford, 1885), and a book on Lattn Frose Composition (London, 1887). This kind of work he did in the evenings, or at times when a buzzing in the head,' as he expressed it, warned him he must break off a while from the Dictionary. He was proud of the faculty-acquired, he said, at Charterhouse, where separate studies were luxuries confined to the Sixth Form-of so con- centrating his mind on his work that he was regardless of anything going on around him: so, preferring companionship to solitude, he would bring his work into the drawing-room and correct proofs, prepare lectures, and write reviews, without being disturbed by talking or even music. As relaxation he wodd read aloud, getting through all Dickens in this way, and he dinner. At the beginning of 1884 the Dictionary was growing into greater magnitude than even he proposed to himself, and a^ the same time hopes of expected aid were vanishing. Prof Mayor was absorbed in other work, and he sought in vain LATIN LEXICOGRAPHY. XXIX for the help needed, though he received some assistance from Oxford scholars, as he states in the preface to his Contribu- tions. He had set before himself a singularly high ideal; he did not care to aim at anything less than a complete lexicon of the whole I^tin language. He did not wish to give it up; his own inclination was to continue working at Latin lexicography, but it seemed quite clear that one man, practically unaided, could not accomplish such an undertaking in the time specified, and he had no reasonable hope of bringing it to a conclusion sooner than twelve years after the time originally agreed on. The Delegates, however, did not see their way to accepting this proposed extension of time, and he therefore continued working till June, 1887, when he sent to the Press all he had been able to accomplish, amounting to a tenth part of the entire book, viz. the whole of the letter A, and a number of articles under other letters. If he could have put all other work aside and given himself entirely to the Dictionary, his progress would have been much quicker. But one of the symptoms of the heart affection from which he suffered was restlessness and inability to remain long in any one position or at one form of work ; and to the few who knew how careful he had to be in husbanding the resources of his bodily health, and in avoiding prolonged mental strain, such concentration was known to be impossible, as the only result would have been a complete breakdown. He now and again made the attempt, with the result that no more was accomplished in a given time than when he varied it with other work. At times of great depression and discouragement, the only remedy was to divert his thoughts and energies into another channel. Could he have found a collaborateur all would have gone well. Then, again, he had begun to realize the uncertainty of his own life, and he was disturbed by the thought that for his children's sake he ought to have 'ndertaken work more directly remunerative. This idea required all my influence to combat, for I knew that the Dictionary work was congenial, that he had XXX MEMOIR. devoted h,s best powers to it, and that if he once persuaded himself he ought to work merely to make money, he would not produce what was worthy of himself or the position he occupied. His disappointment was so great at the failure of the undertakmg, and the apparent waste of twelve of the best and most productive years of his life (as the idea was not then suggested of publishing any part of his labours), that his he Ith seemed hkely to suffer without complete est and change. He at first thought of spending six months on the Contment, attackmg some fresh subject ; but when the time came he could not bring himself to remain so long away from Oxford and h,s work. He took, therefore, eight or nine wS real holiday m Germany, Switzerland, :Jl,.^y-TZToi great enjoyment to us all. On this occasion he first ^w two oThr/ifo ?h"t °" ''■"^' '' ''^'' ''^ greatest i^pTssin ?he L f S^p^pe! ^Sn ""V' 'T' '' ""'"■^^' '^' s£:tl2,^t tr'^y -^'-'l ■•" -^ealth and tL p ""^^'^^^00^. at the suggestion of the Delegates of or labour and :e"srhrt;d"u;::f '''''-' ''' "--' He felt bound houevlr^ n . .k f^ "'"''"''^ ''^^P^^d. request of the DeWa ' If fhe P " ' '''"' ''''"' '° '"« ieft unfinished by tl'e d ath MMH^r'''":''^ '''"''''' and friend-a subject for wh \^J' °"'' ^" "''^ P"P'' BERLIN REVISITED XXX i the careful and elaborate manner in which he proposed to deal with his author. Further work in this direction, however, had to be postponed for a year in consequence of a third edition of the Perstus being required. In January, 1892, a bad attack of influenza must have affected his heart, and he never entirely recovered from it. He found the next two terms unusually exhausting ; and determined to pass the autumn at Berlin, where he had decided to send his son to study music. He spent a week at Dublin first, during the celebration of the Trinity College Tercentenary, when he was granted the honorary degree of Doctor of Letters. In August we went to Switzerland, and he began to feel better, when, just as we were leaving, we received the terrible news of his brother Lewis's death on Mont Blanc. The awful shock, the long trying journey back to Chamounix, and the harrowing for- malities to be gone through there, told fearfully on his health and spirits ; and the effect was plainly visible afterwards in his altered appearance. It is impossible to describe adequately the kindness and hospitality shown us by friends, old and new, in Berlin. My husband's intimate knowledge of the German language and modes of thought gave him facilities he would not other- wise have enjoyed of discussion on various subjects, and of acquiring information on those which most interested him— philology, literature, politics and music. He renewed his old friendship with Prof. Hubner, and during this visit his acquaintance with Prof. Mommsen grew into friendship. The latter wrote after his death expressing his personal regret, and adding, * It leaves a gap in the good relations between your country and ours. I have never met an Englishman so able, and so willing to acknowledge the good and noble qualities of our people, and so equitable and kind in judging its many shortcomings.' His appreciation of the German character, of their intellectual freedom, of their methods as well as of their power of work, may be gathered from his letters to friends at home and, after his XXXll MEMOIR. I,'/ fi return, to friends in Germany : ■ An Englishman may be grateful to Germany if he learns from her the old true lesson of hi^h ^.mkmg and serious work. . . . What every open-minded Englishman feels when he comes abroad and uses his eyes ■s, that England is the land of linmations, " das enge Land " v^L,'' ' "' °''"^" ^"PP^"'' ^ "''"k in German. . . To a highly cultivated German the love of truth, the intellectual consaence ,s a stronger force and motive, as a rule, than to an Enghshman of equal force and ability. ... In Germany ttrSf u? "'"" "^ ""^ """""^^•^ °" "^^ °- --•'' During his stay in Berlin he was working at Ijtin glossaries ...tmg o.. two reviews, and revising tLnnalp ust Zl'^H '° ^^'"' °" J-^""^^ ^°- '«93. leaving to nend H- '''°P°""« '° ^""™ ^' faster. He wished to spend H.lary term with his mother, hoping in some measure to fill up the blank caused by his brother's deaA He was not really strong, and needed a longer rest and L could T ""^"""^ ''' ''"" '° -'-" ^lon but he could not bear to have it thought that he was negkctin^ .-r When I found-^him Jingrd Lmfrfror::,': "etl^ts^^^^^^^^ typhoM e r T ' '" T"" '° ^'"■°'d- '° l-^ =>" -"ack of term, from the strain of which hZ Tk • '^ ""'"^ "^ "'^ he would, howeve sJon h. '" '" '''' "'"^' ''^^"h. , iiuvNcver, soon have recovered His patience and fortitude never de^f^rt.A i • ^ • LAST DAYS. XXXlll could not bear the effort of listening when read to, he read a great deal to himself— works of fiction ; and later on, strangely enough, more serious books, one of the last he attempted being the latest volume of Frederick the Great's correspondence in French and German. He enjoyed Balfour's £ssays, and Prof. Dicey's Lea/> in the Dark, and was full of suggestions of argu- ments for the latter's use in the Unionist campaign then going on. The Persius had just come out, and he looked through this and directed me to send copies to friends at home and abroad. His sense of humour helped him through many of the wearisome details of an invalid's life when his mind was clear. I think he was never conscious of his own danger, as he made plans for lectures in the autumn, or, failing that, for the following term. If a shadow of anxiety crossed his mind it was dismissed with the assurance of his perfect trust in me. He made every effort for his own recovery, following all direc- tions implicitly, but, in spite of slight occasional gleams of hope, he grew gradually weaker ; his heart could not support the strain, and he had no strength to rally. In the last week he was carried out daily into the garden he was so fond of, and enjoyed the air, the singing of the birds, and the sunlight on the trees. But the end came sooner than was anticipated, and on the morning of July lo, 1893, he passed peacefully away. Henry Nettleship's death was a personal loss to very many beyond his family and friends. First, perhaps, among these may be counted the women students, for whom he had done so much. He had always taken interest in women's education, and as early as 1865 lectured on Latin to a class of ladies in Oxford, formed under the organization of Miss Smith ; lectures on other subjects being given by Mark Patiison, Mr. William Sidgwick, and others. In 1873, on his return to Oxford, he lectured on Greek and Latin under a different scheme; and in 1878 he assisted in organizing the ' Association for the Higher Education of Women,' being elected on the first committee. From that time onward he had the chief share in teaching VOL. II. c XXXIV MEMOIR. Latin to the Association students, who have expressed their warm appreciation of his unvar)'ing kindness and interest in their work, of his efforts to inspire them with his own earnestness and zeal for study, as well as with an enthusiasm for, and compre- hension of, the wider and more scientific view of scholarship. It was a general feeling that in some ways his place as a teacher could not be filled up. We had often talked in early days of how specializing might narrow and cramp the intellect ; and he was aware of this danger, for in a letter to Mark Pattison in 1SS3 he writes: * Your book *on Miltons sonnets) is a real refreshment to one who like myself lives in daily terror of being absorbed by philo- logical details.' As he grew oldt^r his interests widened; and it was surprising how he found time and energy to bestow on so many outside interests and to read so much of general literature, while apparently absorbed in the details of his own philological studies and research. But whatever he undertook he did well and thoroughly, whether in relation to his own work— for instance, as secretar\- to the Philological Society— or in an administrative capacity, as chairman to the East Oxford British School, where he never failed, unless prevented by illness, to attend committee-meetings, or take his turn as visitor for the month, hearing the lessons given and obsemng the discipline maintained. He had bestowed much reflection on the various labour questions of the day, the subject of Trades Unionism having attracted his atteniion as long ago as 1S67 as a means of raising the standard of work and wages. One of the first called upon to assist in forming a small Women's Trades Union in Oxford, he acted for several years as trustee of that Society. He was always ready to render assistance in anv way by speaking or lecturing, or playing the piano at the winter social gatherings, or giving advice on anv questions that arose concernmg the nunagement of the Society. * He was never happier,- writes the vicar of one of the neediest parishes in Oxiord, ' than when engaged in some effort for the uplifting and CHARACTERISTICS. XXXV advancement of the poor.' He was a member of the Teachers' Guild, and often spoke at the meetings. His last lecture, on Februar)' 17, 1893, was delivered to the Guild ; it was entitled * Three Months' Impressions of Berlin,' and he had given it at Toynbee Hall a few weeks before. To my great regret I have been unable to find the notes from which he spoke, I know they contained a resume of his observations on the social, political, and educational life of Berlin. For some years he was treasurer as well as one of the vice- presidents of the Oxford Philharmonic Society ; and took part as accompanist at the weekly evening practices, under Dr. James Taylor's conductorship. His feeling for music was a great part of his life. From the time that he could play at all, it was his refuge from all trouble or brain irritation. His enjoyment of great musical works was sometimes too keen to be unalloyed pleasure, the fatigue of trying to understand being too great. His chief favourites were Bach, Handel, Beethoven, and Mozart. Dr. Taylor writes : ' His musical ability was ver)' remarkable, and the attitude of his mind towards music was unique ; he appeared to be always search- ing for the expression of truth in music, rather than the mere recreative pleasure which generally satisfies amateur musicians. His steady consistent study of the works of John Sebastian Bach, and his strong though quiet expression of dislike to everjthing in music that did not reach the highest ideal standard of truth, will long be remembered by all those who knew him well.' His attitude towards Wagner may be best shown by quoting from a letter to a friend : * Wagner tries to make music do what it cannot do without degrading itself — namely, paint out in ver)- loud colours certain definite feeUngs as they arise before the composer. The older musicians seem to me to aim rather at suggesting feeling than at actually exhibiting it, as it were, in the flesh. I think much of Wagner would \-itiate my taste ; but perhaps ray head is too full of the older music to take in strains to which my nerves are not attuned.' c 2 XXXVl MEMOIR. Mr. G. A. Simcox says : * He was the most " musical " man I ever knew — always in tune, with an instinctive dislike of everything far-fetched and over-laboured. It was a pleasure to see him at the piano, though the music said little to me, for the sake of the light that played over his face.' I am indebted to Mr. L. R. Farnell for the following account of the part my husband took in questions affecting the welfare of his University. *He was always warmly in sympathy with the movement towards a wider academic organization for education and research ; but it was more in the latter years of his life that he took a prominent part in practical measures of reform. 'On his return to Oxford in 1873, an inter-collegiate scheme of lectures had already been established, and seemed likely to produce important results ; but though the organization of teaching was improved, the University, in respect of its higher studies and functions, was still far from attaining that academic ideal to which he was devoted, and in his conception of which he had no doubt been assisted by his residence at a German university, and by his intimate acquaintance with Mark Pattison's views on the subject. * He was desirous of perfect freedom for the study of every branch of science, and assisted by vote or speech the vital interests of physical science, when opposition was threatened by anti-vivisectionists, or advocates of the older classical r/gime. He aspired to see the professoriate become, as in Germany, a vehicle for the best teaching in each faculty. • He was anxious that the University should organize and encourage original work, and in his statement before the University Commission he says : ' " There is always a large amount of outlying work to be done in philology as, doubtless, in other subjects, which is not done because there is no direction to men to do it. The only encouragement for independent study is in the prizes, which are useless for the purpose. What is required is a permanent scientific committee with special departments, PUBLIC LIFE AT OXFORD, XXXVll whose business it should be to keep an eye on the work to be done, and to look out for men to do it. Has a MS. to be collated for a new edition, an inscription or unpublished document to be edited, an obscure piece of history or usage to be elucidated ? It should be in the power of those engaged in philological research to recommend to the committee a fit person to do the work at a certain sum." * The principle contained in these suggestions was also urged by others, and accepted by the commissioners ; but if some- thing more nearly approaching the organization of authoritative supervision of research than the Common University Fund had been established, a new stimulus would have been given to the teaching activity of the professoriate. * He also pleaded the cause of the Non-Collegiate Students before the Commission, proposing better arrangements for their tuition, and showing his sympathy with their needs, and desire for a freer University system than the Collegiate. The reform suggested was shortly after carried out. ' The chief public questions in which he took a leading part were concerning the administration of the Bodleian, and the establishment of a School of Modern language and Literature. With regard to the former, he advocated a more concerted action between the Bodleian and other Oxford libraries, and urged the importance of remembering that the Bodleian was a learned library, and should be administered as such. The part he took in the debates on the subject was prompted by a scholar's profound interest in a great institution. With regard to the Modern language and Literature School, he was the first to moot the proposal in a suggestion offered to the com- missioners—that the chair of Anglo-Saxon might be profitably connected with a chair of Teutonic language and literature. In 1886 he was one of those who memorialized Council in favour of the proposal brought finally before Congregation. In the debate that followed he delivered a telling speech, in behalf of a School of Modern Languages that should give equal weight to philology and literature. He went so far as C3 ■ ■'^a«a!.Jtiff tAjfi XXXVlll MEMOIR. to maintain that the rejection of the measure would be " a national calamity." The votes were equal ; therefore the measure was lost. ' In a pamphlet published shortly afterwards he pleaded more effectually still for a University curriculum of the study of Modern European T languages and Literatures. It contains, perhaps, the most brilliant exposition that appeared, in the course of a long controversy, of the reasons in favour of the reform ; and it gives a clear illustration of his liberal and practical ideal of study. It triumphantly refutes the objection that the study of Greek and Latin literature would seriously suffer : " What has done harm to * classics ' — always in danger, but never destroyed — is the narrow conception of their scope sometimes entertained, and the supercilious attitude sometimes adopted, by their own champions ; the notion that a sound acquaintance with a score of good Greek and Latin books, and the trick of writing good composition, are enough to make a scholar : the notion that scholarship as limited as this, and nothing else, gives its possessor the key of culture — as though culture were not rather a habit of mind than the possession of a certain amount of valuable knowledge." 'Still more weighty is its exposure of the shallow fallacy, that the cultivation of philology would be prejudicial to the study of literature. In conclusion, he expresses his belief, that though a larger scheme might be more adequate to the proper requirements of a University, "what the nation most pressingly feels, is the need of a School of the English Language and Literature." And he could find no argument that supplied "a justification for our refusing to grant what it is not too much to call a well-founded national demand." ' He would have rejoiced, had he lived, to see the successful accomplishment of one at least of the schemes he had so much at heart.' Whatever he undertook he carried through with the same thoroughness and grasp of detail that characterized his own work. He could do nothing half heartedly. * He had an INTELLECTUAL INTERESTS. XXX IX extraordinarily high standard of work,' writes Mr. W. A. Price an intimate friend, though many years his junior ; * what was worth doing must be done well or not at all ; no labour was too great to bestow on good work ; no work was good if the workman could have done better. He strongly con- demned shallowness and charlatanism, though I can scarcely recall his speaking severely of any one ; and he often objected to criticisms of other people, on the ground that it was difficult to put yourself in their place.' Mark Pattison he described as one of the few men in Oxford at that time who understood the meaning of hard work and firstrate workmanship. He was singularly unassuming as regarded his own claims to distinction as a scholar, though he was as far removed from the affectation of humility, as from conceit or vanity. He had the strange opportunity of reading for himself what was said of him in the newspapers, under the impression that it was he, and not his brother Lewis, who had perished on Mont Blanc, on August 25, 1892. His only comment was, * I think I have been overrated. I could have given a truer account of myself; I know the exact extent of my own powers.' He was now and again haunted by a dread that the physical weakness which at times oppressed him, might show itself in a diminution of his powers of thought or expres- sion. But it was not so. Those best able to judge saw the maturer years bringing ripeness, not only in judgement but in work ; and in his last illness he was cheered by the thought that the specimen just printed of the work he had undertaken on Nonius showed no falling off from his own scholarly ideal. He might have published more had he not been so fastidious. He wished to be absolutely sure of every detail, and shirked no toil, however dry or irksome, that would exhaust all that had been said or written on any particular subject ; thus making others feel 'the dignity belonging to the specialist and the beauty of doing work thoroughly.' But he never 1 xl MEMOIR. IN PRIVATE LIFE. xli allowed himself to become absorbed in dry technicalities. His lexicographical studies were all means to an end, and made subservient to higher aims and objects as throwing light on history and literature. For many years he had made a special study of the Latin grammarians. This, and his researches into Glossaries were originally undertaken with a view to a History of the Latin Language. It was a matter of regret to many that he had not chosen philosophy rather than classics for his object in life. One speaks of ' learning more from conversations with him on difficult philosophical problems, that was instructive and valuable, than from those who made philosophy their study.' He always retained a certain directness of speech, and in meeting even a casual acquaintance would plunge at once probably into what was uppermost in his own thoughts or into some subject likely to interest his companion. He was not latterly a great letter-writer, but would at times express himself to close friends with clearness and conviction on subjects occupying his own mind. An intimate friend relates that one day conversing un- reservedly on the difficulty of reconciling the evil and suffering in the world, with a belief in the government of it by a perfectly good and benevolent Spirit, while rejecting the current commonplace solutions of the problem, he yet expressed his unshaken belief in God's goodness, quoting the words, ' Though He slay me, yet will I trust in Him.' He had a constitutional dislike to dogma, and was strongly opposed to tests, desiring perfect freedom of thought and inquiry in all matters of religion. ' He once,' says Mr. Price, ' expressed his opinion that he would sooner trust the scientific men than the ecclesiastics, if it were necessary to confide the custody of the accepted ideas of morality or ethics to any one body of men, on the ground that truth is only safe in the hands of those whose business it is to examine and verify it, and who are free from any formal profession of faith.' Yet he had a deep religious vein in his nature, and a strong belief in the superior power of good over evil, and he could not tolerate the persistent upholding of the opposite theory by some of the realistic writers of the day. In a lecture on * Ideals,' he declares : * " You cannot escape the devil and the beast that is in you, a compound of selfishness, cruelty, and lust," say pessimism and the novel of Zola ; " you cannot escape the better part, the angel within yourself," replies the sane wisdom which in the long run governs the course of the world.' Of this same lecture, delivered at Toynbee Hall, Oct. 1 7, 1 89 1, Mr. Price says, * It greatly impressed the audience by its originality and individuality. After pointing out that even the most elevated ideals are not necessarily unattainable, he showed that in mechanics and literature, for instance, ideals might be realized, giving examples. And then he went on to argue that ideals of conduct could also be attained, that the Sermon on the Mount was a set of severely practical rules, and that some men and women did actually lead lives in which only themselves could find the flaws. In art, on the other hand, or in any pursuit where the standard aimed at was not erected solely by human intelligence, but by natural causes, the ideal was not generally to be attained.' Henry Nettleship's own life may be said to have been consistently true to its early promise. The love of truth showed itself not only in the most scrupulous exactness in ever>' detail of life, but in his 'anxiety before all things to learn the completest truth at whatever cost, and in his eagerness to save those whom he taught from the tolerance of any unreality.' As a youth he gave the impression of being reserved rather than shy, of possessing much latent force, of holding back his opinions and gathering those of others about him not from any conceit or self-consciousness, but as if waiting to be sure of his own powers. Years brought an increase of self-confidence, and in his complete forgetfulness of self, and desire to put other people at their ease, the shy reserve of the young man developed into the genial cordiality now remembered as his xlii MEMOIR. IN PRIVATE LIFE, xliii characteristic manner. .'The warm grasp of the hand, the hearty tone of the greeting, made one ahvays feel at home again in Oxford.' It was the same thing in his own house. * It was impossible to be shy or stiff: he would tell some ridiculous story that made one feel at home in a moment.' His sense of humour was keen and delicate, and often, by some witty remark, he would give an unexpected turn to a con- versation that threatened to become too serious. He told anecdotes well, having a retentive memory, and a knack of reproducing other people's gestures and intonation. His naturally buoyant elastic temperament, which showed itself in a certain childlike lightheartedness, enabled him quickly to throw off depression or fatigue, and then he would invent rhymes or pour out a torrent of puns and jokes, till every one was infected with his high spirits. He wrote a good many parodies and jeux d'esprit in prose and verse, some of which were privately printed, but the secret of their authorship never divulged. It is difficult to write of his devotion to his own home, which he so seldom cared to leave, of which he was the very life and centre, or of the wealth of affection he lavished on his children. He was their playfellow and friend from their earliest years, sharing in every feeling of joy or sorrow, entering into the simplest pleasures with the keenest enjoy- ment, and putting spirit into every- undertaking. He was gifted with that rare unselfishness, which, while preferring the needs of others, made it appear that he was gratifying his own. His clear moral perception and directness of purpose made his advice valuable ; and his intense power of sympathy gave him an instinctive insight into the troubles and per- plexities of others. In the words of his old pupil, colleague, and friend. Prof Dill :_. After all, the Nettleship one loves to remember is not so much the great scholar, the man of delicate literary tastes the idealist, as the generous and tolerant friend, the delightful companion, who so readily recognized what was good in others, who had the most critical and fastidious intellect, combined with a profound reverence for noble character or great gifts, who saw the littleness of ordinary life without contempt, and realized the possibilities of the future with untroubled faith.' M. Nettleship. I I. JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG^ (PUBLIC LECTURE, MAY 21, 1887.) The death of a great master in scholarship is an event which invites those whose calHng imposes upon them the duty of following, at however great a distance, along the path of advance in which he has led the way, to pause and recall with gratitude his tokens of command. A remarkably long life, passed, to all appearance, in good health and even fortune, and during the greater part of it with every circum- stance to favour the vigorous development of his great gifts, — such was Madvig's allotted course, ending in a peaceful death on December 12, 1886. So long a career bridges over the interval between the learning of the beginning and that of the end of the nineteenth century. The two periods have dif- ferent characteristics. Madvig's mind was, if ever there was one, a mind independent of its surroundings. But in ex- amining the character of his work we shall probably be led to confess that he belonged on the whole to the earlier rather than to the late period ; that his strength lay rather in power of combination, in massive penetrating intelligence, and ' [In a preliminary paragraph, here omitted, Mr. Nettleship acknow- ledged obligations to articles on Madvig contributed to the Berliner Philo- logische VVochenschrift (Feb. 5 and 12, 1887) by M. C. Gertz, formerly pupil of Madvig and now Professor of Classics at Copenhagen, and to the late Mr. Vigfusson, Reader in Icelandic, who was personally acquainted with Madvig.] VOL. II. B 2 JOHAN NICOLAl MADVIG. inexorable logical acumen, than in the patient inexhaustible industry, spending itself on the collection of facts, with which we are familiar as the main literary feature of our own time. Johan Nicolai Madvig was born at the little town of Svaneke in the island of Bornholm, on August 7, 1804. Mr. Vigfusson tells me that in speaking he never lost his Bornholm accent. His father, like his grandfather and great- grandfather, was clerk to the court of the town and district. The profits of the office were small, and the child had to work for his living. From his eleventh year he used to help his father with the law-books. It is curious that, in the case both of Madvig and of Mommsen, a certain amount — in Mommsen's case a considerable amount — of legal study should have been the introduction to an illustrious philological career. The influence of this study on Mommsen, who carried it a great way, is, I need hardly say, strongly marked. It must have early implanted that belief, which it is his signal merit to have justified and enforced, that to understand a nation's history you must have mastered its law. It must have encouraged him to form his characteristic method of basing Roman institutions upon logically developed legal ideas. It would be absurd to say that the solidity and clearness of Madvig's understanding was the offspring of his boyish familiarity with law : but that it was nourished by it — for he was a very precocious boy -there can be little doubt. And Prof. Gertz remarks that Madvig always retained a strong interest in law, besides exhibiting in his writings, and still more in practical life, a good deal of legal acumen. His father's wish had been that Johan should succeed him in his office, and the education of the child for this purpose had begun, when his father died in 1816. He was then, by the assistance of private friends, sent to the school of Fried- riksborg in Seeland, where he soon outstripped his companions. In 1820, at the age of sixteen, he went up to the University of Copenhagen, and took his degree in 1825. A month after- wards there appeared an edition of Garatoni's notes on the JOHAN MCOLAI MADVIG, orations of Cicero, edited by five students of Copenhagen. One of these was Madvig, two others, his friends Henrichsen and Elberling. Cicero was his early love. In the following year (1826) he published, as a dissertation for the degree of M.A., emendations in the text of the Be Legibus and the Academica. About this time Thorlacius, the professor eloquentiae (or I suppose of classical philology) left Copenhagen on a two years' leave of absence, and Madvig was appointed to fill his place. That there should have been no older man eligible for such a post is significant as to the then condition of learning at Copenhagen. Madvig was not long in justifying his appointment. In 1828 he wrote his celebrated Episiola Critica ad Ore/Hum (Orelli was at that time the great authority upon Cicero) on restoring the text of the last two Verrine Orations. He also produced a dissertation for the doctor's degree on Asconius and the other ancient Commentators on Cicero. F^inally in 1829 (aetat. twenty-five) he was, on Thorlacius's death, advanced to the chair of professor eloquentiae in the University of Copenhagen. From this time onward, for fifty years, his life was almost entirely devoted to academical work : almost entirely I say, for he was elected to the Danish Parlia- ment in 1839, and from November 1848 till July 1851 he was Minister of Public Worship under the National Liberal Govern- ment. He was also for many years librarian of the University, and from 1848-1874 Inspector of Schools. To these peaceful and, I shall suppose, not exhausting occupations he added some political activity. From 1848- 1874 he was a member of the Danish diet, and from 1 856-1 863 President of the Reichsrath (Council). For some ten years Madvig confined his studies almost entirely to Latin. His position diS professor eloquentiae imposed on him the duty of writing a number of short papers as academical programmes. Two volumes of these dissertations he published in 1834 and 1842 under the title of Opuscula Academica. Among these an essay on the Roman colonies has perhaps made the most permanent mark, though others are B 2 JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. more interesting as showing the young man's brilliant critical talent. A text of twelve select orations of Cicero, published in 1830, has gone through seven editions. At the same time he contributed a good deal to his friend Henrichsen's edition of the De Oratore, In 1835 he edited the De Senectute and Laeiius : in 1839 the De Finibus : and in 1840 came the first edition of the Latin Grammar. A period now follows during which Greek takes the place of Latin. In 1846 appeared his Greek Syntax, enlarged in 1847 by Remarks on some points of Greek syntactical construction. After 1 85 1, when he retired from the Ministry of Public Worship, he returned with ardour to his study of Livy, and in i860 published the great work on which, with the De Finibus, his fame rests and will rest, the Fmendationcs Liviatiae. Then followed (1861- 1866) the edition of Livy undertaken jointly with Ussing. In 1 87 1 he published, under the title of Adversaria Critica, the first volume of a collection of his scattered notes, prefaced by a general introduction on the causes of corruption in Greek and Latin manuscripts, and on the ascertained rules of critical method. The first volume contains emendations on Greek texts. The second, with emendations on Latin texts, appeared two years later, and a third volume in 1884. In 1875 he brought out a small volume of short philological essays of miscellaneous contents, written in German. From this time onwards he worked under the heavy affliction of almost total blindness. This did not, however, hinder him from com- pleting his two volumes on the Constitution and Administration of the Roman Empire (1881-1882). Whatever faults may be found in Madvig's work, and it has undoubtedly faults, it has always the characteristic of a sound humanity. The whole man is there : it is not a fragment of a mind, or a half-grown mind, which we see active before us. This fact is no doubt mainly attributable to the genius of the man, independently of circumstances ; but there are one or two facts to be noticed which may have assisted the develop- ment of this genius. Madvig, having lost his father young, was JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. 5 thus early thrown on his own resources ; and his teachers at the University seem to have been men of little mark ^ He told Professor John Mayor ^ when the two scholars met at Leyden in 1875, that he was self-taught. To this fact may partly be due a certain simplicity and wholesome independence which is never lacking in Madvig's writings. Again, not merely had he no great teacher, but, like all scholars in this century out of Germany, he was uninfluenced by any definite philological tradition. The absence of such a tradition, of a discipline embodying the principles by which historical and philological evidence must be weighed, has been responsible for much waste of labour in the countries which have suffered from it, notably in our own. Even Madvig, as we shall see, did not altogether escape its bad influence. But to a mind like his it perhaps did as much good as harm. He had a natural eye for the lie of the country ; the instinctive grasp of the features of the region to be explored. This free gift of genius was perhaps, by being left free, more robustly developed. He was soon to give brilliant evidence of its existence. There is no greater test of genius in a scholar than the power of discerning at a glance between w^hat is ancient and what is not. In 1828 Madvig once and forever distinguished between the genuine commentaries of Asconius and those of the Pseudo- Asconius, which belong to the fourth century, on Cicero, and gave an account, almost exhaustive, of the history of these commentaries from the time when Pogio first brought them to light. In his twenty-sixth year (1829) he availed himself of a chance which had offered itself three years before (1826). it had been known that a short Latin Treatise on Ortho- graphy bearing the name of Apuleius was in existence some- where in the libraries of Europe. Quotations from a Caecilius Minutianus Apuleius De Orthographia had been given by » His contemporaries, Lachmann, Ritschl, and Haupt, all came more or less under the influence of Godfrey Hermann. Mommsen, like Madvig, seems never to have been influenced by any great scholar. * Classical Review y i. 124. 6 JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. Caelius Rhodiginus in his Antit/uae Lectiones. Achilles Statius bad given one on Catullus, and the book had also been used by other scholars, as Gyraldus, Ursinus, and Carrio \ Cardinal Mai, then librarian of the Vatican, set about to find the original from which these quotations were taken. He dis- covered, in the Riccardian library at Florence, and also in the \'atican, copies of a meagre work on orthography in two books, bearing the simple name of Apuleius. Afterwards, in the Vallicellian librar)- at Rome, he found fragments, written in the hand of Achilles Statius, of three books bearing the name of Lucius Caecilius Minutianus Apuleius. In these fragments he found the citations used by Caelius Rhodiginus, or rather some of them. Mai jumped to the conclusion that in these frag- ments he had found the true Apuleius, and that the smaller book was a false Apuleius. In 1823, accordingly, he edited these fragments, with parts of Symmachus, Julius Victor, and the fragments of ante- Justinian law. The so-called Apuleius was edited again, three years later, by Osann, a professor at Giessen, who agreed with Mai in thinking that the shorter Apuleius was a mere extract from the larger, and that the author of the latter lived not long after Cassiodorus, at the end of the sixth century a. d. The book imposed upon Grotefend, and upon Baehr the historian of Roman Literature. Madvig was the first to point out (i) that the work must have been written some centuries after Cassiodorus, mainly because it gives rules for spelling such names as Heinrich and Humbert, Guazzo and Guido. (2) That it mentions an extraordinary farrago of Greek and Utin authors, some of whom had never before been heard of, and some works entirely new to the history of Latin literature' as the Bellum Puniaim of Xarro Atacinus, Latin scholia on Aristophanes and Pindar, and other such miraculous phe- nomena : notably a line of Calvus about the verses of Vergil. '_ The dates are Statius' Catullus. 1566 ; Ricdueri of Rovigo Rhodiginus\ >i^f i!4^iS^ ^479-155^; Orsini, ,530-1600; Camon, 1547-595; / JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. 7 (3) That of the names of Latin poets mentioned, twenty-three are identical with those found in a list of tw^enty-seven given by Ovid in the sixteenth epistle of the fourth book Ex Ponto, while they are no more than names to the Pseudo-Apuleius. These and other facts of a similar kind led Madvig to pronounce the book a forgery, or perhaps a jeu (T esprit, of the Italian re- naissance, produced (say) between 1430 and 1500. The title, he thinks, was simply borrowed and enlarged from the smaller (and genuine) Apuleius. Jhis little paper, now printed as the first of Madvig's Opuscula Academica, blew the structure of Mai and Osann to atoms. It was quite sufficient to place its author in the first rank of philologists ; and will still be read with enjoyment by scholars who like sound argument, and who wish to appreciate the acquaintance, extraordinary in so young a scholar, which Madvig showed with all the facts essential to a successful exploration of this obscure corner of literary history. I mentioned above that in 1830 he edited a text of twelve select orations of Cicero. The preface to this book, which showed extraordinary tact in dealing with manuscripts, even when their readings and mutual relation were partially or imperfectly known to him, is now printed, with other papers on the orations of Cicero, in the Opuscula. The touch of the master you feel everywhere, as well as his consciousness of his power and position. I learn from Mr. Vigfusson that Madvig was always poor, his salary being small and his books bringing him but very little profit. Hence he never travelled, and had far less opportunity than many scholars of seeing MSS. with his own eyes. Many then of his emendations are based on an inspec- tion of printed reports of MSS. This fact must enhance the admiration with which his skill in dealing with texts is universally regarded. It was his edition of the De Finibus (1839, 1869) that was to bring out his genius in its full light before the eyes of the learned world. To understand the full importance of the 8 JOHAN NICOLAl MADVIG. Step taken by Madvig, we must go back fifty years, and realize what was then the position of critical scholarship. I need hardly say that no competent scholar would now under- take to edit a classical author without first forming a clear notion what manuscript material he had to deal with, and what was the relation of his manuscripts one to the other. He would try to determine approximately the nature of the original or originals from which they were derived, and their comparative excellence as adequately or inadequately repre- senting that original. He would unhesitatingly reject the evidence of all which were proved to be mere copies of a better copy still in existence. He would, in short, sift his evidence, relying only on what was primary, and rejecting what was secondary and dependent. Some one has said that, after Ritschl, any cook's boy could learn philological method.' I am not sure of that, but undoubtedly things which we have now come to think obvious were not obvious in 1839. In 1824 Peyron had pointed out the true way in his edition of the palimpsest fragments of some of Cicero's speeches The torch was handed on to Madvig, Lachmann, and Ritschl Madvig s way of putting the matter, in the preface to his Be Finibus, is as follows : * If a judge, in hearing a number of witnesses giving evidence on the same fact, had reason to believe that the testimony of one or more of them was derived from that of any of the others, his first endeavour would be to separate the first hand from the second hand evidence, which he would reject as immaterial. Or, if he had before him several copies of a will the ongmal of which was lost, he would try to find out vv;hether any of these copies were copied from one of the rest Ihis IS very much what the scholar has to do in dealing with manuscnpts : to determine, among a number of copies, which (If any are copied from the rest, and what was the original or origmals of all.' ^ ° The text of the />. Finibus was in confusion. Neither had the manuscnpts been rightly quoted, nor had any attempt JOHAN NICOLAl MADVIG. 9 been made to determine their relative value. The most recent edition, that of Goerenz (1831) had made confusion worse confounded by false reports of the manuscript readings, and careless and incompetent work of all kinds. The first thing Madvig did was to classify the manuscripts and ascertain the readings of their archetype : the second, to make such conjectural emendations as seemed certainly called for by the requirements of Latin usage : the third, to write a sound explanatory comment. The three parts of this difficult task wer.e performed in a manner which made the edition a classical one, both as an introduction to critical method and as a store-house of information upon Cicero, as a stylist and as a philosopher : not to speak of the numerous incidental lights thrown upon important points of Latin usage. Madvig's defect as a writer both in Latin and German is cumbrousness. But he has a merit that more than counter- balances this fault of style. This is his power of placing clearly before the reader, in a short space, a statement of the problems with which he has to deal in their general and special bearings. His own method of emendation, so brilliantly successful in the case of Cicero and Livy, is, for instance, thus expounded in the preface to the JDe Finibus (pp. xlvii-1). 'The first thing to be asked in the case of a conjectural correction is whether it is necessary : A fault must be proved to demonstration before a remedy is attempted. A fault can be proved to exist either by the evidence of good manuscripts, or by the exigencies of the construction, and of the sense, or by all of these. In exacting these conditions, I endeavour to restore not necessarily what is absolutely right, but what Cicero might (whether correctly and elegantly or not) have written, and what the evidence and the reason of the thing show that he did write. Scholars are too strict in requiring that the construction shall always be absolutely correct. They adhere too closely to their grammatical manuals, and forget the general nature and conditions of human language. In this general nature and conditions, 'tV 'Ui % ^-w.-* lO JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. ancient languages do not differ from modern. It is a mistake to suppose that an ancient writer was never careless or ambiguous. When the question is raised of the correctness of an expression, or of its existence at a particular time, we shall have to consider what degrees of transition there may have been between the expression and ordinary usage. If it is a ease of license or carelessness, attention must be paid to the occasion for such license which may have been offered by legitimate usage. In following up these points, I have come to regard some hitherto accepted expressions as doing intolerable violence to Latin forms, and therefore impossible ; while I have defended some carelessness of expression as possible in Cicero. For it is mere superstition to imagine that he always wrote at the highest pitch of perfection Keeping these considerations in mind, a scholar may proceed to the work of restoring the text : that is, to restoring the readings pointed to by the evidence of the manuscripts and the requirements of meaning and construction. A prudent critic will see that in some cases the restoration of the words is possible, in others, that the general sense, but not the words, may be recovered, in others, that nothing can be done. The scholar who follows in this line will be able to correct corrupt texts with confidence. Before making a conjecture, he will remember that moderation is, in scientific work, a sign of wisdom. I say this by way of protest, on the one hand agamst the habit of throwing out groundless conjectures, on the other hand against the silly superstition which holds that manuscripts are infallible.' In 1840 appeared the first edition of the work by which Madvig is still, I suppose, most commonly known, his Latin Grammar. This work has passed through many editions and has been translated into several languages. For a long time indeed, it was the standard school Latin Grammar in Europe and America. The period treated is, on the whole, that of classical Utin. The great merits of the book are its clearness and grasp of the subject within the limits which the writer set JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. II himself; its power of analysis, and its command of classical usage. In the present state of knowledge it seems to me very doubtful whether so good a book could be written in so short a compass. As in every other study, so in that of grammar, the historical method now holds the field ; we work inevitably by the theory of evolution. Usages must be traced from their source downwards : from the oldest monuments to the time when the language decays and dies. Forms must be analysed in the light of comparative philology. And, as if all this were not enough, the peculiarities of separate authors must be mastered and embodied. No one has as yet succeeded in producing a Latin Grammar which satisfactorily fulfils all these conditions, though it is tolerably certain that, sooner or later, the task will be accomplished. That it should even have been conceived in 1839 is hardly possible. The task which Madvig set himself, to give a clear and logical account of the usages of the best Latin authors, he performed admirably, and threw much new light on several difficult questions. Though his point of view is superseded, no scientific student of grammar can yet afford to neglect him. For some years, as the Opuscula amply testify, Madvig had been studying Livy, and in 1834 had read through all the remains of that author. From 1848 to 1851 he had been taken from his studies — unfortunately, as I gather from Mr. Vigfusson, for all concerned — to the Ministry of Public Worship. In 185 1, when he returned to his books, a com- bination of circumstances, partly accidental, determined him to try what he could do for the whole of Livy's remains. He had already received a complete collation of the Vienna MS., the only MS. of the last five books. In four years — and working only in leisure hours — he had ready a set of notes on the whole text. His friends urged him to put these together and publish them in a collected form. Others wished him to go further and edit the text, embodying not only his own emendations, but such old readings as he thought had been wrongly rejected by recent editors. From this task he at 12 JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. present shrank, partly owing to its magnitude, partly because Alschefsky had already begun, and Weissenborn already completed, a text of Livy; partly because he wished and hoped to turn to what he thought more important studies. How often has a scholar to do this : instead of dashing at the mountain for his own pleasure, to make a road for posterity over the marshes and boulders at the foot. The philosopher says that he has no power of thinking, and the literary man, that his mind is absorbed with details. The lighter work, however, of collecting and publishing his own emendations,— some of which, as was natural, had been anticipated by Kreyssig and Weissenborn,— he undertook; and the result was the first edition of the Emendationes Livianae in i860, the second in 1877. In the preface to this work he goes much nearer than he had done in the De Finibus towards giving a general account of the more obvious causes of corruption in Latin manuscripts which meet the scholar in his attempt to restore a text. His problem indeed was some- what different from that which he had had to solve in the case of Cicero. He had now to deal with an author whose text, in the hands of recent editors, had suffered not from gross care- lessness or inaccuracy in the reports of MS. readings, but from a superstitious adherence to the MS. tradition. The commonest mstance of this was the insertion or omission of the letter m at the end of nouns -producing absurd confusions between the accusative and ablative cases. So far had this gone that Alschefsky, Weissenborn, and Hertz had edited in medio sarctnas coniciunt (10. 36. i) for in medium, while Alschefsky did not scruple to print in lapidem consedit. Much was done by Madvig, not only in the way of clearing up the relations of the MSS. to each other, but by exploding these and similar ineptitudes : much more by his own brilliant emendations, the genius of which, as they succeed each other in long order, is astonishing, while many are absolutely certain. To have restored, or done much towards restoring, the text of Livy, is Madvig's unquestioned glor>'. It would be difficult to exaggerate JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. 13 either the importance of the work, or the learning, acuteness, and genius required for it. The edition of Livy, in which Ussing was associated with Madvig, followed in the few years succeeding 1861. In 187 1 Madvig brought out the first volume of his Adversaria Critica^ or miscellaneous emendations in Greek and Latin texts.^ This is a work of unequal merit. The introductory chapter, on the general causes of corruption in manuscripts, is, so far as I know, the only attempt at a comprehensive treatment of the subject. It would, indeed, gain by more actual demonstration from the admitted mistakes found in the manuscripts them- selves. Madvig confines himself mainly to cases which in his strong opinion require emendation. There are really plenty of instances in which there can be no doubt in any one's mind. Such instances may be found by scores by any one who will take the trouble to examine the numerous apparatus critici now generally accessible, such as Ribbeck's to Vergil or Ritschl's to Plautus. In these one can trace the whole process of corrup- tion, whether by confusion of letters, false division of words, abbreviations, repetitions, omissions, intrusion of glosses, or alteration of forms to suit the supposed exigencies of grammar. A good chapter might easily be written to supplement Madvig's essay. It would amply confirm what his sagacity has on the whole discerned without so minute a sifting of the materials. The method of emendation pursued by Madvig in his Cicero, his Livy, and Adversaria (i. e. in the most valuable part of them) has beyond all question exercised a powerful influence on the progress of philological science. It is the proceeding of an original and master mind, not of an intelligent learner. He has taught scholars to demand a solid reason for an emenda- tion ; he has pointed out, with perfect clearness and sobriety, the various kinds of errors to which manuscripts are liable ; and in his best work he has striven to correct texts, as far as possible, according to the indications given by the manuscripts ' The second volume appeared in 1873, ^1*^ third — a much smaller book —in 1884. w H JOHAN NICOLAl MADVIG. JOHAN NICOLAl MADVIG, 15 themselves. Much, in short, which has been done for Greek by Cobet has been done for I^tin by Madvig. Not, of course, that Lachmann and Ritschl and (more indirectly) Mommsen have not, in their way, each made invaluable contributions to the art and science of criticism ; but I doubt whether the results of their labours have been put before the world in a form so comprehensive, so simple and so accessible. I^ch- mann's Lucretius is, in its way, as important a work as Madvig's Livy: but Lachmann leaves his main conclusions as to the text of Lucretius to be learned as the reader goes on with the book. So clearly does Madvig, on the other hand, expound his method at the beginning of his Livy, that his preface can easily be used, as I can gratefully testify, for a text-book in a philological class. To return, however, to the Adversaria. There are faults in the book which it would be wrong to ignore -Madvig did not carry out, in the case of authors of whom his knowledge was comparatively superficial, the principles which he lays down or suggests in his De Finibus and Livy. As Mr. Mayor ' well says ' It is plain at first sight that Madvig's knowledge of metre was imperfect ; many of his guesses on minor authors are hasty and would have been abandoned by him on second thoughts ' m some cases the common lexicons prove the correctness of readmgs which he condemns. His familiarity with ante- and post-classical Latin was by no means on a par with his mastery of Ciceronian and Livian style. Nor does he display that nice s^ense of usage which makes the study of L F. Gronovius Ruhnken, Heindorf, Cobet, so instructive. Robust common sense, revoltmg against impossibilities in thought or expression a clear perception of what the context required, a close adherence to the ductus litterarum, seem to me his great merits as a critic' When Madvig' says of Plautus ' videri sibi Plauti Comoediis ne plane nat.vum quidem sermonem Latinum et suopte .ngenm sese moventem contineri, sed non raro Graeca 4 i Classical Review, 1. 124. * Adv, 2. ^. vertendo, imitando, novam versus formam sequendo et ei obediendo inflexum,' it is quite clear, in my judgement, that he makes a great mistake. In the severe professorial lecture which Ritschl reads him in the third volume of his Opuscula Philo- logica^ Madvig is charged directly with the lack of historical sense. Thus baldly stated, this charge cannot for a moment be entertained ; for in the wider application, no scholar shows more historical sense than Madvig, nor was he ignorant of the progress which the study of old Latin had made in the hands of Ritschl and his school. But with the study itself it seems to me that, for some reason or other, he was not in intelligent sympathy. Whether national prejudice, or the isolation of his position at Copenhagen, had any share in pro- ducing this result, so unlike the man and so unworthy of him, is a question to be asked. However this may be, Ritschl has the advantage of being in the right, and such further advantage as may be derived from the adoption of a high scolding attitude, and the liberal use of such words as Hybris, Authadeia, Nemesis, and Geistiosigkeit. I pass now to a brief mention of Madvig's writings on Roman history and antiquities. The most important of these are, first, the papers published in the Opuscula and Kleine Schriften ; De iure et condicione coloniarum populi Romani ; De tribunis aerariis disputatio : Die romischen Officiere ; and finally the two volumes entitled Die Verfassung und Verwaltung des romischen Reiches (1881-2). The results of the two first-named dissertations have been long worked up into the treatises of other scholars. The paper on the Roman ofificers is intended as a clear exposition for the benefit of educated readers generally, and gives a perfectly lucid explanation of the facts. The two volumes on the Roman Constitution and Administration deserve special notice for more reasons than one. Madvig's object in writing the book, which has by the bye, a pathetic interest as the work of a blind man, can best be expounded in his own language (p. iv. foil.) : — i6 JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG, \ f I' ' The sketch here attempted is not the offspring of a definite intention to write such a book. But a study of Latin literature, carried on almost without interruption for fifty years, has impressed upon me the necessity of giving a clear notion, both for my own sake and my hearers' sake, of the national life and the whole circumstances which gave that literature its general and special characteristics . . . My early studies fell into the period when the traditional accounts of early Roman history had received their death-blow at the hands of Niebuhr, who pointed out their many weaknesses, gaps, and discrepancies. My own aim was to gain a firm ground to start from. I threw aside all prejudice ; but I could not approve of the capricious and sometimes wild way of going to work which I seemed to observe in others, both in the handling of authorities and in the forming of groundless hypotheses . . . This position, first indicated in my paper on the Roman colonies in 1832, I have never abandoned . . . My aim has been to combine freedom from prejudice with sound sense, a natural and simple mode of theorizing, and a candid recognition of the peculiarities of the ancient world. The only originality I care for is that of abandoning the claim to be original. My chief object has been to grasp, explain, and combine the facts which stand out clearly in the period which we can safely regard as historical. Starting from these I have tried, in dealing with the Roman Constitution, to follow the connexion of its original principles with their late devolpment, and so to work back into the darkness of antiquity. And, again, I have tried either to answer, or at any rate to place in a correct and simple light, such difficulties as arise with regard to the special development of these principles. In all cases I have followed the indications before me, but have stopped short where all intelligible traces are obliterated . . . . . . I am not altogether satisfied with Mommsen's proceeding in his Staatsrecht. To begin with the magistratus, passing over the senate and people, is to build without sufficient foundation. An impression of strain and of artificiality is pro- JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. 17 ' duced by the work. An effort is made to explain the origin of existing forms and arrangements by reference to general t:onceptions and theories supposed to have existed in the minds of the Romans ; and the author shows an inclination to form combinations and hypotheses which cannot always be called natural or reasonable. In saying this, however, I wish to express my fullest recognition of Mommsen's extraordinary learning and acuteness, and of his absolutely unrivalled mastery over the materials which lie outside the region of Latin literature.' Madvig, in fact, does not in this work aim at being either original or exhaustive. The compass of his book is too small to allow of so full a citation of references as is given by Marquardt and Mommsen. He does not write so much for the purpose of giving new theories, as to present in a form comprehensive and generally intelligible to the classically- educated public, the outlines of the Roman constitution and administration. This his book does, not only with clearness, but in sucfi a way as to leave the impression of an individual personality working upon the materials. On the general point at issue between Mommsen and Madvig it would be pre- sumptuous in me to offer an opinion ; nor will the question, perhaps, be decided in our generation. One thing however is to my mind highly probable ; and that is that the investiga- tions into primitive usages now being carried on with such activity by anthropologists will in time throw fresh light upon the origins of Greek and Roman Institutions, if indeed they do not altogether revolutionize our historical methods. For the general interest of the matter I quote Madvig's judgement ' on the character of Julius Caesar : ' It has lately been the fashion, I know not whether in deference to Mommsen, or to the imperial author of the Vie de Cesary to take a high tone in glorification of Caesar's clear and magnificent ideas, and his plans for reforming the state and the empire of Rome. The suggestion is that, had he lived. VOL. II. c fcAllMaiaafca-jtfgjga.tMgMiara'tiaihaa i8 J OMAN NICOLA I MADVIG. a structure would have arisen ver)' different from that reared by Augustus. I give the fullest recognition to Caesar's strategic genius, to his clear political vision and his energetic will. But the truth must be told, that we know absolutely nothing of these plans and ideas. In real history you will not find a Caesar who had a consistent notion of constructing a new and better state. What you do find is a man convinced of his own worth, ambitious, and intolerant of rivals. It is, finally, extremely doubtful whether Caesar would have hit upon a much better solution of the problems before him than Augustus did. These problems were colossal, and capable only of a very slow and imperfect solution. The one great reform which Caesar effected, the reformation of the calendar, was not a political reform. The fact that in his late years he \^'as preparing for a war with Parthia does not prove that he was meditating organic changes. Even genius, we shall remember, has its limitations in the sphere of its time and circumstances.' This verdict will no doubt be challenged ; but I should imagine that the estimate of Livy and Dionysius, with which the book concludes, will meet with general acceptance. I offer a condensed paraphrase of it. * Livy's history was accepted in his own and in the following generation, a period, it must be remembered, of great literary activity, as on the whole adequate and sufficient. No one attempted to do the work over again, and the later historians were generally content to abridge him. The ancients as a whole had too little general experience, too little capacity for appreciating the difference between one nation and another, between one period of civilization and another, between primitive and fully developed political institutions, between fable and assured fact, to write great histories in our sense of the word. Much of the confusion of thought which runs through Livy's account of the Roman constitution may be found in contemporary or nearly contemporary writers, such as Velleius and Asconius ; nor does any one seem seriously to have cared to get to the root of the matter. To carry the JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. 19 imagination back from the refined civilization of Augustan Rome to the rude and limited world of Italian antiquity would have been an effort quite beyond the capacities of that age.' ' Livy aims at no more, and no more was expected of him or of any one else, than to give a tasteful and well-drawn picture of the national history as it was accepted at his time; to adorn it with life-like descriptions of characters and events, and to make it reflect the inspiring idea of the greatness of the Roman empire. His superficiality, carelessness, and critical incapacity have been often noticed. But it should be remembered in his favour that he lets us honestly see how scanty his authorities often were; that he does not overlay his work with symmetrical fictions, or spoil its Latin tone by an admixture of foreign ideas ; and, finally, that his Latin terminology gives a firmness and clearness to his outlines which is entirely wanting in the Greek Dionysius. For Dionysius, in the antiquarian part of his book, is a mere Greekling. He has no acquaintance with Roman public life and its forms. While he praises the public institutions of Rome, he is still vain enough to console himself with the idea that Rome owed everything to the Greeks; a notion which leads him into the most shameless misrepre- sentation, as when, for instance, he ascribes to the Romans of remote antiquity a complete acquaintance with Greek cities and Greek life.' This clear, sound, and independent judgement, formed always on first-hand study, is one of Madvig's greatest characteristics. But I think that his interests were wider than those of the mere philologist. He is no specialist, if by specialist be meant a man whose moral and intellectual being is genuinely satisfied with the investigation of particular points, or the exclusive cultivation of a single unimportant branch of study. And this I suppose is the real meaning of this vaguely applied word. Madvig was forced by circumstances and by the possession of an extraordinary genius for the restoration of texts into spending the best part of his life, the years between twenty and sixty, upon difficult problems of textual criticism. c 2 20 JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. But a perusal, however superficial, of the essays forming the K^eine philoiogische Schriften (1875), will convince the reader that Madvig's eye was constantly directed to the wider aspects of his studies. He never lost sight of the real position and value of classical philology. In his Kleine Schriften is printed a little paper on the retention of classical study in schools (p. 285 foil.). He shows that he is under no illusions on the subject. It is not in the literary enjoyment afforded by the (Ireek and Latin writers, nor in the gymnastic training given to the mind by mastering their grammar, that he places their educational value : but in the fact that they offer the necessary and the only means of obtaining a first-hand view of the (Iraeco-Roman world, and therefore of the fore-time of European civilization. Again, the essays on language in general, on Gender in Language (1835), On the Nature and Development and Life of Language (1842), On the Origin and Character (f the signs by which Langtiage indicates grammatical distinctions (1884-5), ^^^ in the way very instructive. Not being based on a really wide induction, or on any but a surface acquaintance with the results of comparative philology, they will not live as contributions to that science. But they have the great merit of clearness, insight, and a resolute antagonism to anything like the obscurity or vaporous writing into which, in dealing with these nearly impenetrable subjects, it is so easy to fall. These essays are then of value not only as being stimulating and suggestive, but as holding before the student the duty of lucid and patient thinking, of which, whatever the state of our knowledge, there is likely to be need for a long time. Was it these general linguistic studies, or more extended historical work, to which Madvig had hoped to be able to devote himself as to graviora studia ? I suppose that, had his interests been narrower, he might have accomplished even more than he did in the reign of critical philology. One is irresistibly driven to compare him with his younger contem- [jorary, Theodor Mommsen. He had not the strange power JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. 21 of imagination, partly legal and political, partly poetical, nor the astonishing impulse towards making new and ever new discoveries, which characterize that great scholar. Since his Livy was published he doubtless read much, but did little, compared with Mommsen, to further the progress of original investigation. Research has in the last quarter of a century been growing more multitudinous and minute, and yet the demand for general views of antiquity remains, and rightly remains, the same. The contents of the seven-sealed book are still an organic whole, and so is the knowledge of them : to touch any part with success, one ought to be master of all. The scholar is the servant of two masters— each, like two Roman coliegae, with plenary authority— width of view and study of detail. Every day new facts, affecting languages, metre, .syntax, manuscript tradition, historical documents, are multi- plying round him, so that no day in his life ought to be so occupied ut nan lineani ducendo exerceat artem. But when will the picture appear? or will it ever appear? The impression left on my mind by much in Madvigs writing, and confirmed by his whole career, is that his ideal was not so much to live for his studies as to render, through his studies, solid service to his country. His services to education, not only in the university of Copenhagen, but throughout Denmark, seem to have been solid and valuable. The disastrous cry which demands or approves the separation of learning from education would not, I imagine, have awakened much sympathy in his breast. One does not, unless I am much mistaken, come upon any complaints in his books of the tedium of giving lectures, or the interference of this occupation with his studies ; although in a man of his genius such complaints might have been natural and excusable. Indeed his writings as a whole do not give the idea of having exhausted all that his mind had to give. This impression is confirmed by what I find Professor Gertz saying about him. * He was always impressing upon the students that the ultimate and highest aim of their studies was to gain a sure 22 JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. insight into history, a clear and living idea of the life of the Oreek and Roman world. Both in his lectures and in his written works he made solid contributions towards this end. His power of acute criticism, it is true, never deserted him in his lectures any more than in his books. He made a strong IKjint of defining clearly what, in his opinion, we know and what we do not know .... His pictures of ancient life were in consequence, at times fragmentary ; but one was always comforted by the feeling that one was on sure ground with him. Where the materials allowed it, he could give sketches as interesting, as full of life and soul, as any one. And his viva voce exposition lacked, almost entirely, the cumbrousness which characterizes his written style .... ' His interests were by no means confined to his special studies. They embraced almost all sides of human knowledge and practice. He was not only at home, to a remarkable degree, in many other departments of science (to say nothing of general literature), but has been known to make sugges- tions of the greatest value to men whose studies lay outside his own beat. He was therefore the hero of the Danish students, and up to the end of his life liked to mingle in their society. It was thus only natural that the University of Copenhagen repeatedly elected him as its representative, and the Academy of Sciences as its president .... It is to him that Denmark owes the best organization of her higher schools that she has ever enjoyed. As inspector of schools he impressed scholars and masters alike with his kindness.' Professor Mayor ' gives an interesting account of his meeting Madvig at Leyden in 1875. 'I saw,' he says, ' the first meeting between him and Cobet, and remembered the description given by the aged Gersdorf some ten years before, of the meeting between Friedrich Jacobs and his old correspondent Gottfried Hermann. Madvig had a singular grace and ease of manner .... Cobet, in proposing Madvig's health as the acknowledged master of the critical art, added ; but we will * Classical Review i. 1 24. JOHAN NICOLAI MADVIG. 23 not make a pope of you ; pugnabimus tecum, contendemus tecu?fi, eoque vehenientius pugnabimus^ quo te vehementius admiramur. Madvig began his reply thus : Post Cobetum /atine loqui vereor\ but soon passed from compliments to give some admirable advice to the students.' On the second of December 1886 Madvig had intended to read a paper at the philological society on the political pamphlets of the later republican period. At noon however, on returning from his walk, he felt indisposed. All seemed ta be going well till the forenoon of the twelfth, when his doctor declared himself well satisfied with his patient, to whom he had given leave to get up. Madvig was in the act of rising when he suddenly exclaimed ' It is all dark,' sank backwards and expired. The force and clearness of his intellect remained unimpaired to the last This was the peaceful end of an honourable life. His name will be remembered, as long as the historical sciences continue to exist. He cultivated to the utmost the virtue which it is the scholar's point of honour to possess, the love of truth. He fell into some mistakes from haste and carelessness, but never erred from want of sense, and insisted indeed in applying ever)- where the rule of reason. In the study of minute points, he never lost his hold on the general bearing of philological questions or on the wider aspects of his science. He was, finally, one of the great reformers in the history of philology, who, by sweeping away bad work and false method, have made the way easier for those who came after him. II. THE ORIGINAL FORM OF THE ROMAN SATURA». (Originally published at the Clarendon Press in 1878.) -♦♦- The name satura, which has given so much trouble to scholars, should to all appearance be compared with feminines formed from adjectives, such as noxia^ a fault, dira^ a curse, and others of the same kind. The meaning seems to be a medley. Varro quoted by Diomedes (3. p. 486 Keil) says, 'Satura est uva passa et polenta et nuclei pini ex mulso consparsi:' and Festus p. 314, 'Satura et cibi genus ex variis rebus conditum est et lex multis aliis legihus confecta. Itaque in sanctione legum adscribitur " neve per saturam abrogato aut derogato." ' How the word first came to be applied to a form of literature is not ascertainable. It may be that its use in this connection was metaphorical ; it may be that satura (i. e. satura fabula) was from the first the term for a dramatic performance or a story which was a medley of scenes or incidents. When Juvenal speaks of 'nostri farrago libelli' he is doubtless alluding to the then accepted e.xplanation of satura as an olla podrida or dish of various ingredients : but it must be remembered that all our I^tin authorities on this matter speak at a time when the word has become fixed [' Mr Nettleship contiil utcd an article on this subject to the third edition of Smith's Dictionary of Antiquities 1891). 1 have noted below (pp. 33, 34) the two details about which he seems to have chanted his opinion since- 1878.] THE ROMAN SATURA. 25 in its literary sense of a medley of metres, or of prose and verse. It is probable, however, that the word satura was familiar to the Romans long before the existence of the literary composition so named, and before those who used it had many metres to mingle. The Roman scholars who treat of the name were partly too familiar with it, partly too careless in their etymological researches, to give its real origin a thorough examination. An attempt will be made in the following pages to define somewhat more precisely than has hitherto been done what was the original form of the satura, and to trace the course of that development which, under the pressure of various circumstances, brought it to the shape which it assumed in the hands of Juvenal, and in which it is most familiar to us. Livy 7. 2. 4, in describing the origin of dramatic performances at Rome says, * Sine carmine ullo, sine imitandorum carminum actu ludiones ex Etruria acciti, ad tibicinis modos saltantes, haud indecoros motus more Tusco dabant. Imitari deinde eos iuventus simul inconditis inter se versibus coepere : nee absoni a voce motus erant. Accepta itaque res saepiusque usurpando excitata. Vernaculis artificibus, quia ister Tusco verbo ludio vocabatur, nomen histrionibus inditum, qui non, sicut ante, Fescennino versu similem incompositum temere ac rudem alternis iaciebant, sed inpletas modis saturas descripto iam ad tibicinem cantu motuque congruenti per- agebant. Livius post aliquot annos, qui ab saturis ausus est primus argumento fabulam serere,' &c. The passage is confused and difficult : but it seems fair to infer from it that Livy meant by the word satura a simple scene without a plot, acted at first without, but afterwards (under Etruscan influence) with, a regular musical accompani- ment and corresponding gestures. He contrasts saturae modis inpUtae or saturae regularly finished with a musical setting, to the irregular dialogue in verse, resembling the Fescennine, which existed before. Of the words saturae modis inpletae, the most important are apparently modis inpletae. There is 26 THE ORIGINAL FORM OF nothing to prevent us from supposing that Livy would have appHed the word satura to the previously existing irregular dialogue. A musical and rhythmical setting was first given to this dialogue on the introduction of the Etruscan art. It follows with more certainty from the words of Livy that the performance to which he gives the name of satura^ never developed into a play with a regular plot. Livius Andronicus, he says, was the first artist who gave up saturae^ and under Greek influence introduced a regular play — argumento fabulam serere ausus est. In other words, the Greek play, with its various scenes united by the thread of a single story, drove the satura from the stage. The fair inference from the whole passage seems to be twofold. First, that a satiira differed from a play mainly in having no plot. Secondly, that the satura had in it an element of dialogue. This fact seems to follow by implication both from Livy's positive statements about the satura and from his omitting to mention the dialogue of Livius' plays as in any way a new factor in the development of the theatrical art. The new element is not the dialogue, but the plot. To this view it may be objected that there is no proof of the rude performance which Livy calls satura standing in any real relation to the satura of literature, claimed by Horace' and Quintilian as an unquestionably Italian production. If however it can be shown, as I think it can, that the satura of litera- ture bears features of strong resemblance to the satura mentioned by Livy, much will be done towards removing this objection. And, before going further, we may observe that Livy evidently uses the word satura as implying a form of art perfectly well known to his readers, and not in any way needing to be distinguished from the literar)' satura with which of course they were perfectly familiar. Let us assume then that the satura existed in old times in Italy as a rude form of dramatic art similar to, though not Grtucis intacti carminis. Quintil. lo. i. 93: Satura quidem tota nostra est. THE ROMAN SATURA. 27 identical with, the Fescennine verses. When we are enabled to take up the thread of its continuous history we find it driven from the stage and become a form of literature proper. We have no record of the process by which the stage was gradually occupied by the Atellana, the mimuSy and the exodium : but there seems to be no doubt that by the time of Ennius ^ the satura had come to be cultivated exclusively as a branch of literature, a literary luxury, it may almost be said, capable of a tone somewhat more serious than would have been suited for the stage and the general public. The satura of Ennius was, in form, a mixture or medley of metrical pieces in which the element of dialogue was in all probability present. Little enough remains of Ennius' productions in this line ; but we may be sure that, like all his other works, his saturae were strongly tinged by Greek influence. It is diflficult to suppose that the dialogue or contest between Life and Death mentioned by Quintilian (9. 2. 36) in the same breath with the fable of Prodicus about Virtue and Vice was not a copy of some Greek model ; perhaps we may note here a touch of the popular Greek philosophy or reflection which, as we shall see, is so obvious in the later satura. Another interesting notice of the satura of Ennius is preserved by Gellius {2. 29), who tells us that Ennius worked the fable of the tufted lark and its young ones, with great skill and grace, into a satura. This may remind us of the way in which Horace uses the fable of the town and country mouse, and again suggests a trace of connection with Greek literature. For Ennius, in versifying a fable of Aesop, may possibly have translated some Greek metrical version of the story, such as Socrates is said to have amused himself with making in the long hours of his imprisonment. The writings of Pacuvius in this department being entirely lost, it is necessary to pass on to the great change in the form * Horace's words (.S". i. 10. 66), * quam rudis et Graecis intacti carminis auctor^ imply that in his opinion Ennius was the first writer who attempted the literary satura. 28 THE ORIGINAL FORM OF and character of the satura introduced by Lucilius. In his hands the satura did not lose its character as a brief narrative or picture of life with an element of dialogue. So much is clear if only from the remains of the third book, from which Horace copied the Journey from Rome to Brundisium; from the scene in the fourth book between Aeserninus and Pacideianus ; from the rustic supper in the fifth book, and the convivial scenes of the fourteenth and twentieth. The dialogue of Lucilius seems partly to have assumed the form of an address to a friend or enemy (as in books 3, 5, 26, 30) ; partly to have been carried on between the characters in the satura itself (as in the twenty-eighth book); partly to have taken the more formal shape (of which Juvenal is so fond) of an address by the poet to his readers. Like the satura of Ennius, too, that of Lucilius had its points of contact with Greek philosophy ', whether sceptical or reflective : witness the beginning of the first book and the mention of Lucilius' contemporary Carneades. These are points of resemblance between the satura of Lucilius and that of Ennius ; but they are unimportant, and have been to a great extent forgotten, in comparison with the points of difference. Lucilius was the first writer who impressed on the satura that character of invective which it to a great extent preserved in the hands of Horace, Persius, Juvenal, and others Lactantius, 5. I4. 3: Lucilit, apud qucm disserens Neptunus de re difficillima osUndit non posse id explicari, ' nee si Cameaden ipsum Orcu remittal [book i , fragm. 1 2, MuUer], Compare also 36. fragm. 59, lutrarum (so U\x\\^j) exactoran Albanum et ftdguritorcm arborum (of Jupiter^: 2 7- 35- nescis, ubi Graeci, ubi nunc Socratici charti ? and 38. 1 (as restored by Mnnro), Hoc cum feceriSf Cum ceteris reus una tradetur I.upo. {A) Non adait. {B) dpxais hominem et arotxfiots simul Privabit. (^) Igni cum et aqua interdixerit. Duo habct aroix^la ; adfuerit. {B) Posterioribus arotxuots, si id ma/uerit, privabit tamen. The line 26. 71, sin autem hoc vident, bona semper peter e sapientem putant, has the ring of the schools : so Inc. 101, nondum etiam, qui haec omnta habebtt, Formosus. dives, liber, rex solus feretur ? (The references are to Muller's edition). THE ROMAN SATURA. 29 (e. g. Albucius % and which apparently in the view of a large section of the Roman literary public became essential to it. Personal the satura always is, it is always serious : but in the hands of Lucilius and those who imitated him it underwent a new Greek influence, that of the old Attic comedy, and became the instrument not only of personal reflection or advice or expostulation, but of personal attack. The movement is significant of a change in the spirit of the satirist and in that of his age. It was not only that the satura of Ennius may have seemed to Lucilius ^ cumbrous, grotesque, wanting in dignity ; it may also have appeared at once too general and too cold in its contents to suit the concluding years of the seventh century of the city. Ennius wrote at a time when the Romans, after their newly won triumph over Carthage, could content them- selves with merely enjoying and reproducing the literature of Greece, and applying its forms to the decoration of their own achievements. Before the time of the Gracchi there is little trace in Roman literature of the deep feeling of corruption in the governing classes which meets us from the time of Lucilius to the end of the republic. But in the hands of Lucilius the satura becomes the scourge of incapacity in high places : he is the chronicler of the real Rome of his time, painting with all sincerity like a shipwrecked sailor on his votive board (as Horace says) the picture of his own life and that of his countr)- men. The Rome ' of Lucilius is a city in which the pleasures * Cuius Luciliano charactere sunt libelli (^Varro, /*. ^. 3. 2. 17) : see Teuffel, Gesch. d. rom. Litt. § 189, i [in the latest German edition of 1890 and in VVarr's translation § 192, i. Albucius seems to have been really named Abuccius.] Hor. S. 1. 10. 54. Non ridet versus Enni gravitate minores ^ ' i. 16 : Infamem vitani turpemque odisse popinam. 4. 3 : O Publi, gttrgcs, Galloni : es homo miser, inquil ; Cenasti in vita nunquam bene, cum omnia in ista Consumis squilla at que cuupensere cum in decumano. lb. 5 : Occidunt, Lupe, saperdae te et iura siluri. 6 : Quod sumptum atque epulas victu praepoms honesio. 5. 39 : Vivite lurcones, comedones, vivite ventres. lb. 33 : Nam si quod satis est homini id scUis esse potcsset^ 30 THE ORIGINAL FORM OF of money-getting and the banquet and the brothel are drawing away men's minds from honest hving and pubhc spirit and that manly virtue, which, teaching the due limits of desire and the real value of material prosperity, bids men put their country first, their parents second, and their friends last. All men have but one profession— to deceive, to flatter, to pretend, ever>* man's hand against even.' man, and reputation depending upon wealth and love of display. Turning to political life ', Lucilius sees the nobi/es sinning unpunished and beating off all attacks by their mere nobility. In war - Roman armies are defeated Ha sat trat : nunc cum >:cc non at. qui credimu porro Dititias ullas ant mum mi ixpUre potisu f 6. 3 : Nequitia occufai hos, pUulantia prodigitasqu€, 30. J4 : Qu4m sumptum fa<:is in lustris, circum oppida lust 1 am'. Im. 4 : Nunc vero a mean aJ ncctem, festo atqiu profesto^ Toto itidim par iter que die pcpulusqut patresqtu lactare indu foro u omnis^ decedere nusquam : i'ni se a/que eidem studio omtus dedere et artt : Verba dare ut caute pcssint, pugnare dolose ; Blanditia certare, hcnum simulare tirum S€ ; Insidias fa*ere, ut si hostes sint omnibus omnes. Aurum atqm ambitio specimen virtuiis viriqtu est : Quantum haheas. tantum ipse sies tantique hcihearis. Peccare inpupu rati sunt Posse : : / r.chiiitate facul propelUre iniquos. Compare the series of personal attacks, 1 1. 10, 11, 12, 13. II- 4 : Praetor nosier ad hoc quam spurcus sit ore, dtc. Publiu Pavu Tuditantis mi hi quaestor Hibera In terra fuit : lu^ifugus. nebulo^ id genus sam. Et merceJe merentlegicmes yet Essays in Latin Literature^. 344I Munu tamen fungi et muros scrvare potissint. HostiJius contra Pattm permiiiemque catax quam et Maniu nobis. A ut forte omm'no ae fortuna vinle generally how infinitely does he fall below the consummate elegance and finish of Terence, who was before him too in time ! Then what a disgusting fondness he displays for coarseness and obscenity, descending often to downright bestiality I How Quintilian can speak of him as he does, adding that some even then placed him at the head of all Latin poets, is to me incomprehensible ; I should say even Horaces estimate of him was too high, raised designedly not to excite the ill-will of his contemporaries : for Lucilius, as Cicero will attest, unquestionably had a brilliant reputation.' This criticism can hardly be called too severe, considering the character of our remaining fragments : yet it is possible perhaps even from them to divine why Lucilius was so popular. » Journal of Philology, 7. 094. With regard to the age of Lndlius, Ladan Miiller argoes with moch plansitMlitj that the date of his birth commoolj accepted from Jerome, B^. I47, is some thirty years too late. 32 THE ORIGINAL FORM OF Fastidious ' and sensitive as to his own reputation (possibly the more so from bad healthy Lucilius was clearly conscious of having something new and true to tell his countrymen. He felt that he had the originality of nature which justified his following a path different from that of the general public. He cannot -, he says, be persuaded to change his ways for those of the common Romans of his day ; though a Roman eques^ he will not become a publicanus : the tithes do not suit him ; being, as he is, Lucilius, he will not be another. The world he sees around him is a world of avarice and pleasure-seeking and ambition ; but he is a true man who loves his friend, a true poet who loves the Muses ^ ; his papers are his friends to whom he commits all his secrets * ; his verse, like himself, shall be sincere and simple "\ not full of the artificial bombast of the tragedians ', but the poetry of real life, which though deserving the praise of the wise shall yet not speak exclusively to the learned, but go straight to the heart of the intelligent I. i : 26 5: '45: lb. i; Quis leget haec ? Evadat saltern a liquid aiit/ua quod conatus sum. Noti paiuis malle a sapientibus esse probatum ^ "nojOiv vfKVfaat tcaTad6kov\ &c. ' 10. I. 95 : Alterum illud etiam prius saturae genus, sed non sola carminum varietate mixtum condidit Terentius Varro .... Plurimos hie hbros et doctissimos composuit. The text of this passage has been much dis- cussed, but the general sense is pretty plain. It seems possible that/nW may be a mere gloss explaining illud. D 2 36 THE ORIGINAL FORM OF to expose the vanity of human wishes and the weakness or hypocrisy of human pretensions : above all things he is a plain speaker who will tell the world the truth to its face. In this spirit the Roman satirist and the Cynic philosopher are very much at one. Varro is made by Cicero to say that he did not translate but imitated Menippus ; which probably means that he adopted the form of the satura as the best embodiment of the ideas of Menippus \ Varro's was essentially a quiet genius, and it is partly, perhaps, due to this fact that in spite of the genuinely Roman flavour which they shared with all that he wrote, the Menippean satires never won their way into general popularity, or enabled the old-fashioned medley of metres, or of prose and verse, to reassert itself as the recognised form of the satura. Again, if we may trust Cicero- and the fragments of the Menippean satires themselves, it is evident that Varro adopted a graver, more cultured, more philosophical, and less personal tone than Lucilius. He cares more for the sketch than for his own signa- ture at the foot of it, and appeals to a public that can read between the lines. Possibly also the cumbrousness which is never absent from the graver works of Varro may have haunted him here also, and prevented his satires from being read out- side of a small circle of students. The satire of Horace was evidently, both in matter and in form, intended as a protest against that of Lucilius. Horace indeed retains the hexameter; but in spite of its apparent freedom, his versification is always, within the limits which he has laid down for himself, finished and perfect ; it is not the writing of a man who dashes off his two hundred verses in the hour. It is more important to observe that the satire of Horace lacks, to a great extent, the element of invective. It is true that there is much talk about himself and his detractors, but Cic. Acad. Post, i, § 8 : Menippum imitati, non interpretati. It is interesting to compare the tone of the Roman satura with that of the echoes of Menippus preserved by Lucian. ' Cic. 1. c. : Multa Oiimixta ex intima philosophia, multa dicta dia- lectice. THE ROMAN SATURA. 37 this is always, professedly at least, in self-defence : hie stilus haudpetet ultro Quemquam animantem \ He follows Lucilius, he says, but with this exception. And it appears on examina- tion that, putting aside the uniformity of its metre, the satura or sermo of Horace is very much the old-fashioned medley. He addresses the public on its own life, sometimes directly, sometimes in the form of a scene or a dialogue. It may be observed that the form of dialogue is preserved chiefly in his second book, where we find it in the second, third, fourth, fifth, and seventh satires. In the first book the fifth, seventh, eighth^ . and ninth are true saturae -, the first, second, and third are ethical discourses ; the fourth, sixth, and tenth pieces of self- justification, personal or literary. In the second book Horace appears to have worked himself more thoroughly than in the first mto the form and manner of the satura ; there is nothing there which is not either a scene or a conversation ; there is no mere direct moral address to the people, but each piece, like a philosophical dialogue, has a setting of its own. It seems at first sight strange that Horace, whose genius was so admirably adapted for the kind of writing which the saiura best represented, should so soon have given up the form of the satura for that of the epistle. I would suggest, that having deliberately abandoned the old-fashioned medley of prose and verse as an anachronism, and having elected to follow Lucilius in uniformity of metre and in the choice of the hexameter, he found that the dialogue, an essential element in the true satura, could not be carried on with success in this measure. The form of the epistle, supposed to be addressed to one person, and not necessarily involving dialogue or dramatization, was better fitted for the kind of discourse which Horace loves to pour out than that of the satura, which was supposed to be addressed to the general public and involved more or less of dramatic form. That Horace was a true prophet is clearly shown by the failure of Persius, who in his devotion to Horace has chosen to imitate the dialogue of the second book of the * S. 3. I. 39. 38 THE ORIGINAL FORM OF satires, and succeeded in producing a form of writing which for crudeness and obscurity can hardly be exceeded, and which goes far to make the reader forget his real power. The older form of satura^ the mixture of metre with metre and prose with verse, had a brilliant revival in the hands of Petronius, the power, pathos, and wit of whose pictures have not only rescued from discredit and oblivion a form of literature of which we should otherwise have remained nearly ignorant, but have given the world an unique idea of the capacity of the ancient Italian genius. Nothing is a greater proof of the genius of Petronius than the entire freedom of his style from the mannerisms of his age. While literature in general was growing more and more corrupted by the artificial tinge with which the schools of the rhetoricians were colouring it, Petronius writes with perfect purity and dramatic propriety; his characters standing out and speaking to us with all the vividness of real life, while the writer himself remains in the background and lets the play tell its own story. Who can forget Giton or Trimalchio or Eumolpus ? How different this from the stiff personifications of Persius ; how far removed from the hexameter satura as it reached its full development in the hands of Juvenal, under whose treatment versification and contents alike are cramped and confined. Even the hexameter of Juvenal is not the free measure of Horace, but the formal epic verse as stereotyped by Vergil, and handled without any Vergil's various power. The language of Juvenal, again, is an artificial dialect which no one, outside of a lecture-room, could ever have spoken ; his style is full of inversion, innuendo, and unnatural periphrasis. Powerful as he undoubtedly is, he knows little of the spirit of poetry ; much of his passion is forced and his invective unreal; his scenes are cumbrously put together, his character-drawing lacks life and delicacy. Petronius is indeed obscene beyond all possibility of excuse ; but it may be questioned whether Juvenal, who has none of the sweetness and versatility and reserve of Petronius, and whose coarseness is the dull rhetorical coarseness of a serious THE ROMAN SATURA. 39 mind, can after all claim much superiority on this score \ All Juvenal's pictures are drawn with the same monotonous power and in the same lurid colours. In the hands of the professed rhetorician the satura has lost almost all its kindliness, and speaks the language of moral indignation in the tone of an angry literary clique. As far as his form is concerned, it may be observed that a shadow of the proper form of the satura is left in the third and ninth satires, which are cast in the form of a dialogue ; but most of Juvenal's pieces are addressed to one person, and might more properly be called epistles. We have seen how, amid the surroundings of the empire, which contributed so powerfully to blight the freshness and sincerity of literature, the sati^ra came in Juvenal's hands almost to lose its original character. We may now attempt to answer the question whether there is, after all, any characteristic common to all its forms which it preserves from the beginning to the end of our acquaintance with it. It may then be observed, first, that the satura always contains a strongly-marked personal element. The writer in his own person addresses the general public or an imaginary companion. Even the dull satura attributed to Sulpicia is supposed to be a dialogue between herself and the Muse. Or, again, the satirist describes a scene in which he himself takes a part. It follows that dialogue, either obvious or suggested, is an integral part of the true satura ; the satirist talking to his readers or to one of the characters in the scene which he is describing. Secondly, the satura as we know it is a description of isolated scenes, but never contains a regular plot. This is a characteristic which is not wholly lost even in the writing of Juvenal. A certain quota of obscenity was probably considered a proper and conventional attribute of the satura. It may have been taken over by the literary men, with other properties, from the primitive satura, which re- sembled the Fescennine verses, as Livy says, and that probably not in its form only. Certainly there is a strong element of coarseness in Lucilius, Varro, Horace, Juvenal, and Petronius : nor is Persius altogether spotless. I should be disposed to refer this fact not to the moral obliquity of these writers, but to the conventional traditions of their art. Bjtffe >J>»a-i^jK«rai«nt » 40 THE ORIGINAL FORM OF THE ROMAN SATURA. Now these attributes, so clearly discernible in the literary satura as we possess it, tally entirely with those which we may infer from Livy to have belonged to the early satura. As we remarked at starting, Livy clearly distinguishes the satura from a play with a regular plot, and he gives to understand by implication that it was a dialogue. Quintilian, and after him Diomedes ', distinguish two kinds of satura, the older sort represented by Ennius and Varro, the later by Lucilius and his followers. As far as the original and proper form of the satura is concerned, this division, if the foregoing remarks are just, would appear to be arbitrary. Another point deserves attention. Quintilian claims the satura as an entirely Roman or Italian production, and describes it as originally a medley of various metres, or even of prose and verse. Livy speaks of It as a form of art existing as far back as the time when the Etruscan ludiones were introduced. Suppose that the satura was originally a native Italian form of drama, consisting of a simple scene or narrative from common life represented by two actors or perhaps by one, reciting a mimic dialogue ; suppose this humble representation gradually banished from the stage by more finished importations from abroad, and then transferred to paper by literary men (like plays which are not intended for acting) and perhaps recited by them, with a certain amount of action or dramatization, to small circles of friends ; and it will not be difficult to account for all the forms which the satura assumed in the hands of its various masters at different periods of Roman history. Its disappearance from the stage on the introduction of the Greek play is very analogous to the disappearance of the Saturnian metre on the introduction of the hexameter ; and as the introduction of the hexameter put an end to all hope of the development of 3, p. 485. Keil : Satira dicitiir carmen apud Komanos nmu qui Jem maUdicum et ad carpcnda hominum vitia anha^ae comocdiae charade, e conpositum, quale scripse^-unt LuciHus et Horatius et Pcrsius Et olim carmen auod ex vaHis poematibus constabat satira vocabatur, quale scrip- serunt Facuvius ct Ennius. ^ ^ 41 a native Italian poetry, so that of the Greek play may have destroyed the beginnings of a native Italian drama. As soon as the satura became literary, it could not but become, to a certain extent, artificial ; and though it never wholly lost its scenic character, it naturally became more personal in the sense of including a justification of the writer's point of view \ and thus came indirectly to be used as a channel for various kinds of political, literary, and even critical and grammatical causeries «. But there is really nothing to show that the satura was in any sense derived from a Greek source ; when Horace . says that Lucilius is dependent on the old comedy, this, as we have seen, implies on more than that Lucilius imported into satire the manner and spirit of moral and political invective. If my hypothesis as to the original form of the satura be correct, its character and development must have corresponded very nearly with that of the Greek /xl/xof. In his Prolegomena to Persius, Otto Jahn has examined the relations of the ^I/io^ and the satura at considerable length, and has laid some stress on the tradition preserved by Joannes Lydus, that Persius studied and imitated the /xr/xoi of Sophrbn. But the statement of Joannes Lydus must stand or fall with another which he makes in the same sentence, and which is now generally given up, that the model of Lucilius was Rhinthon. It is very probable, of course, that the Roman satirists studied Sophron ; but this does not prove that the satura was not, in its origin, a native Italian production ; unless we prefer to conjecture that both the /il/xoy and the satura represented a rude form of dramatic art existing before the separation of the Greek and Italian nations. But that the satura, after it had become an artificial literar}- production, was largely tinged by Greek influences, is not to be * As in the case, especially, of Lacilius and Horace. ' See the fragments of Lucilius' ninth book. Dziatzko, in the Rheinisches Museum, 33. 104, suggests an analog)- between the grammatical precepts of Lucilius and those of the -ipayniar.K^ rpa-^^>Ka of Callias (Athenaeus 10, P- 453 e). It may be that the fpaniiariK^ rpayw^a suggested to Lucilius the grammatical discussions of his ninth book. 42 THE ORIGINAL FORM OF denied for a moment. Among these influences that of the old Attic comedy has been much dwelt upon by critics from Horace downwards. It is probably an accident that in our remaining fragments of Lucilius no allusion is made to Eupolis, Cratinus, or Aristophanes. And although Lucilius Graecized the form of his satiirae by writing them in Greek metres, there is little in his remains the spirit of which is not quite genuinely Italian. Perhaps the influence of the old comedy, though real, was general and intangible, acting in the way of inspira- tion and suggestion \ For, as we have seen, there was much m the political circumstances of the time at which Lucilius lived to tempt the writer of satura out of the old ways into the hne of personal attack. However the matter may really have stood. It yet seems certain that no Roman satirist who intended to follow in the line of Lucilius would neglect the study of the old comedy. When Horace says, or makes his friend say \ Quorsum p€rtinuit stipare Platona Menandro, Eupolin, Archilochum, comites edtuere tantos ? he gives concisely a very clear notion of the sum of Greek influences which were recognized as bearing on the composition of the satura. The mention of Plato by Horace (whether he means the philosopher or the comedian is uncertain) reminds us of the relation between the satura and the Greek popular philosophy As Greek philosophy never wholly dispensed with the form of dialogue, philosophy and the drama were early brought into a curious literary alliance, which is well illustrated by the traduion that Plato used carefully to study the mimes of Sophron . It is clear that the satura of \-arro contained a great deal of popular dialectic ' ; there is much too of this in Horace, ' Pers. I. 123 : AuJaci quicunque adflate Cralint ^ Iralum Eupoliden frcugranJi turn stnt fallts. THE ROMAN SATURA. 43 and the satire of Persius, in the main a popular exposition of Stoicism, often takes the form of short question and answer, which reminds the reader of Arrian's Epictetus; and the method probably pursued viva voce in the Stoical and Academical schools. One of Persius' satires, indeed, is a direct imitation, in Roman guise, of a Platonic dialogue. The name of Menander suggests the associations of the New Comedy ; a world of literature of which echoes alone remain to us. It may be said generally that the kind of lessons inculcated by the Roman satirists when they preach truthfulness .and simplicity and moderation of life, reflects to a great extent the tone of the better comic drama. We have here a popular impression of the gathered experience won by great thinkers and men of action. The satirist may be supposed to have spoken to his Roman hearers in somewhat the same tones as Euripides and Menander to the Greeks, interpreting higher thoughts to them in a language which they could understand, through examples which they could imitate, and in a form of writing native to their own soil. The Roman theatre remained too exclusively Greek in its forms and traditions to prevent the satura from continuing to form a delight and diversion of literary circles. The influence of the New Comedy is felt most strongly interpenetrating the satire of Horace and Persius, in which subject, character, situation, and reflection continually suggest the moralizings of the stage. It is not necessary to go into the details of a phenomenon which is amply illustrated in the commentaries ; but it may be noticed in particular that the attack on military life which is a prominent feature in the writing of Persius and Juvenal may possibly have originated in an echo from the stage, of which the milts gloriosus or oKaiiov had long been a familiar property. III. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY'. ('JOURNAL OF PHILOLOGY,' VOL. XVIII (.Sjo).) -♦•- I. It may be said in general that two main lines of literary tZT\ "T '' ^^^^-g--^hed in ancient as in modern times p!lncipV^^^ ^! philosophy, which investigates the Testations of the human spin' a[ the" utmosfheigMo? Z eZt," and judges of hterary and artistic productions according as they approach the realization of their intention. The second is h olated and spontaneous judgement of artists and men of letters, sometimes accidental, occasional, and fragmentary sometimes regularly formulated, but never rising beyond h^ point attained by the personal impressions of the critic In the wealth of ancient and modern literature it ^s no both pom of view. Much of Ruskin's criticism, for instance may be called philosophical, as based upon thought, not indeed consistent and articulate, but still genuine; whil much again of Iht^etlLTofToIvlr""" ' '"'^ ''''' '^""^^'^ ^^-'-^^^ ^^^^-n elusions whch 1^0^^^^^^^ Bonn, Cohen, ,889 . The con- firmed bv the clL risonfnfr r^'f ' '"' '" °"^^'"^ ' "<>- ^^^ -"• added by th e / ^hT f^ " '"^ " ''' ^^"'"'''' '"'''''^ LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 45 is the utterance of personal intuition. Still, on the whole, the distinction may be maintained. Every one feels the difference (say) between Landor, Carlyle, and Matthew Arnold on the one hand, and Mr. Frederic Harrison on the other. Mr. Harrison in writing of literature, never loses sight of the Comtist tradition' Mr. Arnold writes with sure literary instinct, but without reference to any definite system, unless indeed he may be said to have built up, bit by bit, a literary system of his own Lessing based both his criticism and his dramatic creations on what he took to be the right interpretation of Aristotle But • Goethe speaks always from the fulness of his personal impression at the moment. It is the weakness of philosophical criticism that when it leaves the hand of the master it cr>'stallizes into a tradition and becomes exclusive, didactic, and conventional. It has' however, a twofold source of strength. It grasps fundamental principles, and even in the narrowness of scholastic tradition holds firmly by them. The great philosopher seizes the truth that great art and great literature are the expression of the whole moral and intellectual being of man at the crises which call It into activity. His followers may lay a pedantic stress either on the purely ethical element in good literature, as e g the Stoics did with Homer ; or, again, they may lay too much stress on form and general excellence, and make a canon of classical writers as the Alexandrians and the later ancient critics did. But in either case the disciple is set in the right track nor is he prevented from looking back, from the narrower position in which his teachers have placed him, to the wider field trodden by their master. The weak point in the occasional or unsystematized criticism of poets and artists is, it need hardly be said, its fitful and personal character. It has, however, a point of strength which more than counterbalances this defect. It is simple, as springing directly from the artistic intuition, from the appreci- ation of art and life by genius : and it knows no limits, but embraces in a generous welcome everything which bears the 46 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. Stamp of merit ; moreover, it is often conveyed in such beauty of expression as to be in itself an artistic creation. Literary criticism in Latin literature, like everything else in Latin literature, had its borrowed and its original element. It is therefore necessary, in order to get at a correct appreci- ation of the whole matter, to begin with a few words on the Greek or borrowed element. Greek criticism had concerned itself mainly with poetry and oratory, and where it touched history, had treated it largely from the literary point of view. With regard to poetry and oratory, the judgements of Aristotle are the most comprehensive embodiment of pure Greek feeling. The aim of tragedy is nlfXTftris npa^ats o-Trofdatar, the repre- sentation of serious action. This is not a judgement which ran counter to the best contemporary Greek feeling, or which anticipated the feeling of modern times ; rather it expresses what was generally expected of tragedy in Greek literary society. For throughout all classical antiquity it is the conduct of the action, not the psychological development of individual character, which attracts the attention of the reader or spectator. Development of character there may be in ancient poetry, but it is incidental, and subordinate to the course and demands of the action. This is a commonplace truth, so commonplace indeed as to be often forgotten by critics who insist on applying modern canons to ancient literature. Turning to oratory, we find that with Aristotle the art of rhetoric is based upon the knowledge of human character, passion, and life in its widest sense. But Aristotle's successors did not, on the whole, maintain their criticism at this high level. It was the rules of arrangement and the principles of harmonious prose composition which mainly occupied their attention ; or, to put the same thing in a historical form, Isocrates and the practical rhetoricians ousted the philosophers. It could hardly be otherwise in the case of an art which, unlike poetry, had a definite practical object, with the prospect of professional success and reward. Next to the name of Aristotle, that of Theophrastus stands out in the history of Greek literary LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 47 criticism. It is to him probably that we owe the first con- tinuous history of the origin of the different kinds of poetry and their logical arrangement. Further, it is certain that he criticized poetry in the interests of education, attempting to show what poets it would be most useful for an orator to read who was anxious to perfect his style. Only fragments of his criticism have come down to us in express quotation, e. g. that on Herodotus and Thucydides in the Orafor of Cicero 39. Quo 77iagis sunt Herodotus Thucydidesque mirabiles : quorum aetas cutn in eorum tempora quos nominavi incidisset, longissime . tamen ipsi a talibus deliciis vel potius ineptiis afuerunt. Alter enim sine ullis salebris quasi sedatus amnis fluit, alter incitatior fertur et de bellicis rebus canit etiam quodam modo bellicumy primisque ab his, ut ait Theophrastus, historia commota est, ut auderet uberius quam superiores et omatius dicere. Besides the name of Theophrastus, those of Aristarchus and his master Aristophanes of Byzantium must claim our atten- tion. These great scholars, besides spending great labour on the critical study of texts, directed their attention to forming a canon or selection of the best poets (Quint. 10. i. 54). Apollonius in ordinem a grammaticis datum non venit, quia Aristarchus atque Aristophanes neminem sui temporis in ordinem redegerunt\ They selected five from among the epic poets, three from the iambographi or writers of lampoon, and four elegiac poets. The selection had considerable influence on educational practice, but did not, of course, and could not, dominate the literary world in general. We must not, either, omit to mention the hostile criticism of Homer of which Zoilus, the author of the ' OfjLTjpofidan^, is the chief representative. It is no doubt of no value except to amuse and to show that the spirit of Macaulay was alive in the third century b.c. One instance will suffice. In //. 23. 100 Homer says yjfvxn ^( Kara x^ovos, fjCrt kuttvos, "Qxtro rerpiyvla. * See also i. 4. 3 {grammatici) auctores alios in ordinem redegerunt, alios omnino exenierunt ntimero. Horace's fet Aristarchus {A. P. 450) must refer to literary criticism. 48 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. On which Zoilus observed aXX' 6 Kanvia uva f TrapaHuyf^an xpoj/xe.'or C<^ypaovT,,, oificV eWora noioCetu dW^Xois ri piyfxara, rov airdu rponou eu nmr,riK^ t, dioXeVro) Ka\ rrj SWj, drraarj roU airoU oKd^aat XP^lifvoi TrdvTf^ ovx 6potud!ov r^x^, Karii rh ai, xp<^fiacn piv flpyaixpimi dnXC,f, kqI oibtpiav iu ^ Horace, A. P. i. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 55 ToU filypamv fj^ovrrm noiKiXiau, dKpt^tU ««* rals ypappaii^ Ka\ iroXv to XapUp (V ravrais (xovtrai' ai dt ptr (Kfiuas evypappot /xei; ^rrov, ^^(ipyaapfpai Se pfiXXov, (iu, d^KOfxariKos, rpayiKOs, (Ttfipos, Baifiouios, TTPtO^, ;^dptf, 'Apodirrj, yXa^vpof, a*^i;poff, arpoy yCXos, KT(viCo>, ^oarpvxiC^, 1780,^, ,rfi^«i, ^aifxr,, i^xvi, dAr,s, ^irya- \<4vns, fX(yaXonp€n^i, ntpirros : several of which passed into the Latin of the Ciceronian and Augustan ages. It is, however, where he leaves the beaten track that Cicero strikes into a vein more genial and more worthy of himself. Of criticism on poetry we have little from him but detached utterances : but it is plain that his liking is for the grander and freer style of the older poets, which to the new Alexandrian school was antiquated and distasteful. To Cicero* Ennius, Pacuvius, and Accius non verba sed vim Graecorum expresserunt poetarum. Of Ennius ' he says poetam egregium, quamquam ab his cantoribus Euphorionis contemnitur ; his verses on Cassandra are poema tenerum et moratum atque molle 3 : he is summus poeta \ ingeniosus poeta \ just as to » Acad. Post I. 10. » Tusc. 3. 45. 3 ^,-^ , ^ Dc Or. I. 198. 5 ^^^ 30 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 57 Lucretius he is Ennius noster, the writer o{ aetemi versus \ It is much to be wished that we had more of this kind from the hand of a man of genius, who was a considerable metrist himself, and only fell short of being a poet. But Cicero threw his whole strength into the criticism of oratorical prose. Here at length we get something which was new of its kind. The comparative greatness of the Roman dominion, and the large experience which was the inheritance of Roman life, opened to the Latin writers the knowledge of a world wider than that of the Greek schools and their books of history and criticism. Dionysius was not insensible of this when in his treatise n(p\ t^v apxaiutv pr}T6pa)v (2 p. 447 Reiske) he attributes to the judgement of the great Romans the return to good taste which he notices as a fact within his own experience. After complaining that the Attic Muse had been banished, as it were, from her own home (r^u tavrfis iKnaroiaa dyaOStv), that the ignorant had driven out the inquiring, the insane, the temperate (17 aiia6rii rriv 4>iX6(roov, Kai f, paivopfur, t^u cruxfipova), he goes on to say that the ancient and temperate style of rhetoric had regained its credit, alria d\ olpm, Ka\ dpxf, r^r TouxCrrjs /icra^oX^j ^ ,rdi/ro>i» Kparodaa 'Pa>prj, npos favri^v dvayKaCovaa Tas SWas nokus GTro^XeVctV itai ravrrjs r' avT^js oi dwaareCourfs, kot' dp(Tr)v Ka\ dno rov Kpariarov ri Koivii 5toiitoCvTfy, (inraidfvroi rrdyv Koi yfvvaioi ras Kpiatis ytvontvoi (p. 448). The rest of this essay will be devoted to Cicero as a critic. I shall endeavour to state, (i) what are the broad principles on which he bases his criticism of oratorical prose; (2) to point out by a few instances what are the marks of his critical genius in detail; (3) to indicate his weakness as a critic of historical writing, and to ask how far this was due to his own position, and how far to the circumstances of his age. (1) Cicero might fairly be judged as a critic by his Brutus alone, which is a history of Latin oratory from the eariiest times to his own. The work, written in the year 46, bears evident marks of haste, and covers a large field of history. It has, * Lucretius i. 117, 121. 58 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. consequently, obvious imperfections of form. The character- izations of the mumerous orators who are passed in review are not executed with equal care. Its main importance, like that of the Orator, a treatise on the form of prose writing published in the same year, lies in its controversial character ; or rather, in the fact that Cicero now found himself obliged to vindicate his own literary principles against a new school. As, in the field of poetry, the younger men were emphasizing the merits of the Alexandrian school, with its elaborate study of form and its love for small subjects and recondite mythology, so in the field of oratory the supremacy of Cicero and Caesar was threatened by the new Atticist represented by Calvus. The ideals of the Atticists were Lysias, for his simplicity, and Thucydides, for his condensation and intensity. Forced to defend his own position, Cicero lays down a principle which, so far as I know, had never been so clearly propounded before, and which is true for all time. This principle is, that, given fair time and opportunity, the recognition of the many is as necessary a test of excellence in an artist as that of the few. The merit which obtains the verdict of the connoisseurs only is a true merit, but it is incomplete. Hie AtHcus\ Quo modo tstuc diets, inquit, ' mm tuo iudieio, turn omnium ' ; Semperne in oratore probando aut improbando volgi iudieium eum inteiiegen- tium iudieio eongruit 1 an alii probantur a multitudine, alii auiem ab iis qui intellegunt ? Reete requiris, inquam, Attiee ; sed audies ex me fortasse quod non omnes probent . . . E/enim neeesse est, qui ita dicit ut a multitudine probetur, eundem doetis probari. Nam quid in dieendo reetum sitaut pravum ego iudicabo, si modo ts sum qui id passim aut sciam iudicare ; qualis vero sit orator, ex eo quod quis dieendo efficiet potent intellegi. Tria sunt enim, ut quidem ego sentio, quae sint efficienda dieendo ; ut doceatur is apud quem dicatur, ut deleetetur, ut moveatur vehementius. Qutbus virtutibus oratoris horum quidque efficiatur, aut quibus Vitus orator aut non adsequatur haec aut etiam in his labatur et cadat, artifex aliquis iudicabit. Efficiatur autem ab oratore * Brutus § 183. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 59 necne, ut ei qui audiunt ita adficiantur ut orator velit, volgi adsensu et populari approbatione iudicari solet. Itaque nunquam de bono oratore aut non bono doetis hominibus cum populo dissensio fuit. An censes, dum illi viguerunt quos ante dixi, non eosdetn gradus oratorum volgi iudieio et doctorum fuisse ? De populo si quem ita rogavisses, « Quis est in hac civitate eloquenfis- simus ; in Antonio et Crasso aut dubitaret, aut hunc alius ? ilium alius diceret. Nemone Philippum, tam suavem oratorem, tarn gravem, tam facetum, his anteferret, quem nosmetipsi, qui haec arte aliqua volumus expendere, proximum illis fuisse diximus ? Nemo profecto ; id enim ipsum est summi oratoris, summum oratorem populo videri. Quare tibicen Antigenidas dixerit discipulo sane frigenti ad populum ' Mihi cane et Musis ' ; ego huic Bruto dicenti, ut solet, apud multitudinem, ' Mihi cane et populo, mi Brute: dixerim ; ut qui audient quid efficiatur, ego etiam cur id efficiatur intellegam. Credit eis, quae dicuntur, qui audit oratorem, vera putat, adsentitur, probat, fidem facit oratio ; tu artifex quid quaeris amplius ? delectatur audiens multitudo et quasi voluptate quadam perfunditur : quid habes quod disputes 1 gaudet, dolct, ridet, plorat, favet, odit, contemnit, invidet ; ad misericordiam inducitur, ad pudendum, ad pigendum ; irascitur, miratur, sperat, timet; haec peri nde accidunt ut eorum qui adsunt mentes verbis et sententiis et actione tractantur ; quid est quod expectetur docti alicuius sententia ? True, this is said of the oratorical style only ; but, taken in its length and breadth, It IS true of all art. When, with Handel, we see the kingdoms of the world, stroke upon stroke, broken in pieces, or when with Beethoven we share in the tears and despair of a nation which has lost its hero, it is the universality of the triumph and of the sorrow which moves us, as much as the power and sincerity of the master who represents it. If, according to Cicero, oratory must appeal to the many as well as the few, and no distinction can be recognized in presence of a great work, it is also necessary that a great style should combine all the elements of excellence, if it is to appeal broadly to the universal sense of beauty and grandeur, not to M 60 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. the artificially pampered taste of the few. Ornafur^ igitur oratio genere primum et quasi colore quodam et suco sua. Nam ut gravis, ut suavis, ut erudita sit, ut iiberaiis, ut admirabiiis, utpolita, ut sensus, ut doloris habeat quantum opus sit, nan est singu/orum articulorum ; in toto spectantur haec corpore. Ut porro conspersa sit quasi verborum sententiarumquefloribus, id non debet esse fusum aequabiiiter per omnem orationem, sed ita dis- tinctum, ut sint quasi in ornatu disposita quaedam insig?iia et /umina. Genus igitur dicendi est eligendum, quod maxime teneat eos qui audiant, etquod non solum deiectet, sed etiam sine satietate delectet ;. non enim a me iam expectari puto utmoneam ut caveatis, ne exilis, ne incuita sit vestra oratio, ne vo/garis, ne obso/eta ; aliud quiddam maius et ingenia me hortantur vestra et aetates. Mere sweetness and prettiness cloy the senses : difficile enim dictu est quaenam causa sit cur ea quae maxime sensus nostros impellunt voluptate, et specie prima acerrime commovent, ab iis ce/errime fastidio quodam et satietate abalienemur, Quanto co/orum pulchritudine et varietate floridiora sunt in picturis novis pleraque quam in veteribus ! quae tamen, etiamsi primo aspectu nos ceperunt, diutius non deiectant ; cum iidem nos in antiquis tabu/is ilio ipso horrido obsoletoque teneamur, Quanto moiliores sunt et delicatiores in cantione flexiones et falsae voculae quam certae et severae ! quibus tamen non modo austeri, sed, si saepius ftunt, multitudo ipsa reciamat. Licet hoc videre in reliquis sensibus, unguentis minus diu nos delectari summa et acerrima suavitate conditis, quam his moderatis, et magis iaudari quod terram quam quod crocum sapere videatur ; in ipso tactu esse modum et mollitudinis et levitatis ; quin etiam gustatus, qui est sensus ex omnibus maxime voluptarius, quique dulcitudine praeter ceteros sensus commovetur, quam cito id quod valde duice est aspernatur ac respuit I . .§101 Quare'beneetpraeclare' quamvis saepe nobis dicatur ; ' beile et festive' nimium saepe nolo ; quam- quam ilia ipsa exclamatio * non potest melius ' sit velim crebra ; sed habeat tamen ilia in dicendo admiratio ac summa laus umbram * ZV Oratore 3. 96. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 61 aliquam et recessum, quo magis id, quod erit illuminatum, extare atque eminere videatur. Cicero is no philosopher, nor indeed could the Romans, to whom philosophy in the real sense was little known except as a lesson of doctrines learned from the Greeks, have based their criticism on its principles. But Cicero makes up to a certain extent for this deficiency by his wide grasp of facts. The instinct of genius, trained and strengthened by long experience but never forgetting itself, gave him the sympathy which enabled him to perceive the connexion between the inarticu- late feeling of the multitude and the reasoned judgement of educated men. His criticism is that of the trained scholar, whose technical knowledge is penetrated and transformed by living insight, and sense of reality. (2) If this is the general character of Cicero's criticism, it will be interesting to quote instances in detail of the power which makes his utterances a new creation. If I am not mis- taken, his real self appears with more genuine power and im- pressiveness in these criticisms than in anything which he has left us. This must be my excuse for quoting from them at some length. While they reveal the real genius of Cicero, they are also a monument of the expressive power of the Latin language. Brutus § 93 (Galba). Quem fortasse vis non ingeni solum sed etiam animi et naturalis quidam dolor dicentem incendebat, efficiebatque ut et inciiata et gravis et vehemens esset oratio; dein cum otiosus stilum prehenderat, motusque omnis animi, iamquam ventus, hominem defecerat,flaccescebat oratio. Quod eis qui li- matius dicendi consectantur genus accidere non solet, propterea quod prudentia numquam deficit oratorem, qua ille utens eodem modo possit et dicere et scribere ; ardor animi non semper adest, isque cum consedit, omnis ilia vis et quasi flamma orator is ex- tinguitur. Hanc igitur ob causam videtur Laeli mens spirare etiam in scriptis, Galbae autem vis occidisse. § 125 (Gaius Gracchus). Sed ecce in manibus vir et praes- tantissimo ingenio et flagranti studio et doctus a puero, Gaius Gracchus. Noli enim putare quetnquatn, Brute, pleniorem aut S^-^^-"---^-"-' 62 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. iiberiorem ad dicendum fuisse. Et ilk, * Sic prorsns' inquit, * existi?no, atque istum de superiorihus paene solum le^^o^ Immo plane, inquam, Brute, legas censeo. Damnum enim illius imma- turo interitu res Romanae Laiinaeque litter ae fecerunt. Utinatn non tam fratri pietatem quam patriae prae stare voluisset I Quam ilk facile tali ingenio, diutius si vixisset, vel paternam esset vel avitam gloriam consecutus f Eloquentia quidem nescio an hahuisset parem neminem. Grandis est verbis, sapiens sen- tentiis, genere toto gravis ; manus extrema non accessit operibus eius ; praeclare incohata multa, perfecta non plane. Legendus, inquam, est hie orator. Brute, si quisquam alius, iuventuti ; non enim solum acuere, sed etiam alere ingetiium potest. 139 (Antonius). Omnia veniebant Antonio in mentem ; eaque suo quaeque loco, ubi plurimum proficere et valere possent, ut ab imperatore equites, pedites, Ircis armatura, sic ab illo in maxime opportunis orationis partibus collocabantur. Erat memoria sum ma, nulla medifationis suspicio ; imparatus semper aggredi ad dicendum videbatur, sed ita erat paratus, ut iudices illo dicente nonnumquam viderentur non satis parati ad cavendum fuisse. Verba ipsa non ilia quidem elegantissimo sermone ; itaque diligenter loquendi laude caruit, neque tamen est admodum inquinate locutus. Nam ipsum Latine loqui est illud quidem, ut paulo ante dixi, in ?nagna laude ponendutn, sed non tam sua sponte, quam quod est a plcrisque neglectum ; non enim tam praeclarum est scire Latine quam turpe nescire, neque tam id mihi oratoris boni quam civis Romani proprium videtur. Sed tamen Antonius in verbis et eligendis [neque id ipsum tam leporis causa quam ponderis,) et collocandis et comprehen- sione devinciepidis nihil non ad rationem et tamquam ad artem derigebat: verum multo magis hoc idem in sententiarum orna- mentis et conformationibus. Quo genere quia praestat omnibus Demosthenes, idcirco a doctis oratorum est princeps iudicatus. lxv^^ora enim quae vocant Graeci, ea maxime ornant oratorem, quae twn tam in verbis pingendis habent pondus, quam in il- luminandis sententiis. Sed cum haec magna in Antonio, turn actio singularis; quae si partienda est in gestum atque vocem. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 63 gestus erat non verba exprimens, sed cum sententiis congruens, manus, umeri, latera, supplosio pedis, status, incessus, omnisque motus ; vox permanens, verum subrauca natura. Sed hoc vitium huic uni in bonum convertebat. Habebat enim flebile quiddam in questionibus aptumque cum ad fidem faciendam tum ad miseri- cordiam commovendam ; ut verum videretur in hoc illud, quod Demosthenem ferunt ei, qui quaesivisset quid primum esset in dicendo, actionem, quid secundum, idem, et ide?n tertium respon- disse. Nulla res magis penetrat in animos, eosquefingit, format, flectit, talesque oratores videri facit quales ipsi se videri volunt. 143 (Crassus). Huic{\.t. Antonio) alii parem esse dicebant, alii anteponebant L. Crassum. Illud quidem certe omnes ita )udi- cabant, neminem esse qui horum altero uno patrono cuiusquam ingenium requireret. Equidem quamquam Atitonio tantum tribuo quantum supra dixi, tamen Crasso nihil statuo fieri potuisse perfectius. Erat summa gravitas, erat cum gravitate iunctus facetiarum et urbanitatis oratorius, non scurrilis, lepos ; Latine loquendi accurata, et sine moles tia diligens elegantia ; in dis- serendo mira explicatio ; cum de iure civili, aim de aequo et bono disputaretur, argumentorum et si?nilitudinum copia. Nam ut Antonius coniectura movenda, aut sedanda suspicione aut excitanda incredibilem vim habebat, sic in interpretando, in defniendo, in explicanda aequitate nihil erat Crasso copiosius ; idque cutn saepe alias tum apud centumviros in M\ Curi causa cognitum est. 148 (Scaevola and Crassus). Crassus erat elegantium par- cissimus, Scaevola parcorum elegantissimus ; Crassus in su?nma comitate habebat etiam severitatis satis, Scaevolae jnulta in severitate non deerat tamen comitas. Licet omnia hoc modo ; sed vereor, ne fingi videantur haec ut dicantur a me quodam niodo ; res tamen sic se habet. Cum omnis virtus sit, ut vestra. Brute, vetus Academia dixit, mediocritas, uterque horu?n medium quiddam volebat sequi ; sed ita cadebat, ut alter ex alterius laude partem, uterque autem suam totam haberet. 201 (Cotta and Sulpicius). Quoniam ergo oratoru?n bonorum —hos enim quaerimus— duo genera sunt, unum attenuate presse- (I 64 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. que, alter um sublate ampleque dicentium ; etsi id melius est, quod .splendidius et magnificentius, tamen in bonis omnia quae summa sunt iure laudantur. Sed cavenda est presso illi oratori inopia et ieiunitas, amplo autem inflatum et corruptum orationis genus. Inveniebat igitur acute Cotta, dicebat pure ac solute ; et ut ad infirfTiitatem laterum perscienter contentionem omnem remiserat, sic ad virium imbecillitatem dicendi accommodabat genus. Nihil erat in eius oraiione nisi sincerum, nihil nisi sicatni atque sanum ; illudque fnaxi?num, quod cum contentione orationis flectere animos iudicum vix posset nee omnino eo genere diceret, tractando tamen impellebatut idem facerent a secommoti, quod a Sulpicioconcitati. Fuit enim Sulpicius vel maxime omnium, qtios quidem ego audiverim, grandis et ut ita dicam tragicus orator. Vox cum • magna turn suavis et splendida ; gestus et motus corporis ita venustus, ut tamen ad forum, non ad scaenam ins ti tutus videretur ; incitata et volubilis, necea redundans tamen nee ciraimfluensoratio. 261 (Caesar). Caesar autem rationem adhibens consuetu- dinem vitiosafn et corruptam pura et incorrupta consuetudine emendat. Itaque cum ad hanc elegantiam verborum Latinorum {quae, etiamsi orator non sis et sis ingenuus civis Romanus. tamen necessaria est) adiungit ilia oratoria ornamenta dicendi, tum videtur tamquam tabulas bene pictas collocare in bono lumifie. Hanc cum habeat praecipuam laudem, in communibus non video cui debeat cedere. Splendidam quandam minimeque veteratoriam rationem dicendi tenet, voce motu forma etiam magnificam et generosam quodam modo. Tum Brutus : Orationes quidem eius mihi vehementer probantur ; complures autem legi, atque etiam commentarios quos scripsit rerum suarum. Valde quidem, inquam, probandos ; nudi enim sunt, recti et venusti, omni ornatu orationis tamquam veste detracta. Sed dum voluit alios habere para ta unde sumere?it qui vellent scribere historiam, ineptis gratum fortasse fecit, qui volent ilia calamistris inurere; sanos quidem homines a scribendo deterruit, nihil est enim in historia pura et illustri brevitate dulcius. 274 (Calidius). Sed de M. Calidio dicamus aliquid, qui non fuit orator unus e multis,potius inter multosprope singularis fuit : LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 65 ita reconditas exquisitasque sententias mollis et pellucens vestiebat oratio. Nihil tam tenerum quam eius comprehensio verborum nihil tam flexibile, nihil quod magis ipsius arbitrio fingeretur ut nulhus oratoris aeque in potestate fuerit ; quae primum ita pura erat ut nihil liquidius, ita libere fluebat, ut nusquam adhaeres- ceret. Nullum nisi loco positum et tamquam in vermiculato emblemate, ut ait Lucilius structum verbum videres ; nee vero ullum aut durum aut insolens aut humile aut longius ductum • ac non propria verba rerum, sed pleraque translata, sic tamen ut ea non irruisse in alienum locum, sed immigrasse in suum diceres ; nee vero haec soluta nee diffluentia, sed astricta numeris non aperte nee eodem modo semper, sed varie dissimulanterque conclusts. Erant autem et verborum et sententiarum ilia lumina quae vocant Graeci frxwara, quibus tamquam insi^nibus in ornatu distinguebatur omnis oratio . . . Accedebat ordo rerum plenus artis, actio libera lis, totumque dicendi placidum et sanum genus. Quodsi est optimum suaviter dicere, nihil est quod melius hoc quaerendum putes. Sed cum a nobis paulo ante dictum sit trta videri esse quae orator efficere debet, ut doceret, ut delectaret ut moveret : duo summe tenuit, ut et rem illustraret disserendo et amnios eorum, qui audirent, devinceret voluptate ; aberat tertia ilia laus, qua permoveret atque incitaret animos, quam plu- rtmum pollere diximus, neque erat ulla vis atque contentio • sive consilio, quod eos, quorum altior oratio actioque esset ardentior furere et bacchari arbitraretur, sive quod natura non esset ita f actus, sive quod non consuesset, sive quod non posset. Hoc unum till, si nihil utilitatis habebat, ahfuit ; si opus erat, defuit. 301 (Hortensius). Primum memoria tanta {erat), quantam in nulla cognovisse me arbitror, ut, quae secum commentatus esset ea sine scripto verbis eisdem redderet, quibus cogitavisset. Hoc adiumento ille tanto sic utebatur, ut sua et commentata et scripta et nulla referente omnia adversariorum dicta meminisset Ar- debat autem cupiditate sic, ut in nulla umquam fla^rantius studium vtderim. Nullum enim patiebatur esse diem, quin aut tn foro diceret aut meditaretur extra forum ; saepissime autem eodem die utrumque faciebat. Attuleratque minime volmre VOL. II. r 66 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. genus dicendi ; duas quidem res, quas nemo alius ; partitiones, quibus de rebus diciurus esset, et coUectiones eorum quae essent dicta contra quaeque ipse dixisset. Erat in verborum splendore eleganSy compositione aptus, facultate copiosus ; eaque erat cum summo ingenio turn exercitationibus fnaximis consecutus. Rem compkctebatur memoriter, dividebat aaite, nee praetertnittebat fere quicquam quod esset in causa aut ad confirmandum aut ad refeliendutn. Vox canora et suavis, motus et gestus etiam plus artis habebat quam erat oratori satis. It will have been noticed that the method of Cicero's criticism is a very simple one. It is to summarize in terse expressions the literary qualities of the speakers whom he passes in review, with little preface, and no attempt, such as a modern writer would make, to set their productions in their'' historical framework, or to trace the growth of style in its historical development. But in this Cicero is only the child of his time. He follows in the same track as the Greek critics, in all probability, had done before him, as undoubtedly Dio- nysius and the author of the Tre/jl Z^ovs did after him. What is Cicero's own, and what should make these criticisms im- mortal, is their genius, their fulness of light, the perfect mastery of the writer over his thoughts, his power of mould- ing the Latin language to his purpose, the self-control which forbids him to use a word too much. His usual prolixity is thrown aside, and he returns to obey the true laws of ex- pression. As a critic, Cicero can write with all Tacitus's terse- ness, and without any of Tacitus's affectation. (3) In the De Legibus"" (i § 5) Atticus says to Cicero postulatur a te iam diu flagitatur vel potius historia. Sic enim putant, te illam tractante effici posse ut in hoc etiam genere Graeciae nihil cedamus. Atque ut audias quid ego ipse sentiam, non solum mihi videris eorum studiis qui litteris delectantur, set etiam patriae debere hoc munus, ut ea, quae salva per te est, per te eundetn sit ornata. Abest enim historia litteris nostris, ut et ipse intellego et ex te persaepe audio. Poles autem tu profecto ' See also De Orat. 2. 51 foil. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 67 satis facere in ea, guippe cum sit of us, ut tihi quidem videri soiet, u„um hoc oratorium maxime. We must, after all, pause before ,.-e laugh at the weakness and shallowness of this passage, for in the remarkable words opus (Aistorici) est unum oratonummaxime Cicero sums up, not his own view only, but one wh.ch was very widely prevalent in antiquity The rheto- ricians, m fact, claimed history as part of their province, and their cr,t.cism was naturally directed only to the form of writing .gnonng the whole question of research and philosophical treatment. Hence it was observed as a remarkable fact about Theopompus and Ephorus, that they had been pupils of Isocrates. Transplant this notion to Rome, where not only was rhetoric an important branch of education, but every circum stance of public life favoured the development of the great style of oratory and it is easy to see how style came to be regarded as the mam merit of the historian. To be a great statesman at Rome It was necessary, besides being a soldier, to be an orator • a master not only of the cultivated style which would appeal to' the forty or fifty educated senators and eguites who might meet to try a case in a court of law, but of the broader effects which alone could make an impression upon the great ..«//.««. Oratory not rhetoric) bade fair in the hands of a comprehensive genius like Cicero to absorb the whole field of knowledge and education. To Cicero, if we may trust him in the De Oratore, knowledge is the necessary condition of eloquence, but know- ledge must be subservient to eloquence. One can hardly com- plain of him for adopting a point of view which after all was the prevalent one with the mass of educated men in classical antiquity. For with them literature was surbordinate to life. The Idea of investigation, of painful study, undertaken merely for the sake of ascertaining the truth in regions of fact such as history or natural science, was comparatively unfamiliar to the hterary aristocracies who ruled the ancient Graeco-Roman world One might perhaps have expected it to be developed either in the schools of the philosophers or among the grammatici or scholars. But the centre of gravity of philosophy shifted, since F 2 ■■j.;:'..t'.>;ji..«t...tida'.i^jiE'-.jctjj!!,i.._KM»aua-,j.j.''jA.j 68 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. \^i I the time of Aristotle, more and more towards problems of speculative ethics ; while scholarship satisfied itself with verbal and textual criticism. Nothing gives a better indication of the manner in which the ancient world as a whole conceived the duty of a historian, than the fact that Livy's history of Rome, the defects of which are now familiarly known to every in- dustrious sixth-form schoolboy, was generally accepted as satisfactory, and only superseded by abridgements of itself. What therefore Cicero desired in the matter of history was not a profound critical work investigating the origin and de- velopment of the Roman constitution. Can it be said that any of his contemporaries could have had this idea? It would be as reasonable to expect that they would have proposed the abolition of slavery, or devised a system of representative government. Cicero wanted a history of Rome written in a luminous narrative style, with due regard to literar)- form and with striking rhetorical illustrations of Roman manners and character, subsidiary no doubt to the main idea of celebrating the growth of the Roman empire. This was all that lay within his power ; nor is it too much to say that had he been granted the leisure to execute it, the task would not have been beyond his capacity, if we may judge by the specimens of historical narrative which he has left in the De Re Publica and De Legibus. This short survey of the literary criticism of the Ciceronian age may be closed with the observation that its original genius, so far as the surviving books allow us to judge, was Cicero ; and that Cicero, in his criticisms on oratorical prose, not merely left proofs of his power which are in themselves gems of their kind, but laid down principles and adopted an attitude which have a wide significance for artistic criticism in general, as well as for the special branch of literature with which he was con- cerned ; finally, that his faulty judgement in regard to histor\' was, when the circumstances of his age are considered, not only excusable but inevitable. In the following essay I shall en- deavour to sketch the histor)- of literary criticism in Latin from Horace to Tacitus. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 69 II. The change of tone which strikes us at once on passing from the criticism of the Ciceronian to that of the Augustan age was, as we saw in the last essay, partly prepared by the Alexandrian and so-called Attic tendency, headed, to all appear- ance, by Calvus and his friends, which roused Cicero to a public assertion of his own principles in the Brutus and the Orator. The Alexandrian school liked obscure subjects, short poems, long preparation, elaborate workmanship : the so-called Atticists professed a passion for purity, simplicity, and condensation. Cicero cared more for breadth, grasp, and general inspiration, than for perfection in detail. Horace, and the school or society to which he belonged, that of Varius and Vergil, no doubt sympathized, so far as feeling for finish and preparation went, with the Alexandrians as against Varro and Cicero. But it would be a great mistake to suppose that Horace, who sneers at Calvus and Catullus, was a thorough partisan, or even a partisan at all, of the Alexandrian set. His ideal is not Alexandria, but Greece ; Greece as in the spirit and form of art the true mistress of Rome. He is as patriotic a Roman as Cicero, as anxious to serve the literary interests of his country. He feels indeed that the lessons to be learned from Greece have not yet been exhausted, and that they must be exhausted before the Latin writer could show any masterpieces to equal their models ; but it is of Latin literature that he is thinking. The Alexandrian school, he may well have thought, was im- potent to produce more than translation, imitation,and para- phrase ; of but little avail to Latin literature in the proper sense. This his unrivalled sense and literary tact would at once enable him to discover, supported as it was by his knowledge of life and its realities. For Horace was no mere student. He had seen much of the rough side of life in his youth, and had taken of mankind in general such measure as a man of more shrewd- ness and character than sympathetic power would take under the circumstances. His mind was versatile and many-sided, 11 70 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. h and so was his poetry. Lampoon, satura, epistles, and lyric in in its highest flights, — nothing came amiss to him. The centre of his taste, his point of judgement, is the firm and unalterable instinct of the cultured man of the world. Hence the ease and sureness with which he takes up his critical attitude, whether he is speaking of satire or lyric or epic or the drama. The earliest critical utterances of Horace are to be found in his Saturae, the fourth and tenth of the first book. Here, under the form of polemic against Lucilius, he asserts his own sound, if too exclusive, principle. The satura of Lucilius was too hasty, too slovenly, to be taken as a model for this form of composition. And, again, the Old Attic Comedy is not the only type for the Latin writer oisaturae, who should preserve the wider traditions of that form of writing. In general, indeed, says Horace, do not suppose poetry is a matter for the crowd. It is the gift and privilege of the few ' ; neqite enim condudere versum Dixeris esse satis, neqite si quis scrihat iiti nos Sermoni propiora, putes hiinc esse poetam. Ingenium cui sit, an mens divinior atqiie os Mapia sonatiinim, des nominis hiiiits honorem. . . . Nulla taberna meos habeat neque pila libelios. . . Nee recito aii- qiiam nisi amicis, idque coactus . . . Satis est equitem mihi plaudere. But some ten years later Horace took the opportunity of expressing his views in the form of a regular treatise, the Epistula ad Pisones'^. The Greek framework of this piece was the treatise of Neoptolemus of Parium, of which I have already given some account (p. 48). If we try to penetrate Horace's motive in going back upon this formal essay and applying it to the circumstances of literar>' Rome as he knew it, we may discover a fresh interest in what at first sight seems a dry collection of commonplace. Leaving the Greek rules, let us take as worthy of special attention the Latin applications. These fall under some five heads. * I. 4. 40 and 71. ^ [The chronological order of Horace's works and the relation of the Ars Podica to a Greek original are discussed in Mr. Nettleship's Essays in Latin Literature pp. 164, 173 foil,] ! \ LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 71 (0 45-72. Horace claims for himself and his friends that they be allowed the same liberty in coining new words as has always been conceded to his predecessors : Quid autein Caecilio Plautoque dabit Romanus, ademptiwi Vergilio Varioque ? Ego cur, aequirere pauca Si possum, invideor, cum lingua Catonis et Enni Sermonem patrium ditaverit, et nova rerum Nomina protulerit? Licuit semperque licebit Signatum praesente nota prom de re nomen. (2) 133-135- He cautions the Latin poet who translates or paraphrases from the Greek against an over-anxiety to be literal, or to bind himself strictly to the plan and character of his original. Nee verbum verbo curabis reddere fidus Interpres, nee desilies imitator in artum, Unde pedem proferre pudor vetet aut operis lex. In his general treatment let him look to Homer, not to the conventional later epic : Nee sic incipies ut scriptor cyclicus olim, ' Fortunam Priami cantabo et 7iobile bellum' (3) 234-250. Hints as to the handling of the satyric drama in the Roman stage. The language of the Fauni or Satyri should be of a colour between that of the tragic and the comic stage : Silenus should not talk in the manner of Davus. (4) The treatment of the dramatic iambic. 250-274. The old metre of Ennius and Plautus is to be discarded, and far more care taken that the iambus should be treated as a foot consisting of a short and a long syllable. (5) General warnings. 325-333. Poetry is not to be taken up lightly ; nor again is it to be supposed that inspiration without sense will be sufficient. Beware of corrupting social influences and the love of money (382-390) : nothing but the combination of industry and judgement with genius will effect anything (365-390 '- 419 to the end). Putting aside the visible irritation of Horace against the formal critics of the older school and the smarts left by Orbilius's cane; putting aside also his well-justified contempt for the crowd of writers who were taking up poetry merely because it was fashionable to do so; what must we suppose were the motives which induced him to go back upon the treatise of \\ f < i ! M 72 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. Neoptolemus, or whatever Greek work or works formed the basis of the De Arte Poetica ? The answer probably is, that being dissatisfied both with the critical principles of the Ciceronian age as represented by Varro and Cicero, and with the petty industry and conceits of the Alexandrians, he wished to recall his countrymen to the critical canons on which the great works of Hellas seemed to be based. That he should not have gone back directly to Aristotle instead of to an author who probably only embodied Aristotelian precepts at second or third hand, may at first sight appear surprising. But it is, in fact, not more surprising than that Cicero should (as he does) have recourse, for the great mass of his philosophy, not directly to Plato or Aristotle, but to their degenerate successors. It may also be that the minute rules laid down by Horace's authority were better fitted to give an air of precision to his work than the broader principles of Aristotle. However this may be, I would suggest that Horace's chief aim in the De Arte Poetica is to recall his countrymen to the thoughts and mind of the great Greek masters in their length and breadth; Grais ingenium, Grais dedit ore rotundo Musa loqui. Vos exempiaria Graeca Nocturna versate nianu^ versate diurna. He takes up the same text, but treats it with riper judgement and in a less scholastic tone, in the two epistles of the second book. These are the best of Horace's critical utterances. The pedantic framework of Greek texts and Greek words has disappeared, and the genius of the poet speaks unfettered. The theme is, again, the rights of himself and his school ; mere antiquity is nothing ; nothing will excuse the lack of finish ; a fine line or fine word here and there will not compensate for general carelessness ; and more of the same kind which it is unnecessar)' to repeat here. For it is Horace's incomparable manner, his ease and the sureness of his tread, which really interests the reader of these two epistles. What can be more beautiful in its way than the following (^/. 2. 2. 109-125)? At qui iegitimum cupiet fecisse poema Cum tabu/is animum ccnsoris sumet honesti ; Audebit, quaecumque parum splendoris LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 73 habebunt Et sinepondere erunt et ho?iore indigna ferentur Verba, movere loco, quamvis inviia recedant, Et versentur adhuc inter penetralia Vestae ; Obscurata diu populo bonus eruet, atque Proferet in lucem speciosa vocabula rerum, Quae priscis me- morata Catonibus atque Cethegis Nunc situs informis preinit et deserta vetustas ; Adsciscet nova, quae genitor produxerit usus ; Vemens et liquidus puroque simillimus amni Fundet opes, Latiumque beabit divite lingua: Luxuriantia compescet, nimis aspera sano Levabit cultu, virtute carentia toilet, Ludentis specie fn dabit et torquebitur, ut qui Nunc Satyrum, nunc agrestem Cyclopa movetur. If the sane judgement of Horace sometimes lacks sympathy and generosity, especially when he is speaking of the older poets admired by Varro and Cicero and Orbilius, the defect is amply supplied by Ovid. His luxuriant genius was naturally combined with a comprehensive sympathy, which refused to excommunicate the real poets of any age or style ' ; Ennius arte carens, animosique Accius oris, Casunan nullo tempore nomen habent : Varronem primamque ratem quae tiesciet aetas, Aureaque Aesonio terga petita ducil Carmina sublimis tutu sunt peri tura Lucre ti, Exitio terras cum dabit ufia dies : Tityrus et fruges Aeneiaque arma legentur, Roma triumphati dum caput orbis erit. Or again '\ Utque suo Martem cecinit gravis Ennius ore, Ennius ingenio maximus, arte rudis, Explicat et causas rapidi Lucretius ignis Casurumque triplex vaticinatur opus. One cannot but admire, as in the case of Cicero, the generous desire to recognize merit, the perfect mastery of critical language, the rapid flowing manner, half concealing the delicate care with which each weighty expression is wrought out. As Homer was attacked by Zoilus, so Vergil was criticized by Carvilius Pictor in his Aeneidomastix, and in the same spirit of petty cavil. None the less did Vergil and Horace become classics soon after their death. The result was that they drove out the taste for the older poets, and even for the writers of the Ciceronian age. Not that there were not many ' Am. I. 15. 19. 2 jyist, 2. 423. 74 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. antiquarians or lovers of the ancients among the Roman litterati as long as Latin literature existed. But the new school carried with it, during the first century, many of the most genial minds. To Persius, for instance, the love of Pacuvius and Accius is a mere morbid survival * : Est nunc Brisaei quern venosus liber Acci, Sunt quos Pacuviusque et verrucosa moretur Antiopa^ aerumnis cor iuctificabiie fulta. If Persius only once says in terms that Horace in his ideal, his constant imitation of him — for it must always be remembered that in the ancient world to imitate a poet was to show one's admiration of him— is a living witness to the fact. Lucan's Pharsaiia teems with imitations of Vergil; may not then Lucan and Persius be taken respectively as representatives of the Vergilian and Horatian schools ? It is worth while to ask in this place whether Eumolpus, the poet in Petronius, may not be taken as a representative of the serious school whose champions, during the age of Nero, were Persius in satire, Lucan in epic, and Seneca in tragedy. No Latin satirist, so far as we can judge from the remains, ap- proaches Petronius in delicacy of innuendo ; and it requires some careful reading to discern what I believe is now hardly disputed, that the hexameters of Eumolpus on the civil war are a parody of Lucan's Pharsaiia. His iambics on the Troiae Halosis seem to me to be no less clearly a parody of Seneca. Now Eumolpus is a declared admirer of the Vergilian and Horatian school -^ ; Muitos (inquit Eumolpus) carmen decepit. Nam ut quisque versum pedibus instruxit sensumque teneriorem verbontm ambitu intexuit, putavit se continuo in Heiiconem venisse. Sic forensibus ministeriis exercitati frequenter ad carmifiis tranquillitatem tamquam ad portum feiiciorem re- fugerunt, credentes faciiius poema extrui posse quam contro- versiam sententioiis vibratitibus piciaju. Ceterum neque gene- roswr spiritus vanitatem amat, neque concipere aut edere partum mens potest nisi ingenti flumine iitterantm inundata. Refu- giendum est ab omni verborum, ut ita dicam, viiitate, et sumendae '•7^- ' Petronius Ii8. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 75 voces a plebe semotae, ut fiat ' Odi profanum vu/gus et arceo: Praeterea curandum est ne sententiae emineant extra corpus orationis expressae, sed intexto vestibus colore niteant. Homerus testis et lyrici Romanusque Vergilius et Horatii curiosa fe- licitas. Observe the direct contradiction in these words to Cicero's deliverance ' ; ut porro conspersa sit quasi verborum sententiarumque floribus, id non debet esse fusum aequabiliter per omnem orationem, sed ita distinctum, ut sint quasi in ornatu disposita quaedam insignia et lumina. The true poet, according to Eumolpus, must be a deep student of literature j every sentence must be thought out, and the tissue of the composition consciously interwoven with the fibres of older writing ; there must be nothing careless, no brave neglect, but all must be a delicate web of rich and carefully wrought colours. Now in his first satire Persius takes up somewhat the same parable. Poetry, he complains, is thought an easy matter ^ : Ecce modo heroas sensus adferre videmus Nugari solitos Graece, nee ponere lucum Artifices, nee rus saturum laudare ; ... In udo est Maenas et Attis, Nee pluteum caedit, nee demorsos sapit ungues. All that is wanted is to write verses, anyhow, so that they are written, and to give good dinners and ask your friends to come and applaud. This serious, perhaps over-serious, tone is probably what Petronius is personifying in the character of Eumolpus, as he certainly seems to be in another passage, which reminds the reader strangely of Persius. This is the eighty-eighth chapter, where Eumolpus delivers a sermon on the current lack of true philosophy and religion. Ubi est dialectica, ubi astronomia, ubi sapientiae cultissima via ? Quis unquam venit in templum, et votum fecit 'si ad eloquentiam per- venisset ' ; Quis ' si philosophiae fontem attigisset "I Acne bonam quidem mentem aut bonam valetudinem petunt, sed statim an- tequam limen Capitolii tangant, alius donum promittit si propinquum divitem extulerit, alius si thesaurum effoderit, alius si ad trecentiens sestertium salvus pervenerit. Ipse senatus, recti bonique praeceptor, mille pondo auri Capitolio promittere solet, * Dt Orafore 3. 96. [See p. 60] « i. 69, 105. il lil l\ 76 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. et ne quis dubitet pecutiiatn conatpiscere^ lovem qiioque peculio (xornat. This may almost be described as a prose version of Persius 2. 8 — 14, 55 — 63, 70. ^ Mens bona, fama, fides^ haec dare et ut audiat hospes : Ilia sibi introrsum et sub lingua murmurat, ' O si Ebulliat patruus, praeclarum funus ^ et * O si Sub rastro crepet argenti mihi seria dextro Hercule ! pupil- lumve utinam^ quern proximus heres Impello^ expungam\ — Hinc illud subiit, auro sacras quod ovato Perducis fades . . . Aurum vasa Numae Saturniaque impulit aera, Vesta Usque urnas et Tuscum fidile mutat. O curvae in terras animae et caelestium inanes ! Quid iuvat hoc, templis nostros itnmittere mores Et bona dis ex hac scelerata ducere pulpa ? ... At vos Didte, pontijices, in sando quid fadt aurum. In corroboration of this view it may be added that Petronius in his satura adopts the form of the Varronian satura Menippea, the genuine medley of prose and verse, the genuine literary drama with its various characters. He does not write in hexameters, as Horace and his imitator Persius. In fact, he does not like the Vergilian and Horatian school as represented by the serious Stoical poets, Lucan, Persius, and Seneca. Would that more of his satura had survived, and that he could have told us definitely whether his heart was, as I suspect, and as he seems to hint in his first chapter, with Varro and Cicero. The sharp conflict between the Ciceronians and anti-Cicero- nians, the enemies of the new educational method based on dedamatii\ and its champions, are clearly enough described in the first two chapters of Petronius. They are to a certain extent toned down in Quintilian, who, however, on the whole throws the weight of his authority against the modern tendency. Before proceeding to examine his literary criticism in detail, it is necessary to say a few words on his position at Rome, which, to a certain extent, seems to have influenced his attitude as a critic. M. Fabius Quintilianus was born at Calagurris in Spain about 35 A.D. But he passed his youth and most of the remaining part of his life in Rome, where his father was by LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 77 profession a teacher of rhetoric. He himself was an active pleader in the courts, and a professor (probably the most celebrated in Rome) of declamation and eloquence. In the year 88 {aet. 53) he was placed at the head of the first state- supported (publica) school in Rome, with a salary from the public treasury. His great work, the Institutio Oratoria, was begun probably in his fifty-sixth year, having been preceded by a smaller book De Causis Corruptae Ehquetitiae, or the reasons of the decline in prose writing. The Institutio Oratoria is thus the work of a man qualified by every external circumstance for his task. Quintilian had full experience both of life and education ; he was thoroughly familiar, not only with every detail of the ordinary educational airriadutn, and the technicalities of declamation, but also with the practice of the courts. The most talented youths in Rome, such men as Tacitus and the younger Pliny, were his pupils. John Stuart Mill called the Institutio Oratoria a great work ; and a modern reader must undoubtedly admire not only its good sense and manly tone, but its breadth of conception, and the depth and variety of educational principles brought to bear upon the one point, the education of a speaker. Quintilian writes with a full mind and a complete devotion to his profession. But what I tried to point out with regard to Cicero is still truer of Quintilian. In his view oratory includes the whole of literary education. It is the Ciceronian ideal, worked out with more system, and in fuller and more practical detail, than was possible to Cicero. Oratory is the great liberal profession, the profession of the lawyer, senator, and statesman ; let it then be made to cover the whole field of literature. This is Quintilian's idea, not an ignoble one ; and from it proceeds whatever is strong and weak in his literary criticism. Quintilian is by no means indifferent to the ethical element in literary or oratorical performance. A great orator, to him as to Cato, is vir bonus dicendi peritus. After reading the i M 78 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. gross flattery which he administers to Domitian not only as an able administrator and general but as a literary man ', one is somewhat surprised at the boldness of his moral pro- nouncements = 7iefuturum quidem oratorem nisi vimm bonum : ne studiis quidem opens puicherrimi vacare mens nisi omnibus vitiis libera potest. But it is fair to remember that in the narrower sense of the word there seems to be no doubt that the morality of Quintilian was unimpeachable : and this is something when we recall what is said of Remmius Palaemon and Hamillus. Again, Quintilian expressly says^ that he is speaking rather of his ideal than of any probable reality; cum proprie et ad legem ipsam veritatis ioquendum ent, eum quadra oratorem quem et ilk {Cicero) quaerebat. Practically, he says, one must judge of a great orator by his motive and general intention. Even if Demosthenes and Cicero are chargeable with the faults alleged against them by their ene- mies, it must be said that the public career of Demosthenes compensated for his shortcomings, and that Cicero was never lackmg m the voluntas boni civis. Granting this, an indulgent casuistry will allow some freedom to a great orator ^ da nunc ut crimine manifesto prematur dux bonus, et sine quo vincere hostem civitas non possit: nonne ei communis utilitas oratorem advocabit 1 All this, perhaps, would hardly be worth quoting were it not that Quintilian's somewhat pretentious moral overture leads us to expect something more than a mere recurrence to the ordinar)' canons of human judgement. One would be glad to know whether he would have thought it a necessar>- virtue in a bonus grammaticus to read and conscientiously study the Greek authors on whom he passes formal critical judgements For It IS, alas ! too plain that, whether Quintilian had or had not read them, he contents himself in many cases with merely repeating the traditional criticisms of the Greek schools upon some of the principal Greek authors. ' Preface to the fourth book, and 10. i. 91. 13. I. 19. * 12. I. 43. ' 12. I. 3,4. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY 79 In the first chapter of his tenth book Quintilian proposes a course of reading calculated to form the taste of a young man aspiring to success as a speaker. The list of books falls into wo parts, the first of which comprises the Greek, the second the Latm classics. The order observed in both parts is the same, VIZ poetry, the drama, history, oratory, and philosophy. And in both Quintilian represents himself as ranking his authors in order of merit [ordinem ducere) In the case of the first list, or list of Greek authors, he gives his readers fair warning that he is only repeating other people's cnticisms, not pronouncing his own. In .^ 27 he mentions Theophrastus by name ; in § 52, speaking of Hesiod, he says datur etpalma &c. : in § 53, the second place is given to Antimachus by the consent of the gramma tici: Panyasis is thought (putant) in eloquendo neutrius aequare virtutes Calli- machus (58) princeps habetur (elegiae\ secundas confessione Plunmorrun Philetas occupavit. In 59 only three iambograpki are referred to, those, namely, who were allowed by Ans- tarchus I h^naz^em lyrici (6 1 ) were probably also a selection of Aristarchus : in any case they are the Pindarus nv npayfiarua Ka\ rrj kot avr6u oWovop^la ^ii^v.yKtP. ' [DioHj^sn Halicarnassensis lihrortim de imitatione reliquiae, edidit H. Usener. Bonnae 1889. Mr. Nettlcship does not follow Usener's text absolutely.] LITERARY CRITICISM jy LATIN ANTIQUITY. 8l Quintilian 54 /'a»j'asm ex utroque mixtum futant in eloquendo ncutnusque aeguare virtutes, alUrum tamen ab eo materia, alterum dtsponendi ratione superari. So far it seems clear that both Quintilian and Dionysius are followmg the grammatid, i. e. probably Aristarchus and Aristophanes. The passage about Panyasis is very important as beanng on this point : Quintilian, while saying evidently much the same as Dionysius, says noiputat Dionysius but /«/««/■ After this Quintilian has some criticisms which are not in )|onys.us, viz. on Archilochus, Apollonius Rhodius, Aratus, mtT"'"''/pt',"'''' '''''''^''' ''"P"^""""' ■'"y"^^"^. Calli- machus, and Philetas. (Pindar). Dionysius 1. c. z„X.ro. &i .„; uMapo, i.„^r.u «ara.„„,„ <„; Sv.a^,^, .„; ,,«„„ ^„- .8„,-^_ ^„. ^^^.^^^,^^ ,,,. \ rov lw?ip^, Xndrtv. So Quintilian (83) q?ad Aristotelem 1 quern dubito seientia rerum an seriptorum copia an eloquendi suavitafe an inventionum aaimine an varietate ope mm elariorem putem. The following sections in Quintilian (83-84), on Theo- phrastus and the Stoics, have nothing corresponding to them in Dionysius. Nor can it be said that in their remarks upon the orators Demosthenes, Aeschines, and Hyperides (Quin- tilian 76-7) there is much notable coincidence between the two critics. The general conclusion seems to be that for much of his criticism on the Greek poets, historians, and philosophers (if not for that on the orators), Quintilian is indebted to Theophrastus and later writers, as Aristophanes and Aris- tarchus '. It is not, therefore, much to the point to inquire how far he had studied or even read the authors upon whom he passes judgement. Doubtless he was familiar with his Homer, his tragedians, his Menander; he had probably read Thucydides, Herodotus, and Xenophon ; but it would * Usener. on a comparison of the criticisms in Cicero respecially the Hortensius), Dionysios, Quintilian, and Dio Cassius,sums np his conclusion thus : ludicia de poetis scriptonhusque Graccis non a Dionysio Quintilianus muluatus est. Igititr m Dionysitts quidem sua profert, sed diver sum utcrque exemplum iudiciorum ut plerumque con sonant turn expressit. Font is utrique communis antiqintatem Hortensius Tullianus cum Dione cofiparatus demonstravit. Posteriore tempore cum eruditionis copia in angustae memoriae paupcrtatem sensim contraheretur, iudiciis neglectis sola electorum auctortan nomina relicta sunt, et laterculi formam induerunt. (p. 132.) C 2 i! y. ^'iii 84 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. be rash to credit him with a wide knowledge of Greek h'tera- ture. When speaking of the less known authors he sometimes avowedly quotes the judgements of others ; sometimes he lets the reader clearly perceive that he is talking at second-hand. This carelessness and indolent repetition of scholastic con- ventionalities is a great blot upon his work. We must, however, do him the justice of supposing that his criticisms of the masters of Latin literature (§§ 85 >//.) are, on the whole, independent. Let me endeavour briefly to sum up the chief points in them which seem to require attention, (i) They are vitiated throughout by the idea of making canons of classical Latin authors to correspond as closely as possible with the Greek canons. Vergil leads the van among the poets as the I^tin Homer ; Macer and Lucretius follow as representing Hesiod and the didactic poets. The elegiac poets, Propertius and TibuUus, follow next, answering to Tyrtaeus; then the satirists, who of course have no (ireek counterparts; then the writers of lampoon, Catullus, Bibaculus, and Horace, to match Archilochus ; the lyric poets, Horace corresponding to Pindar ; the dramatist, comic and tragic, among whom Varius is singled out as equal to any of the Greeks: the historians, Sallust being matched with Thucydides and Livy with Herodotus ; the orators, Cicero being of course compared in detail with Demosthenes ; and the philosophers, among whom we are told that Cicero is aemu/us Piatonis. It is needless to point out the weakness of this criticism, nor, after what has been already said, is there any difficulty in explaining its genesis. It is much more important to ask what is its positive value, what idea it gives us of Quintilian's literary insight. (2) It will be observed, first, that Quintilian is a Cicero- nian, and that he is so both as against the younger school of his own day and as against the pre-Ciceronian literature. Ennius he sets aside with a few respectful words (88) : Pacuvius and Accius, one must almost suppose, he had never read : virium iamen Accio plus tribuitur, Pacuvium videri doctiorcm, qui esse LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 85 docli adfeciant, volunt (97). If he had read them, then, he did not thmk ,t worth his while to pass an independent judgement upon them. The comedians, Plautus, Caecilius, and Terence he will hardly notice ; so far, he thinks, do they fall below their Greek origmals. Lucretius he totally misconceives, even grantmg his point of view, for can it be said that there are no fine passages of rhetoric in the De Rerum Nafura •> The criticisms on the post-Ciceronian writers are for the most part (remembering always that Quintilian is thinking of the needs of an orator) sound and well expressed, notably that upon Ovid nifmum amator ingenii sui : si imperare ingemo sua quam ill du/gere maluisset (98). But they are mostly too short, and leave the impression that the writer is anxious to get to the end of them. In speaking of Cicero, however, Quintilian rises to the height of real enthusiasm, and has left a passage (105-112) which deserves to be quoted entire, as perhaps the most typical instance of what his thoughtfulness and insight can attain to: Orator es vero vel praecipue Latinam ehqueniiam parem facere Graecae possunt Nam Ciceronem cuicunque eorum fortiter opposuerim. Nee ignoro quantam mihi concitem pugnam cum praesertim non id sit propositi, ut eum Demostheni comparem hoc tempore ; neque enim attinet, cum Demosthenem in primi, iegendum vel ediscendum potius putem. Quorum ego virtutes pierasque arbitror similes, consilium, ordinem, dividendi, prae- parandi,probandi rationem, omnia denique quae sunt inventionis. In ehquendo est aliqua diversitas ; densior ilk, hie copiosior, ii/e conc/udit astrictius, hie iatius, pugnat ille acumine semper hie frequenter et pondere, illi nihil detra hi potest, huie nihil adici, eurae plus in illo, in hoc naturae. Salibus certe et commisera- tione, quae duo plurimum in adfectibus valent, vineimus. Et fortasse epi logos illi mos civitatis abstulerit ; sed et nobis ilia, quae Attici mirantur, diversa La tin i sermon is ratio minus per- miserit. . . . Cedendum vero in hoe, quod et prior fuit, et ex magna parte Ciceronem, quantus est, feat. Nam mihi videtur M. Tullius, eum se totum ad imitationem Graecorum contulisset, n\ VI i r m 86 LITERARY CRITJCISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. effinxisse vim Demosthenis, copiam Platonis, iucunditatem Iso- cratis. Nee vero quod in quoque optimum fuit studio consecutus est tantum^ sed pluri?nas vel potius omnes ex se virtu tes extulit imtnor talis ingenii beatissima ubertas. Non enim ^pluvias^ ut ait Pindar us ^ ' aquas colligit, sed vivo gurgite exundat,' dono quo- dam providentiae genitus in quo totas vires suas e/oquentia experirctur. Nam quis docere diligentius^ movere vehementius potest ? Cui tanta umquam iucunditas affuit ? ut ipsa ilia quae cxtorquet impetrare cum credas, et cum transversum vi sua iudi- cemferat^ tamen ilk non rapi videatur sed sequi. lam in omnibus quae dicit tanta auctoritas inest ut dissentire pudeat^ nee advoeati studium, sed testis aut iudieis adferat fidetn ; cum interim haee omnia, quae vix singula quisquam intentissima eura eonsequi posset, fluunt inlaborata, et ilia, qua tiihil pulehrius audit um est, oratio prae se fert tamen felieissimam facilitate m. Qua re non immerito ab omnibus aetatis suae regnare in iudiciis dictus est, apud posteros vero id consecutus, ut Cicero iam non hominis nofnen sed eloquentiae habeatur. Hunc igitur spectemus^ hoc propositum nobis sit exemplum, ille profecisse se sciat cui Cicero valde placebit. This refined and carefully written criticism, in which hardly a word could be missed, may (granting the writer's point of view) be regarded as a classical monument of what educated insight, with manly and sober sense to support it, can effect. But genius is absent from the passage, as indeed from every word that Quintilian wrote. For that we must go to a far greater than Quintilian, one who was probably his pupil, and whose critical dicta, in form much resembling those of Quintilian, breathe a very different spirit, the author of the Bialogus de Oratoribus. Quintilian, writing for his pupils, takes the line natural for a man who stood in his day at the head of the educational profession. His main question, put into modern language, is ' What is the best reading on which to form a good oratorical style ? ' Tacitus is not so directly concerned with the literary and professional aspects of the question. He penetrates to the LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 87 heart of his subject, and asks under what social conditions do great writing and great speaking arise ? seeing clearly (and this is the important point which characterizes the treatise) that literature must be taken and judged as the expression of national life, not as a matter of form and of scholastic teaching. The first fifteen chapters of the Dialogus contain a discussion on the comparative advantages offered respectively by the life of the active lawyer and that of the poet. We are here con- cerned not with these, but with the remainder of the dialogue, in which Aper and Messalla defend respectively the modern and the older style of Latin eloquence. Aper takes very much the same line as is suggested by Eumolpus in Petronius. He limits the field to a comparison between the orators of the Ciceronian age and those of his own, excluding the consideration of Cato and the Gracchi. In a vivid and lucid statement he lays down the principle that literary style changes with the times ; that this has always been the case ; that Cato improved upon Appius Claudius, Gracchus on Cato, Crassus on Gracchus, Cicero on Crassus. Non esse unum eloquentiae vultum, sed in Hits quoque quos vocatis antiqjws plures species deprehendi, nee statim deterius esse quod diversum estK The orator who gave the impulse in the modern direction was Cassius Severus, and he did so deliberately; non injirmitate ingenii nee inscitia litterarum transtulisse se ad aliud dieendi genus contendo, sed iudicio et intellectu. Vidit namque, ut paulo ante dicebam, cum condicione temporum et diversitate aurium formafn quoque ac speciem orationis esse mutandam. The present age cannot put up with the lengthi- ness and tediousness of the Ciceronians. It requires rapid and brilliant embodiment of thought ; the orator must aim at the beauty of poetry, must form himself on Horace, Vergil, and Lucan. One great merit of Cicero was that his sense and taste were far in advance of contemporary opinion {nee ulla re magis oratores aetatis eiusdem praecurrit quam iudicio) I He was the first orator who developed style in its perfection. ' C. 18. ^ c. 22. f 88 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. You may find memorable sayings in Cicero, at least in the later speeches composed in his old age ; his earlier orations give you nothing to carry away (nihii excerpere, nihil referre possis). To sum up in Aper's own words : Ego autem oratorem stmt locupietem et lautum patrem famiiiae, non eo tantum voio tecto iegi quod imbrem ac ventutn arceat, sed etiam quod visuvi et omlos delectet: non ea solum instmi supellecfile quae neces- sarm usibus sufficiaf, sed sit in apparatu eius et aurtnn et gemmae, ut sumere in manus et aspicere saepius libeat. Quaedam veroprocul arceanfur ut iam oblitterafa et [olentia] ; nullum sit verbum velut rubigine in/ectum, nulli sensus tarda et inerti structura in morem annalium componantur, fui^itet foedam et insulsam scurrilitatem, rariet compositionem, nee omnes clausulas uno et eodem tnodo determinet. The reply of Messalla on behalf of the Ciceronian orators is opened by the statement that, different as thev are Cicero Calvus, Asinius Pollio, Caelius, the sane complexion of their style IS the same ; omnes eandem sanitatem prae se ferunt Their intention, their spirit, is akin. The modern manner" w.th Its prettmess and wanton tricks, is the manner of the decadence. The cause of the decline is a moral one. The education of children has passed from the hands of the parents into those of Greek nurses and slaves, none of whom pauses to think what should or should not be said in the presence of a child. Again, while the youths of the Ciceronian age (to take the mstance of Cicero himself) were brought into personal contact with the great masters of philosophy, oratory, and law, as Philo, Antonius, and Mucius Scaevola, boys are now sent to the professional rhetoricians to be taught to declaim, i. e. to practise speaking on fictitious themes-/^//, nee ullo modo adventatem accedentibus controz'ersiis\ Apud maiores nostro. luvems ille qui foro et eloquentine parabatur, imbutus iam domestica disaplina, refertus honestis studiis, deducebatur a patre velaproptnquis ad eum oratorem qui principem in civitate locum i. L^h//' 7-^^'^"'" complaint, as to the unreality of these dcdamationcs IS to be found in Petronius, c. i. '«"t//7fj. LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 89 obtinebat. Hum sectari, hunc prosequi, huius omnibus didioni- bus interesse sive in iudiciis sive in contionibus assuescebat, ita ut altercationes quoque exciperet et iurgiis interesset, utque sic dixerim, pugnare in proelio disceret \ But what is the result of the modern training ? Forgetting that great speaking is rooted in wide knowledge and many accomplishments, the young speakers of to-day make bad blunders even in common expres- sions, know nothing of leges or senatus consulta, laugh at the civil law, and are terrified at the notion of studying philosophy. In paucissimos sensus et angustas sententias detrudunt elo- quentiam velut expulsam regno suo, ut quae olim omnium artium domina pulcherrimo comitatu pectora implebat, nunc circumcisa et amputata, sine apparatu, sine honore, paene dixerim sine ingenuitate, quasi una ex sordidissimis artificiis discatur. Ego hancprimam et praecipuam causa m arbitror esse cur in tantum ab eloquentia antiquorum oratorum recesserimus ^. In the rhetorical schools ' it is diflScult to say whether more harm is done by the place or the companionship or the style of teaching. Nam in loco nihil reverentiae, scilicet in quefn nemo nisi aeque imperitus in tret ; in condiscipulis nihil profectus, cum pueri inter pueros et adulescentuli inter adulescentulos pari securitate et dicant et audiantur ; ipsae vero exercitationes magna ex parte contrariae. The suasoriae are given to boys, the con- troversiae to youths : quales per fidem et quam incredibiliter compositae I Sequitur autem ut materiae abhorrenti a veritate declamatio quoque adhibeatur. Sic fit ut tyrannicidarum prae- mia aut vitiatorum electiones aut pestilentiae re media aut incesta matrum, aut quicquid in schola quotidie agitur, in foro raro vel nunquam, ingentibus verbis persequantur. But a great style, like a fire, requires fuel to sustain it, motion to arouse it, activity to strengthen it {magna eloquentia, sicut flamma, materia alituret motibus excitatur et urendo calescit). The force of genius, the brilliancy of style, depends upon the adequacy of the subject dealt with ; crescit enim amplitudine rerum vis ingenii, nee quis- quam claram et illustrem orationem efficere potest nisi qui causam ' c- 34. ^ C. 3.. ' C. 35. I 90 LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. pare,,, i„ve„it. No doubt, he goes on to say, the Roman republic paid us price for its great eloquence. Est ,„ag,m ilia et nota- bihs elo^uctia, he says in a vein worthy of Carlyle, a!u„,„a luenttae, quam stulti libertatem vacant, co„,ts seditio„u„,, effrenati popuh t,Hita„,entu,n . . . coniu„,ax, taneraria, arrogans, quae in bene const,tutis avitatibus non oritur. . . Nee tanti rei publicae Graccl,oru,n eloquenlia fuit ut pateretur et leges, nee bene fa„ia,n eloquentiae Cicero tali exitu pensavitK Striking and beautiful as this criticism is, it must be ob- served (i) that no answer is given to the objections brought by Aper to the style of the republican oratory as unsuited to the new conditions of things; and {2) that the speaker falls into a singular inconsistency when he first lays down the principle that a great style is born of great events and great surroundings, and then proceeds to condemn those very events and surround- ings as leading to the ruin of republics. This inconsistency .s not removed by the fact that he makes a moral and healthy education the first element in the production of a great speaker. I'or It IS an essential condition of this training, as he himself emphatically states, that the young man should be constantly hearing eminent orators and witnessing the real conflicts of the lorum ; and the eminent orators cannot exist without these conflicts which on his own showing are destructive of healthy public hfe. Tacitus (for we can hardly doubt that Messalla represents the views of Tacitus) is looking one way and rowing the other. He speaks or appears to speak with bitter regret of a time which he nevertheless describes as disastrous. He ought surely to have gone on to condemn eloquence altogether or at any rate to limit it strictly to the field of forensic business! tut these observations need not preclude us from awarding o the D,a.'osus de Oratoribus the palm among the pieces of luerary criticism which have come down to us from Latin antiquity. The only work which can be compared with it is the Bru„.soi Cicero. But this falls behind Tacitus's book not merely because Cicero wrote it in a hurry and with some * C. 40. % LITERARY CRITICISM IN LATIN ANTIQUITY. 91 consequent loss to completeness and literary form, but also because a century of eventful history has given Tacitus a wide experience and a deeper knowledge of the relation between literature and life. Cicero had witnessed no organic change in the constitution of Rome. The progress which he records is gradual, merely an advance from comparative rudeness to comparative polish ; and the change is only a literary change, not determined by any great alteration in the complexion of society or politics. But in Tacitus's time the substitution of monarchy for republic had divided literature into republican and imperial, Ciceronian and non-Ciceronian. Some at least of the factors which go to produce social and literary mutation have not escaped his notice. The most important of these is the degeneracy of theme. The writer or speaker whose sur- roundings suggest great subjects, subjects likely to draw out the full moral and intellectual powers of the man, will speak in the grand manner ; but an ignoble national life will produce ignoble art. Fronto, the tutor of Marcus Aurelius, is little more, so far as literary criticism goes, than an unimpeachable and intelligent professor. He is an antiquarian ; in other words, he goes back to the literature of the third and second centuries B.C., and does not care to bring his reading down later than Cicero. His utterances do not go beyond neatly formulated criticisms of the old scholastic type. One or two instances will suffice. Ad Verum i. i. (p. 113 Naber) ; Quid si quis postuhiret ut Phidias ludicra aut Camuhus deum simulacra fingeret ? aut Caiamis Turrena aut Po/ycktus Etrusca ? Quid si Parrhasium ver- sicolora pingere iuberet, aut Apelkn unicoiora, aut Neaicen magnijica, aut Nician obscura, aut Dionysium inlustria, aut lasciva Euphranorem, aut Pausiam proelia ? In poetis autem quis ignorat ut gracilis sit Lucilius, Albucius aridus, mediocris Pacuvius, inaequaiis Accius, Ennius viuiti/ormis ? Historiam quoque scripsere Sal/ustius structe, Pictor incondite, Claudius iepide, Antias invenusk, Sisenna ionginque, verbis Cato mui- tiiugis, Coeiius singulis. Contionatur autem Cato infeste, I i t 92 LITERARY CRITICISU m LATI\ A\TIQUITY. Gracchus turbulentc, TulUus copiosc. lam i„ M.ais saefit Idem C„to, triumphat Cicero, tumultuatur Gracchus, Cahus r,.xatur Or again {De Feriis Alsiensitus, 3. p. .,4 N.) max, ut te stud.um legend, mcessisset, nut te Plauto e.ypolires, aut Accio expleres, aut Lucretio deknires, aut Ennio incenderes Thus in the person of Fronto does Roman hterature look back, wistfully but ineffectually, to the original sources of its mspiration. The stoo' is now ended ; the creative force which had successively produced the styles of Cicero, Sallust, I.ivy U^T] '' "'"'"''"'^ ' '"'^ "'■"' "^^ ''^^'^ °f '^'y'e comes the death of cnfcsm. The short survey which I have attempted ■n these two essays will have shown, I hope, that, for bad or good the hterary criticism of the Romans has had its say in the history of European literature. For bad. in that their .scholastic tradition set on foot the habit of mechanical com- parison between the classical writers of different ages and countries ; for good, in that principles of criticism, new and true, and full of suggestion for the future, were struck out in the course of a great history, finding worthy spokesmen in Romes two greatest men of letters, Cicero and Tacitus IV. THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. 'JOURN.\L OF PHILOLOGY,' VOL. XV (,886.) W ERE any one asked who in his opinion were the main representatives of Utin Prose style, there can I suppose be imle doubt that he would mention Ccero, Livy, and Tacitus, hese three names, in fact, mark three definite stages in the development of classical Utin Prose. To speak more accu- rately, there are two stages, each of which marks the e.xtreme pomt of a line of tendency. These stages are represented respectively by the styles of Cicero and of Tacitus, between .!'•..?"' ,""''° ''^' ^ "^""^^ P^^""'*^ '° himself, occupies the middle pbce. The elements of a good style are two, luminousness and beauty. By lummousness I mean its power of representing thought and passion. To express thought it must be lucid to represent thought and passion it must be simple and strong. By beauty I mean such a choice of words, and such an arrange- ment of them, as satisfies the requirements of the ear In a masterly style these two elements are combined in a manner which is felt to defy dissection, and to require none The impression produced is one and indivisible, and we do not care to analyze it. Such a passage as the conclusion of Cceros second Philippic speaks home to us with a living VbMatJi 94 THE HISTORICAL DErELOPMEST OF impression of unity and directness which we acknowledge without question. We admire and ask for nothing more \ But Rome was not built, nor the Latin prose of Cicero formed, in a day. It is possible to trace with tolerable clear- ness the course of literar)- development of which it is the climax, and to obser\-e the laborious process by which, from writer to writer, the combination of luminousness with beauty was gradually perfected. Isidore i. ^^. 2 preser\'es a tradition, which probably comes from Varro, that the first Latin prose was written by Appius Claudius Caecus. Tarn opud Graecos quam apud Latinos longe antiquiorem curam fuisse carminum (supply pro- bably Varro ait) quam prosae. Omnia enim prius versibus con- debantur. prosae autem studium sera viguit. Primus apud Graecos Phcrecydes Syrus soluta oratione scripsit. Apud Romanos autem Appius Caecus adversus Pyrrhum soiutam orationem primus "xercuit. lam e.\ hinc et ceteri pro se eloquentiam condiderunt. This notice probably represents the accepted literary tradi- tion of Rome : and whatever truth there may be in it, it is quite clear that for the purposes of oratory Latin prose com- position must have been in existence before the Punic wars. We have Cicero's express testimony to the existence of mortu- •^rum laudationes in rude prosed In an ancient city commu- nity like that of Rome — a community in which the people ' § uS. /Ccsip'sit'. cliqiianJo rem fuhUam, M. Antoni : quibu. yrtus sis, non quihmctim vivas, comid^ra. Mecum, ui voUs : rali cuvi rt publica in gratiam. Sed de te tu ipso tiJeris : ego di me ipse profitebor. Defendi rem pubiicam adukscens, non deseram scnex : contempsi Catilinai ;:adioi, non pcrtimacam tuos. Quin ttiam corpus libcnter obtuUrim. si reprj.scniari morte mea /ibtrfas civitatis potest, ut aliquando dolor populi Eomani pariat qtt4>d iam diu parturit. E*enim si abhinc anncs proff vt^titt niX ipso in tcmplo mgavi posse mortem immaturam esse consulari. quanto vcrius nunc negabo seni ? Mihi vero, patres conscripti, ttiam opianda mors est, pcrfuncto rebus iis quas adfptus sum quasque gessi. Duo modo Aotr opto, unum ut morions populum Romanum liberum relinquam. alterum ut ita cuique exeniat. ut de re publica quisque mereaiur. Brutus, § 61 : .Wi vero habeo quemquam aniiquicrem yaione^ cuius quiiicm scripta proferenda putem, nisi quern Appii Ccuci oratio hcuc ipsa de ryrrh: cf nonnullae mortuor^tm laudationes forte dekctant. I* CLASSICAL LATIS PROSE. 95 had to be persuaded— some kind of orator>' must have arisen at a ver>- early period. We may however almost say of Utin prose as we may of I^tin poetry, that in order to study it we must begin at the end. The earliest specimens of Latin prose st>'le which now survive are the fragments of the speeches and histories of the elder Cato (for the Res Rustica as we have it is written in no st>le at all), and Cato, whose life extended from 234-149 B.C., or eighty-five years, comes at the end of what we may call the Italian period proper, and at the moment when the study of Greek literature was beginning to change the form of Latin composition. Anti-Hellenist as he was, it is difficult to suppose that Cato altogether escaped the influence of the new fashion, and in his old age it is known that he took to the study of Demosthenes and (to a certain extent) to that of Thucydides. Ut us take some specimens of Cato's orator)' from the few fragments which survive. Meyer, Fragmenta Oratorum Romanorum, p. 41 \ Tuum nefarium /acinus peiore facinore openri posiulas, succidias hu- manas fact's, tantas irucidationes facis, decern capita libera interficis, decem hominibus vitam eripis, indicta causa, iniudicatis, incondemnatis. lb. p. 43. Dixit a decemviri's parum sibi bene cibaria curata esse. lussit vestimenta detrahi, atque flagro caedi. Decemviros Bruttiani verberavere : videre muiti rnortaUs. Quis hanc contu- meiiam, quis hoc imperium, quis hanc servitutem ferre potest 1 Nemo hoc rex ausus est facere : eane fien bonis, bono genere gnatis, boni consulitis ? Ubi societas, ubi fides maiorum ? In signitas iniurias, plagas, verbera, vibices, eos do/ores atque carni ficinas per dedecus atque maximam contume/iam, inspectantibus pcpularibus suis atque muitis mortalibus, te facere ausum esse ? Sed quantum luctum quantumque gemitum, quid lacrimarum quantunuque fletum factum audivi ! Seni iniurias nimis aegre fcrunt. Quid iiios, bono genere gnatos, magna virtu te praeditos, opinamini animi habuisse atque habit uros, dum vivent ? » [Editio auctior, Tttrici 1842: Mr. Xettlesbip does not follow Mever's text absolutely.] M f 96 THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF w % I' I i' I m ( The following fragment is from the Oratio pro Rhodiensibus (Meyer, p. 104). Scio so/ere pkrisque hominibus rebus seatndis atgue prolixis iitque prosperis animum exceiiere, superbiam atque ferociam augescere atque crescere. Quod mihi nunc magnae curae est, quod haec res tarn secunde processit, ne quid in consulendo adversi evefiiat, quod nostras secundas resconfutet, neve haeclaetitia nimis iuxuriose eveniat. Adversae res edomant, et docent quid opus sit facto. Secundae res iaetitia tra?isversum trudere solent a recte consulendo atque inteliegendo. Quo maiore opere dico suadeoque, uti haec res aliquot dies proferatur, dum ex tanto gaudio in potestatem nostram redeamus. Atque ego quidem arbitror, Rhodienses noluisse nos ita depug- nare, uti depugnatum est, neque regem Persen vicisse. Non Rhodienses modo id noluere, sed mu/tos populos atque muitas nationes idem noluisse arbitror. Atque haud scio an partim eorum fuerint, qui non nostrae contumeliae causa id noluerint evenire : sed enim id mctuere, si nemo esset homo, quern vere- remur, quodque luberet facer emus, ne sub solo imperio nostro in servitute nostra essent : libertatis suae causa in ea sententia fuisse arbitror. Atque Rhodienses tamen Persen publice num- quam adiuvere. Cogitate, quanto nos inter nos pHvatim cautius facimus. Nam unus quisque nostrum, si quis advorsus rem suam quid fieri arbitratur, summa vi contra nititur ne advorsus cam fiat : quod illi tamen perpessi. Ea nunc derepente tanta nos beneficia ultra citroque tan- tamque amicitiam relinquemus? Quod illos dicimus voluisse fa cere, id nos priores facere occupabimus? Qui acerrime advorsus eos dicit, ita dicit, hostes voluisse fieri, Ecquis est tandem vostrum qui, quod ad sese attineat, aequom censeat poenas dare ob eam rem quod arguatur male facere voluisse 1 Nemo, opinor : nam ego, quod ad me attinet, nolim. The next is from the Origines, book 4 p. 19, Jordan) : m immortales tribuno militum fortunam ex virtute eius dedere. Nam ita evenit, cum saucius multifariam ibi f actus esset, tamen vulnus capiti nullum evenit, eumque inter mortuos CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. 97 defatigatum vulneribus atque quod sanguen eis defluxerat cogno- vere, eum sustulere, isque convaluit, saepeque postilla operam rei publicae fortem atque strenuam praehibuit, illoque facto, quod tllos milttes subduxit, exercitum servavit. Sed idem benefactum quo in loco ponas nimium interest. Leonides Laco, qui simile apud Thermopylas fecit, propter eius virtutes omnis Graecia glortam atque gratiam praecipuam claritudinis inclutissumae decoravere monumentis, signis statuis elogiis historiis aliisque rebus: gratissimum id eius factum habuere. At tribuno militum parva laus pro factis relicta, qui idem fecerat atque rem serva- verat. Ea omnia, as Gellius ' says of the speech /r^ Rhodiensibus, distmctius numerosiusque fortassean did potuerunt, fortius atque vtvidtus potuisse did non videntur. The style is clear and forcible, it is therefore luminous : but harmony, and therefore beauty, it has none. The sentences follow the thoughts without any idea of rhythm to modify them ; succidias humanas facts, tantas trucidationes fads, decem funera fads, decern capita libera interficis. There are but few connecting particles, those employed being of the simplest kind, such as relatives, condi- tionals, or adversatives. Verbs are constantly placed in the same position at the end of the sentence, without any attempt to vary the sound : excellere, augescere, crescere : processerii,— e%^eniat,--confutet— eveniat : proferatur,- redeamus. The order of the words is sometimes entirely without art ; secundae res trudere solent a recte consulendo atque inteliegendo. The same idea is reiterated by the use of words almost synonymous ; rebus secundis atque prosperis atque prolixis : superbiam atque ferociam : multos populos atque muitas nationes. A\^ords are repeated for emphasis and distinctness, to the destruction of true rhetorical effect ; adversae res, secundae res : depugnare uti depugnatum est: adversus rem suam,-adversus earn: dicit,— ita dicit. In the same careless spirit Cato (in the//'<7 Rhodien- sibus) begins three consecutive sentences with atque. Very much the same characteristics meet us in the fragments ' 6 (7). 3. 52. VOL. II. H I 98 THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF w H of the historian Cassius Hemina, whose floruit is assigned to B c. 146 or thereabouts. Fragm. ap. Peter H. R. Rell. p. 98 Fasiorum volgtis sine contefttione consentiendo praefecerunt aeqiialiter imperio Remum €t Romiilum, ita ut de regno pararent inter se. Monstrum fit: sus parit porcos triginta : cuius rei fanum fecerunt Laribus Gruti- dulibus. lb. p. 107 Mirabantur alii^ quomodo i/li iibri durare posse nt. Ilk ita rationem reddebat: lapidem fuisse, quadratum circiter in media area evinctum candelis quoquo versus. In eo lapide insuper libros insitos fuisse : propterea arbitrarier, non com- putuisse. Et libros citratos fuisse: propterea arbitrarier, tineas non tetigisse. In iis lib r is scripta erant philosophiae Pyihagoricae. Of the speeches of Metellus Macedonicus, who was praetor 148 and consul 143 B.C. we have the following fragments {de ducendis uxoribus, Meyer p. 161); the first of which reflects what was evidently the current style of the time : Di immortales plurimum possunt, sed non plus velle debent nobis quam parentes. At parentes, si pergunt liberi errare, bonis exheredant. Quid ergo nos a dis immortalibus diutius expectemus, nisi mails rationibus finem faciamus 7 His demum deos propitios esse aequum est, qui sibi adversarii non sunt, Di immortales virtutem approbare, non adhibere debent. There is more structure in the following : Si sine uxore esse possemus, Quirites, omnes ea molestia care- remus : sed quoniam natura ita tradidit, ut nee cum illis satis commode, nee sine illis omnino vivi possit, saluti perpetuae potius quam brezn voluptati consulendum. After the death of Cato the stream of Greek influence flowed stronger and ever stronger into the channel of Italian thought until the end of the Ciceronian age. In the few fragments of the speeches of Scipio Aemilianus (184-129 b.c.) and C. Laelius (consul 140) it is, I think, possible to trace an attempt to realise a more artistic manner of expression. Take the following from Scipio (Meyer p. 184): Omnia mala, probra,flagitia, quae homines faciunt, in duabus rebus sunt, malitia atque nequitia. Utrum defendis malitiam. \ CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. 99 an nequitiam, an vtrumque simul? Si nequitiam defendere vis, licet. Sed tu in uno scorto maiorem pecuniam absumpsisti quam quantt omne instrumentum fundi Sabini in censum dedicavisti. St hoc Ita est, quis spondet mille nummum ? Sed tu plus tertia parte pecuniae paternae perdidisti atqui absumpsisti in flagitiis. St hoc ita est, quis spondet mille nummum ? Non vis nequitiam Age, malitiam saltem defendas. Sed tu verbis conceptis coniuravisti sciens sciente animo tuo. Si hoc ita est, quis spondet mille nummum ? Meyer p. 192. Docentur praestigias inhonestas : cum cinae- dulis et sambucis psalterioque eunt in ludum histrionum. Discunt cantare quae maiores nostri ingenuis probro ducier voluerunt. Eunt, tnquam, in ludum saltatorium inter cinaedos virgines puenque ingenui. Haec mihi cum quispiam narrabat%on poteram animum inducere ea liberos suos homines nobiles docere. Sed cum ductus sum in ludum saltatorium, plus medius fidius in eo ludo vidipueris virginibusque quingentis : in his unum, quod me retpublicae maxime ?niseritum est, puerum bullatum, petitoris filium, non ' minorem annis duodeci?n, cum crotalis saltare, quam saltationem impudicus servulus honeste saltare non posset. In the first of these fragments, and to a certain extent in the second, we may observe the same simplicity of order, the same tendency to repetition, as in Cato : but there is in the second a great advance towards appreciation of rhythmical effect. Isidore (2. 21. 3-5) has preserved the following examples of chmax from Scipio Aemilianus : Ex innocentia nascitur dignitas, ex dignitate honor, ex honore tmperium, ex imperio libertas. Vi atque ingratiis coactus cum illo sponsionem feci, facta spon- sione ad iudicem adduxi, adductum primo coetu damnavi, dam- natum ex voluntate dimisi. The fragments of the orations of Gaius Gracchus (b.c. 154— 121), besides the genius and intensity which raised him, in the opinion of Cicero, to the ver>^ highest position among Roman orators, show also an advancing sensibility to the requirements of harmonious composition. ' Surely twn should be omitted. H 2 lOO THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. lOI I n Meyer p. 231. Versatus sum in provinda, quomodo ex usu vestro exisiimabam esse, non quomodo amhitioni meae conducere arbiirabar. Nulla apud me fuit popina, neque pueri eximia facie stabant et in convivio liberi vestri modestius crant quam apud principia. . . Ita versatus sum in pravincia, ut nemo posset vere dicere assem aut eo plus in muneribus me accepisse, aut mea opera quemquam sumptum fccisse. Biennium/ui in provincia. Si uila meretrix domum meam introivit, aut cuiusquam servulus propter me sollicitatus est, omnium^ nationum \'' postremissimum nequis- simumque existimatote. Cum a servis eorum tam caste me habuerim, inde poteritis considerare, quomodo me putetis cum iiberis vestris vixisse. . . Itaque, Quirites, cum Romam profectus sum, zonas, quas plenas argenti extuli, eas ex provincia inanes rettuli. Alii vini amphoras, quas plenas tulerunt, eas argento repletas domum reportaverunt. Meyer p. 234. In the following fragment there is consider- able elaboration of structure, and an almost musical cadence : Si vellem apud vos verba facere et a vobis postulare, cum genere summo ortus essem, et cum fratrem propter vos amisissem, nee qutsquam de P. Africani et Ti. Gracchi familia nisi ego et puer restaremus, ut pateremini hoc tempore me quiescere, ne a stirpe genus nostrum interiret, et utialiquapropago generis nostri reliqua esset; baud scio an lubentibus a vobis impetrassem. In narrative Gracchus had a rapid but somewhat rude and unconnected manner : Meyer p. 236. Nuper Teanum Sidicinum consul venit : uxor eius dixit se in balneis virilibus lavari velle. Quaestori Sidicino a M. Mario datum est negotium, uti balneis exigerentur qui lavabantur. Uxor renuntiat viro, parum cito balneas traditas esse et parum lautas fuisse. Idcirco palus desti tutus est in foro eoque adductus suae civitatis nobilissimus homo M. Marius Vestimenta detracta sunt; virgis caesus est. Caleni ubi id audie- runt, edtxerunt nequis in balneis lavisse vellet, cum magistratus Romanus ibi esset. Ferentini ob eandem causam praetor noster ' For nationum hominum naiomm and laironum have been proposed. I have conjectured raponum {Essays in Latin literature, p. 345). quaes fores arripi iussit: alter se de muro deiecit, alter virgis caesus est. . . Quanta libido quantique intemperantia sit hominum adules- centium, unum exemplutn ^ vobis ostendam. His annis paucis ex Asia missus est, qui per id tempus magistratum non ceperat, homo adulescens pro legato. Is in lectica ferebatur. Ei obviam bubulcus deplebe Venusina venit, et per iocum,cum ignoraret qin ferretur, rogavit num mortuum ferrent. Ubi id audivit, lecticam iussit deponi, struppis, quibus lectica deligata erat, usque adeo verberari iussit, dum animam efflavit. Rude as these passages are as a whole, they have clauses in them of true rhythmical beauty. Idcirco palus destitutus est in foro, eoque adductus civitatis suae nobilissimus homo M. Marius. His annis paucis ex Asia missus est, qui per id tempus magistra- tum non ceperat, hnmo adulescetis pro legato. Is in lectica ferebatur. Ei olrviam bubulcus de plebe Venusina venit, et per ioatm, cum ignoraret qui ferretur, rogavit num mortuum ferrent. From this time the style of Latin prose becomes manifestly more formed and artistic. We may note the progress in the following fragments of Quintus Metellus Numidicus (consul 109 B.C.). Meyer p. 274. Nunc quod ad ilium pertinet, Quirites, quo- niam se ampliorem putat esse si se mihi inimicum dictitaverit, quem ego mihi neque amicum recipio neque inimicum respicio, in eum ego non sum plura dicturus. Nam cum indignissimum arbitror cui a viris bonis bene dicatur, tum ne idoneum quidem, cui a probis male dicatur. Nam si in eo tempore huiuscemodi homunadlum nomines, in quo punire non possis, maiore honore quam contumelia adficias. Meyer p. 275. Qua in re quanto universi me antestatis, tanto vobis quam mihi fnaiorem iniuriam atque contumeliafu facit, Quirites, et quanto probi iniuriam facilius accipiunt quam alteri tradunt, tanto ille vobis quam mihi peiorem honorem habuit. Nam me iniuriam ferre,vos facere volt, Quirites, ut hie conquestio, istic vituperatio relinquatur. ' Utu> exemplo ? F 102 THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF H ill In the fragments of Lucius Licinius Crassus (140-91 b.c), though a few archaisms still linger, a transition to the style of Cicero may be observed. Meyer p. 310. 'Forte evenit ut in Privernati essemus' Brute, testificatur pater, se tibi Privernatem fundum reliquisse Deinde ex Hbro secundo ' /// Aibano eramus ego et Marcus filius! Sapiens videlicet ho7no cum primis nostrae civitatis norat hunc gurgitem ; metuebat ne, cum is nihil haberet, nihil esse ei relic- turn putaretur. Tum ex libra tertio ' In Tiburti forte adsedimus ego et Marcus filius: Ubi sunt ii fundi, Brute, ./uos tibi pater pubhcis commentariis consignatos reliquit ? Quod nisi puberem te lam haberet, ijuartum librum composuisset, et se etiam in balneis locutum cumfilio scrip tum reliquisset. Brute, quid sedes ? Quid illam anum patri nuntiare vis tuo ? quid illis omnibus, quorum imagines duel vides, quid maioribus fmsl Quid L. Bruio, qui hunc populum dominatu regio liberavtt ? quid te facer e, cui rei, cui gloriae, cui virtu ti studere ? Patnmonione augendo ? At id non est nobilitatis. Sedfac esse nihil superest: libidines Mum dissipaverunt. An iuri civili) Estpatcrnum. Scd dicet te, cum aedes venderes, ne in rutis qui- dem et caesis solium tibi paternum recepisse. An rei militari ? qui nunquam castra videris ? An eloquentiae, quae nulla est in te, et qmcquid est vocis ac linguae, omne in istum turpissimum calumniae quaes tum contulisti? Tu lucem aspicere audes tu hos tntueri ? tu tn foro, tu in urbe, tu in civium esse conspectu ? tu illam mortuam^ tu imagines ipsas non perhorrescis ? quibus non modo mutandis, sed ne conlocandis quidem tibi ullum locum reliquisti. P. 313. An tu, cum omnem auctoritatem universi or dims pro pignore putaris, eamque in conspectu P.R. concideris, me his <:xistimas pignoribus terreri 1 Non tibi sunt ilia caedenda si L Crassum vis coercere : haec tibi est excidenda lingua, qua vel evulsa spiritu ipso libidinem tuam libertas mea refutabit L Licinius Crassus died in 91 b.c, and we are now, not only in the natural sequence of events, but in the progress from cause to effect, brought to consider the style of Cicero. For as CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. 103 we have seen, Crassus seems to have cultivated and brought to a considerable height of excellence the periodic manner of writing which the genius of Cicero perfected. Cicero says in the Orator (§ 223) that the clause which he most likes should consist of two Kofifiara or short sentences, a KUiXov or longer sentence, and a comprehensio or concluding period. Crassus, he says, sic plerumque dicebat, idque ipse genus dicendi tnaxinie probo. He adds an instance from Crassus ; Domus tibideerat? At habebas. Pecunia superabat 1 At egebas. . . Incurristi aniens in columnas: in alienos insatius insanisti : depressant, caecam, iacentem domum pluris quam te et fortunas tuas aestitnasti. And below he adds (§ 226) ego ilia Crassi et nostra posui, ut qui vellet auribus ipsis quid numerosum etiam in niinimis particulis oraiionis esset iudicaret. Crassus was a great student of Greek, and according to Cicero could speak it with as much ease as his mother tongue '. So it was also with Antonius ; and it was by these two great orators that Cicero was educated in his youth. The attempt to write a periodic style was the result of the study of Greek prose, and in particular that of Isocrates and Theopompus, the mechanical structure of whose writing Cicero thinks the most serviceable as a model for study {Orator, § 207). From the first Cicero's style is characterised by the wide compass and elaborate balance of his paragraphs. Take, for instance, the first sen tences of his earliest work {Inv. L i). Saepe et multum hoc mecum cogitavi, bonine an mali plus attulerit hominibus et civitatibus copia dicendi ac summum eloquentiae studium. Nam cum et nostrae rei publicae detrimenta considero et maximarum civitatum veteres animo calamitates colligo, non minimam video per disertissimos homines invectam partem incommodoru?n : cum autem res ab nostra memoria propter vetustatem remotas ex littcrarum monumentis repetere instituo, multas urbes cofistitutas, plurima bella restincta, firmissimas societates, sanctissimas amicitias intelUgo cum animi ratione, tum facilius eloquentia comparatas. This is his most redundant and diffuse manner, * De Oratore, 2. § 2. u 104 THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF which continues with him, so far as we can see, until about his thirty-fifth year. In the Verrine Orations he has, however nearly mastered the art of expression. His prose rises and falls' expands and contracts, strikes hard or gently, as he chooses! Tn Verrem \<:i. 1. , . InveUravit enim iam opinio fernidosa rei publuae vobisque periculosa, quae non modo [Jiomae, sed etiam\ apud exteras nationes omnium sermone percrebruit, his iudiciis ' culture, it is also penetrated and illuminated by the individuality of Cicero's own imaginative temperament. The tendency of Italian literar>' culture seems then to have set towards the formation of a broad, clear, and periodic style, the chief representatives of which, though in very different ways, are Caesar and Cicero. But we have now to note the existence of a very different tradition, of which the earliest existing representative may perhaps be said to be Cornificius, though by far its most remarkable champion in the last century of the republic is Sallust. The remarkable treatise on rhetoric which bears the bastard ' See Tacitus, Dialogus 20-34. CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. 107 I^itin title Auctor ad Herenmurn is now generally attributed to Cornificius. It belongs to the first sixteen years, or there- abouts, of the last century of the republic \ and is in tone somewhat anti- Hellenic. The style is on the whole the style of the newer school, but many of the instances of various kinds of writing which the author has invented in his fourth book have the tinge of the archaic, unperiodic manner. Cornificius, however, was not powerful enough to create a typical style. It was reserved for Sallust to head a reaction against the Ciceronian manner. The peculiarities of Sallust's writing, which have been analysed carefully by Mr. A. M. Cook in his recent edition of the Bellum Catiiinae (London, 1884), are, I suppose, in the main traceable to two causes : his admiration for Cato, and his admiration for Thucydides. These authors were to Sallust what Crassus and Isocrates were to Cicero. That Sallust borrowed many archaic words from Cato was a commonplace of criticism - ; and I suspect also that he imitated Cato in the abrupt, unconnected character of his sentences. Cicero and Caesar like to extend their clauses and to connect them, so that one easily flows from another. In Sallust the clauses are com- paratively independent, and the effect is produced by crowding one short sentence upon another. Qui /adores, pericula, dubias atque asperas res facik toleraverant, eis otium divitiae, optanda alias, oneri miseriaeque fuere. Igitur pritno pecuniae, deinde imperii cupido crevit ; ea quasi maieries omniutn ?Jialorum fuere . Namque avaritia fidem probitatem ceterasque artes donas sub- vertit: pro his superbiam crudelitatem, deos neglegere, omnia venalia habere edocuit. Ambitio multos mortales falsos fieri subegit, aliud dausum in pectore, aliud in lingua promptujn habere, amicitias inimicitiasque non ex re sed ex commodo aesiimare, magisque voltum quam ingenium bonum habere ^ In all this I think it highly probable that Sallust is following in the steps of Cato, of course under the conditions imposed by ' Mr. \V. Warde Fowler has showii ^Journal of Philology, 10. 197) that S4 B.C. is the latest date to which there is any positive allusion in ihe book. ' Quintilian, 8. 3. 29. s Sallust, Cat. 10. Io8 THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF a different age and state of culture. In pregnancy of thought and expression he would fain have figured as the Roman Thucydides ; and indeed, if Quintilian's opinion could have exalted him to this position, he would have held it in the eyes of the world \ Cicero, writing towards the end of his life, complains in his Orator (§ 30) of a school of stylists who called themselves Thucydideans. His remarks are directed ostensibly to oratory but I thmk it not unlikely he is aiming a side-thrust at Sallust His protest in favour of a rhythmical as against an unrhythmical prose IS m any case worth quoting here (§ 233) : Age sume de Gracchi apiid censores illud, ' Abesse non potest quin eiusdem hominis sitprobos improbare qui improbos probet ' .• quanto aptiu . St dixisset, ' quin eiusdem hominis sit, qui improbos probet pro- bos improbare ? ' Hoc modo dicere nemo umquam noluit, ne- moque potmt quin dixerit ; qui autem a/iter dixerunf, hoc ad- sequi nonpotuerunt: ita facti sunt repente Attici. Quasi vero Trailianus fuerit Demosthenes f . . . . Jdes autem sic se habet ut brevissime dicam quod sentio ; composite et apte sine sentelitii^ dicere insania est, sententiose autem sine verborum et ordine et modo infantia : eius modi tamen infantia, ut ea qui utantur non stu/ti homines haberi possint, etiam plerumque prudentes : quo qui est contentus utatur. The consideration of the style of Sallust brings us to the commencement of the great change, which, beginning in the Augustan age, ended by forming the style of Tacitus. Livy stands at the meeting point of the older and the later periods Among all the Latin writers he is perhaps the best representative of the periodic style; witness, among a thousand instances which I might quote, his character of Cicero. Ingenium et operibus et praemns operum felix, ipse fortunae diu prosperae et in longo tenore felicitatis magnis intenm ictus vuineribus, exi/io, ruina partium pro quibus steterat, filiae exitu tarn tristi atque acerbo omnium adversorum nihil ut viro dignum erat tulit praeter mortem;^ quae vere aestimanti minus indigna videri potuit, quod ' 10. I. loi. Necopponere Thucydidi Sallustium verear. CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. 109 a victore inimico nil crudelius passurus erat quam quod eiusdem fortunae compos in eo fecisset. (Fragm. 49.) No doubt Livy must have agreed with Cicero that the style best suited for a continuous history was that of Isocrates and Theopompus, not that of Thucydides ; not the abrupt and broken manner, but the periodic. But there is a marked difference between the period as constructed by Livy and as constructed by Cicero. Cicero aims simply at such a balance of clauses as will raise the expectation and satisfy the demands of the ear: Livy wishes to do this and a great deal more. Cicero's grammatical construction is perfectly simple, and not modified by the exigencies of his theory of composition. Livy, on the contrary, in order to build a harmonius clause, tempers and varies his grammatical constructions so as to pro- duce a welded mass of writing over which the reader must pause before he can grasp it as what it is, a carefully articulated whole. Ipse fortunae diu prosperae et in longo tenore felicitatis magnis interim ictus vulnenbus : this triply constructed sentence would in Cicero or Caesar have been broken up into three. Cicero aims always at being understood at first hearing or first reading ; his manner is that of an orator. Livy's style is the style of a scholar, not of a statesman. He speaks not to be heard but to be read, and aims mainly at satisfying the taste of literary men and winning admiration for his art. His method consists in ingenious condensation of thoughts and combination of clauses. In the first he probably wishes to rival Sallust, in the last to comply with the precepts of Cicero. It is also im- portant to observe that when (as in the first decade) the subject seems to require it, he adopts a poetical tone and colouring, which suggests that he is writing with the ancient poets (if not indeed with Vergil) open before him. Quintilian twice tells us that Asinius Pollio found in Livy something of a provincial tone {Fatavinitatem quandam). The information is given us in such a way as to leave us uncertain of the real point of the criticism : i. 5. 56. taceo de Tuscis et Sabinis et Praenestinis quoque : natn ut eorum sermone utentem no THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. I ii m Vettiiim Lucilius insectatiir, quemadmodum Poiiio reprehendit in Livio Patavinitatem. 8. i. 2. multos enim, quibus loquendi ratio non desit, invenias, quos curiose potius ioqui dixeris quam La tine, quomodo et ilia Attica anus Theophrastum, hominem alioqui disertissimum, adnotata unius adfectatione verbi hospitem dixit, nee alio se id deprendisse interrogata respondit, quam quod nimium Attice loqueretur. Et in Tito Livio, mirae facundiae viro, putat ifiesse Pollio Asinius quandam Patavinitatem. Putting these two passages together, one may reasonably infer Polh'o's meaning to have been that Livy showed his pro- vincialism in an overstrained literary purism : that, like a student, he would sometimes take words from provincial Italians : that he was more anxious to form a recherche and scholarly style than a man would have been who had taken an active part in the public life of Rome. It was not, however, the style of Livy nor even that of Cicero that was destined to prevail. Livy, indeed, is like no one before or after him. Like Horace, he brought to per- fection a peculiar manner which no one was able to imitate. And for the style of Cicero it soon appeared that there was no public. The extinction of the republican life of Rome destroyed the demand for the broad and massive orator>- of the forum The aristocracy and the equites found themselves more and more driven into forming a literary- clique. For good or for evil they had now to shape their course in the presence of a power greater than their own. Oratorj- was driven from the forum into the law-courts, where it was of necessity confined to technical points, or it was shut up in the senate, where in many cases the expression of opinion was no longer free. And as the sphere of oratory became narrower, the cultivation of style became nicer and more minute. The character of Roman education was changing. Ennius and Accius and Pacuvius were driven from the field, and Vergil and Horace became the classical poets on whom the taste and thought of the rising generation were moulded. Their writings were learned by heart as a regular part of the school curriculum, and prose III writing, in the hands of the more gifted authors, naturally took a poetical (I should rather have said a Vergilian) tinge. As before, indeed, the Roman youth were trained to be speakers. Well and good : but what if the conditions were absent under which alone a manly oratory could be developed? In the atmosphere that was now rising, nothing could in the long run thrive but the desire of pleasing a picked audience by finely- chosen words, pithy sentences, and artificial points'. In fine, men began to study, not things, but words and phrases. Before the first century had run its course, the change was complete, and Quintilian spends much of his force in a vain attempt to revivify the style and spirit of the republican literature. The new tendency was greatly encouraged by an important change which now took place in the method of education. Rhetorical education in the time of Cicero and Caesar was planned upon broad outlines. The Greek classics were care- fully studied, and youths were exercised thoroughly in Greek and Latin composition. The understanding was strengthened and the range of knowledge extended by the writing and reading out of essays on general topics, proposita as Cicero calls them, as the Greeks called them ^eV«r, and by the treatment of communes loci, or the topics which were sure to come up in the course of any serious discussion on a matter of practice I The written treatment of 6i^ui and communes ' The name with which the change is associated is that of Cassius Severus: Tacitus, Dialogtis 19: Nam quatemis antiquorum admiratores hum veltit terminum antiquitatis comtituere soient, Cassium Severum quern primum (ulfirmaut fcxisse ah ilia vetere atque derecta dicendi via. non injirmitate ingaiii nee inscitia litterarum transtulisse se ad aliud dicendi genus contendo, seJ iudicio et intellectu. Vidit namque, ut paulo ante dicebam, cum comiicione temporum et diversitate aurium formam quoque et specie m orationis esse mutandam. Facile perferebat prior Hie populus, ut imperitus et rudis, impeditissimarum orationum spatia At hercule pervulgatis iam omnibus, cum vix in cortina quisquam adsistat quin dementis studiorum, etsi non instruct us, at certe imhutm sit, newts et exquisitis eloquentiae itinenbus opus est, per quae orator fastidium aurium cffugiat. ^ The following evidence on this subject seems worth quoting : Cicero. IT2 THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. i\'k llm loci was the main if not the only exercise of originality known to the educationists of Cicero's day. But towards the end of Cicero's life the habit of dedamatio, or speaking in private on fictitious themes, began to prevail. It is probable that young men aspiring to become orators also exercised their Top. §§ 79-81. Quaestionum duo genera, alterum definitum.alterttm infini- turn. Definitum est quod {m6e,a.y Graeci, nos causam : infinitum, quod e^oiv tilt appellant, nos propositum possumus nomituire. Causa certis persoms, locis, temporibus, actionibus, negotiis cernitur aut in omnibus aut tnplertsque eorum : propositum autem in aliquo eorum aut in pluribus mc tamen in maximis. Part. Or. § 61. Duo sunt, ut initio dixi, quaestionum gemra, quorum alterum finitum temporibus et persofiis causam appello alterum infinitum nullis neque personis neque temporibus notatum pro. position voco. Scd est propositum latior quasi pars causae quaedam He proceeds to distinguish the different kinds of proposita, speculative and practical. ^ Seneca Contr. i. praef. 12 (p. 50. Bursian). Declamabat autem Cicero non quaks nunc contraversias dicimus, fie tales quidem quales ante Ciceroncm diccbantur, quas thesis vocabant. Hoc enim genus materiae quo nos cxercemur a^leo noz'um est, ut nomen quoque eius novum sit. Controversias nos dicimus; Cicero causas vocabat. Hoc vero alterum nomen Graecum quidem sed in Latinum ita translatum, ut pro Latino sit, scholastica controz'ersia multo recentius est, sicut ipsa dcclamatio apud nullum antiquum auctorem ante Ciceronem et Calrum inveniri potest, qui dcclamationem distinguit: att enim ^ dcclamare est domi non mediocritcr dicere.' Bene alterum putat domesticae exercitationis esse, alterum verae actionis. Modo nomen hoc prodiit ; nam et studium ipsum nuper celebrari coepit ; ideo Jacile est mihi ab incunabulis nosse rem post me natam Quintilian 12. 2. 25. PeHpatetici studio quoque se quodam oratorio lactant, nam thesis dicere exercitationis gratia fere est ab iis institutum 2. I. 9. An Ignoramus antiquis hoc fuisse ad augendam eloquentiam genu's exercitationis, ut thesis dicerent et communes locos et cetera citra complexum rerum personarumque quibus verae fictaeque contrcrvcrsiae continentur ? Lx quo palam est quam turpiter deserat cam partem rhetorices institut'io quam etprimam habuit et diu solam. . . . Non communes loci, sive qui sunt in vitiaderecti, quales legimus a Cicerone compositos, seu quibus quaestiones ge,uraliter tractantur, quales sunt editi a Q. quoque Hortensio, ut ^ sitne Parvis arguments credendunr et pro testibi^s et in testes in mediis litium medullis ve^santur? Arma sunt haec quodammodo pracparanda semper, ut lis, cum res poscet, utare. :. 4. 24. Theses autem, quae sumuntur ex rerum comparatione, ut ' rusticane vita an urbana potior; ' iuris pcriti an military viri laus maior,' mire .unt ad exercitationem dicendi speciosae atquc uberes. ^ "3 powers on causae, or fictitious cases of a definite character, corresponding generally to what was afterwards called coniro- versia. It is however important to observe that the dedatnatio^ with its two branches the controversia and suasoria^ tended more and more to drive out the Biaii and communis locus in the schools. This we must infer from the words of the elder Seneca quoted in the note, studium ipsum nuper celebrari coepit. I understand Seneca to mean, not that dedamatio was in his youth an absolutely new thing, but that it was new as an almost exclusive instrument of education. In treating a ^eVts or communis locus the student had to find and arrange his own facts : in a dedamatio, whether it were a controversia or fictitious controversy on a point of law or politics, or a suasoria, in which advice was given to a fictitious person, the facts were found for him. In driving the Bfoii from the schools, therefore, the masters were depriving rhetorical education of its most valuable element, of the element most likely to develop originality and encourage thoroughness. The dedamatio, as was natural, soon degenerated into a barren exercise which produced little save artificial antithesis and false points. Cornificius (4 § 25) says of a manly style, sententias interponi raro convenit, ut rei adores, non vivendi praeceptores videamur esse. But a dedamatio could not exist without a number of pointed sententiae. As the elder Seneca, who witnessed the birth and growth of dedamatio, well says {Contr. 9 praef p. 241 Bursian) qui dedamationem parat, scribit non ut vincat sed ut placeat. Omnia itaque lenodnia conquirit : argumentationes quia molestae sunt et minimufn habent floris, relinquit : sententiis, explicationibus audientis deliniri contentus est. Cupit enim se approbare, non causam. Sequitur autem hoc usque in forum dedamatores vitium, ut necessaria deserant dum speciosa sectantur. Looking at the results of the system in his own time Quintilian says (7. i. ^\) famam adfectantes contenti sunt locis speciosis : and a little further on (44) he speaks of the sententiae VOL. II. 1 w 114 THE HISTORICAL DEVELOPMENT OF t I If I praecipites vel obscurae {nam ea nunc virtus est) which had come to be the fashion. Who, when he hears of obscurity, does not think of the memorable story quoted from Livy by Quintilian (8. 2. 18) fuisse praeceptorem aliquem qui discipulos obscurare quae dicerent tuberet, Graeco verba utens aKunao^ , u^.^e iiia sci/icet egrei^a laudatio, 'tanto nie/ior ; ne ego quidem inteliexi! Who has not struggled with the obscurity of Persius, the direct result of this trammg? Et quod recte did potest (s,:iys Quintilian 8 prooem. 24 foil.) circumimus amore verborum, et quod satis dictum est repetimus, et quod uno verba patet, pluribus oneramus, et pie- raque significare melius putamus quam dicere. Quid, quad nihil tarn proprium placet, dum parum creditur disertum, quad eta/tus dtxissetl A corruptissima quoque poetarum figuras seu translatwnes mutuamur, tum demum ingeniosi scilicet si ad intellegendas nas opus sit ingenio. Atqui satis aperte Cicero praeceperat Un dicenda vitium vel maximum esse a vu/gari genere orationis at^ue a consuetudine communis sensus abhorrere ' Sed ilie est durus atque ineruditus : nas melius, quibus sardet omne quod natura dictavit. cVc. These causes combined from several sides to popularize the abrupt and sententious style of Latin. The passion for senten- iiae or pithy sayings well expressed became dominant : Seneca the younger is full of them, and even Quintilian lays it down as a rule for a master's guidance that he should every day say somethmg for his hearers to carry away (2. 2. 8 ipse aliquid tmmo muita, cottidie dicat, quae secum aratores referant) An attempt was indeed made by Tacitus in his Diaia^uis, and by Qumtihan in his Institutio, to galvanize the republican style into life ; but the spirit of the age was too strong for them, rellftVf 'Tr^'^' ^"""j;^" ^''"^ ^'' ^'^^ ^""^" '" * ^ty^- intended to recal that of C.cero. Pliny, it must be remembered, was a pupil of Qmn jhan, and :t ,s surely very probable that Tacitus was also.' Thi h> pothes. would account fo. the style of the Dialog.., as well as for the lirVT'i' I ''' '''''"' ""^ ^"'^^'^"^^ ^« ^^<>^^ °f Quintilian. I am glad to had that this view is also adopted by Dr. Eugen Gruenwald, i^^ his tract CLASSICAL LATIN PROSE. 115 and Tacitus, with a true sense of the fact, abandoned the attempt. Few now understood the virtues of the ancient manner. To make an impression it was necessary to strike a series of sudden blows, to arrest the ear by a succession of smart points. The idea of forming harmonious clauses, of exhibiting thought and passion in perfect clearness, was thrown to the winds. The language was strained beyond its power. Becoming an end itself, it ceased to be the natural instrument for expression of thought and feeling. The reign of the artist is over and that of the virtuoso has begun, who writes, not to move the heart, but to display the capacity of his instrument. Men were now called upon to admire, not the adaptation of language to thought, but the language itself. It must be recherche, it must recall Vergil, it must say more than it ought to say. The process ended not merely in destroying the framework of Latin style, but in corrupting the clearness of the I^tin language. Not only does the stately structure of the Ciceronian period crumble into dust in the Latin of the silver age, but the meaning of words is perverted. In Sallust, though the style has a false ring, the language, as a vehicle of thought, preserves its integrity. The younger Seneca, though always striving to make points, writes with perfect clearness ; but in Tacitus the language itself is touched with decay. Let me not be misunderstood, or be supposed to wish for a moment to depreciate the genius of Tacitus. It would be unpardonable to represent him as other than what he is, a man of profound feeling, of splendid imagination and dramatic power. I am only concerned to show that the course of events had destroyed the literary structure of the language in which he had to write ; that he was a great artist working with bad tools. The very force of his genius makes him em- ploy to excess the only means he has of making himself heard. His style is the natural result of the situation. Astonishing entitled Quae ratio intercedere videatur inter Quintiliani Institutionem CratoriafH et Taciti Dialogum. (Berlin, 1883.) I 2 ,\ ii6 DEVELOPMENT OF LATIN PROSE. m in its condensation and in its pathos it is in composition structureless, in language strained and obscure'. There is no great Latin prose after Tacitus. Suetonius is an able writer, but no stylist ; aiming much lower than Tacitus, he has none of his excellences, and succeeds in avoiding his faults. Suetonius is succeeded by writers of the stamp of Gellius and Fronto, and creative genius is extinct. ' I content myself with quoting the following specimens from the second book of the Histories: 48. Pecmiias distrihuit puree nee ut periturus. . . Aon cnivi uUima desperalione, sed poscente proelium exercitu rcmisisse ret public ae novissimuin casutn. 49. Othont sepuhhrum exstructttm est modicum et mansunim. 76. Nee speciem adulantis expaveris. Ih. Abiit tarn et transvectitm est tempus, quo posses videri concupisse ; conjupcndum est ad imperium. An excidit trucidatus Corbulo f V. LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. ('JOURNAL OF PHILOLOGY,' XVL (1888).) -♦-•- It is sometimes necessary to distinguish between the position which an author holds in the world of letters at large, and that which a nearer consideration of the circumstances of his life and times would dispose the student of history to assign him. The literary reputation of Juvenal is a case in point. The scourge of a corrupt age, the master of moral indignation, the great representative of the most original production of the Latin genius ; such is the idea of Juvenal which may be said to have prevailed, and still to prevail, in the modern literary world'. I am far from saying that such an estimate is false, but I think it partial and inadequate. Take Juvenal at his own estimate, assume that the pictures which he draws of contemporary life are in the main correct, study him alone and leave the younger Pliny and Quintilian and Suetonius and the inscriptions unread, and the ordinary * This view seems in the main to be that of Professor Mayor, if I may judge by the preface to his new edition (i886\ I wish it clearly to be understood that, while I venture to differ from Mr Mayor's general estimate of Juvenal's moral position, I cannot adequately express my admiration for his edition and indeed for his many unique contributions to Latin scholarship and the history of Latin literature. I suppose that in wealth of learning and fresh- ness of interest combined, Mr. Mayor holds a position occupied by no scholar since Casaubon. 1 ii8 LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. I I view of Juvenal becomes the natural one. But literary criticism must m the present day be based upon history; and studied historically the position of the famous satirist will, if I am not mistaken appear to be a peculiar and personal one, and his satires, though containing a large element of truth, to represent the partial and exaggerated views natural in such circumstances It IS strange that so little should be known about the life of so celebrated a writer. The biographies prefixed to his satires m the manuscripts are as numerous as they are unsatisfactory. Of these lives there are nine, seven of which are printed by Otto Jahn m his edition of 185,. An eighth was published from a Harleian MS by Ruhl in the Mue/aMml of .8^4 (p. 868) ; a ninth, which I am sorry to say adds nothing to the mformation conveyed by the others, I have myself found in a Bodleian manuscript of the thirteenth century'. In point of Utin style, and presumably therefore of antiquity, the best of these memoirs is that printed by Jahn as No. ,. The author nmtates the style of Suetonius, but not his clearness or accu- cnL ""' "^""'°'^ ^"^ghesi ^ rightly observes that Suetonius could never have written in so unsatisfactory a way of so distinguished a contemporary. The biographies all agree that Juvenal was the son or ward of a freedman, that he was born at Aquinum, that he practised declamation till middle life W W/1 a.t,Ue..') and Ihat he was banished in consequence of an attack made upon an actor The date of his birth is variously given in the three memo's which mention the fact. Two (. and Bodl.) put it in the reign of Claudius Nero (Claudius), another (3) in't a o "nI Claudius (Nero). The accounts of his exile present equa% serious discrepancies. For while one tradition (Uves ,, '4 and Schol. luv. 4. 38) represents him as banished to Egjpt! ' ^" P- '■♦'»• ' ff«z'^« 5. 513. erat Marcus mcdiis Antonius annis Primus. ' ^ ^ '^^" LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 119 another (5, 6) relegates him to Scotland, or the Scottish border. Again, in the accounts of the time and circumstances of his exile there are irreconcilable differences. According to Life (i) he was banished in his eightieth year, and died soon afterwards ; according to (4) he was banished by Domitian ', and remained in exile, altering and enlarging his satires, till he died in the reign of Antoninus Pius : according to (6) he was banished by Trajan to Scotland and died there soon afterwards. The tradition however is uniform that the pretext for his exile was furnished by some verses which he had written against the paniomimus Paris, a favourite of Domitian. The verses were, it is stated, inserted into the seventh satire (v. 90 foil.) Quod non dant proceres^ dahit histrio : tu Camerinos et Baream^ iu nobilium ma^^na atria curas ? Praefectos Pelopea facit^ Philo- ftiela tribunos. This story is confirmed to a certain extent by some lines of Sidonius Apollinaris (Carm. 9. 270-275) Non qui tempore Caesaris secundi Aeterno incoiuit Tomos reatu^ Nee qui consiffiili deinde casu Ad vuigi tetiuem strepentis auratn Jrati fuit histrionis exui. If any reliance can be placed on these words of Sidonius, if indeed we can be sure that they refer to Juvenal at all, and not to some other poet, then Juvenal must have been banished for having said or written something not only offensive to an actor but unpopular with the pit and gallery. If the actor was Paris the favourite of Domitian, the date of the poet's exile must be placed in or before a.d. 83, for Paris was [)ut to death in that year ^ It is in truth impossible to make anything out on this point from the biographies and the scholia. The compilers of these notes may have got hold of the fact that Juvenal was banished, ' So Schol. lav. 4. 38 : Schol. 7. 92 makes him l»anished by Claudius Nero: Schol. 15. 27 only says he served in Egypt, not that he was banished thither. ' Friedlaiider has pointed out that actors often took the names of cele- brated predecessors, as shops in modern times sometimes continue to bear the old names. There was a Paris in the reign of Nero, as well as in that of Domitian, and three more afterwards. {Siitengeschichte'n. 3. Appendix 16.) I I 1 :» 'H, fM I20 i//T ytND POEMS OF JUVENAL. ^^Z^^T'^ '^"' ''''^"'■°" "■'"' "'^ '"P"" °f the lines (7-88 foil.) Ille et militiae n.ultis largiius honorem Semcnstn mtum d,s,tos arcumligat auro : Quod non dant proceres, &c 1 h,s passage, however, really contains no reflection whatever on any actor: the indictment, if any, lies against the aristocracy. The menfon of Paris and of an actor here may have led to these verses being connected with the story of the histrio who caused Juvenal's banishment. The words safjra „on a/,surde compos, a ,n Paridem pantomimum poetamgue sanenstribus m,k„ol.s em,ta„,e,n in Life (,), to which (.) adds poeta,n,ue Stattum, are clearly a mere plagiarism from the te.xt. But another circumstance may have contributed to form this radition. An inscription found at Aquinum contains a dedica- tion to Ceres made by a D. Junius luvenalis, flamen of Vespasian, and holding some appointment (perhaps that of trikunus in ^cohors Del,nataru,n ■). Now, as in a.d. ^o^ the cohort ,uarta nelmatarum was in Britain, while an unnumbered cohors Delmatarum was there in ,05, and the prima cohors Delma- taru,,, m 124, scholars have been inclined to suppose that uv.na was actually, as some of the memoirs say, at'one time n Bruam m a m.htary capacity. It should however be added that other Dalmatian cohorts are known elsewhere-thus the fifth cohors Delmatar,.,,, was in Germany in the year ,,6-and m.r '.' rf " °^ '^^ '°'^°" '° ''^''^ 'he inscription attaches ,ts D. lun.us luvenalis cannot be recovered, there is Juvenal with Britain. ^ The inscription of Aquinum, then, throws no real light on he^question of Juvenal's banishment. And it should he added hat If Juvenal was sent to Britain in 103 or ,24 .../.. Scotos^ a the memoirs say, sub honore militiae. this must have taken place either under Trajan or under Hadrian. But it 's inconceivable that either Trajan or Hadrian should have > [Monimsen C. /. Z. x. 53S2, Dessau 2926: the stone is now l«.r Some numeral must have followed coh (ors • Momm^ ' Delmatarum, ^ cumfacillune cxciJer^T^ ' '°™""" -"Jectures ..^. [,-J LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 121 committed to an aged literary man (for aged Juvenal must have been in 124) the command of a cohort on a dangerous frontier. If useless with regard to the question of the banishment, the inscription may, perhaps, be turned to account in another way. The luvenaiis whose name it bears was 2i flamen of Vespasian. So far as this fact goes, it affords a presumption that the inscription was put up in the reign of one of Vespasian's immediate successors, i. e. either of Titus or Domitian. If the luvenalis of the inscription is the poet, he must then, in the reigns of Titus or Domitian (79-96), have attained the age qualifying him for the post of tribunus cohortis. Let us consider whether any light can be obtained by interrogating the memoirs with the help of such internal evidence as is afforded by the satires themselves. Were we dealing in this way with Vergil, Horace, or Ovid, we should meet, in all probability, with no difificulty. But Juvenal's manner is at times so unreal that it is impossible for the reader to be sure whether the poet is referring to contemporary events or only professing to do so. In the first satire, for instance, he speaks of Tigellinus as a formidable person (155, pone Tigeliinum: taeda lucebis in ilia, &c.) and suggests therefore that he is writing in the reign of Nero. Yet it is clear that the piece cannot have assumed its present form until after 100 A.D. in which Marius was condemned for his misgovern- ment in Africa. (49, exul ab octava Marius bibit et fruitur dis Iraiis.) There are however some undoubted marks of time in the satires which I will at once mention, taking the latest first and working backwards. The latest is 15. 27 (assuming the satire to be really Juve- nal's) nuper consule lunco. luncus was consul in the year 127. There is some doubt about 13. 16, stupet haec, qui iam post terga reliquit Sexaginta annos, Fonteio consule natus ^ A Fonteius » Friedlander Sittengeschichte iii. 3. Appendix 5) refers stupet to Juvenal, and therefore puts the poet's birih in 67 a. D. But surely stupet refers to Juvenal's friend. i 123 LIFE AND POEMS OF JVVENAL. Tt, andfhT M K .'"'^ "'' '^°"^"' "■•■"' C. Julius Rufus A^D.67,and ,h,swouIdbnng the thirteenth satire down to ..7 • but C Ponteius Cap.to was consul in 59 with C Vipstanus Apromanus. As Fonteius was the first consul in e^and wou d .erpretation. ^ re^ i" .':^ ^ : ?^::^^^ Parthisque cometen) is riehtlv referred hv ,11 ^'■'«'«"' the rnm,.t ^f ' , ^ reierred by all commentators to the comet of 1,5 a.d. The earthquakes mentioned in the same mcludmg perhaps that of Antioch (a.d. „ j : Dio 68. .5) ^ after L?An ^"" """^ '° '^^^ ''^^" """^ -' 4 long after 100 a.d., for it speaks of the trial of Marius as recent (cum tenues nuper Marius discin.erit Afros, v. „o). Ind the same remark applies, as I have said, to the first satire itie fourth satire purports at least to have been written not The 1: r ^xt 'r' T^ r ''- --' -^ ^^ can hardly have been written in Domitians lifetime. While iir'"r°^ *;• ''^^r'" -''"" "''"'^^ ^ ->"•- - R V K ^"""'""^ Shows that the memory of AgricolVs Bruish campaigns was still fresh in the writer's memory' VVe have thus obtained definite marks of time from about K?K V-°- ^' "'°"'*^ '^^ «'^'^«'' 'hat the firs,, third fourth aghth and tenth satires contain vivid reminiscences of Nert uS; tttN T'': ''' =^~"^- '-'^'^ -nnisce ce suggest that Juvenal was, during Nero's reign (54-68 a d > of an age to be keenly alive to what was going on in Rome LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 123 Let us now proceed to consider another source of evidence. There is no doubt that Juvenal and Martial were on terms of intimate friendship \ and Martial died, at about the age of sixty, in loi or 102 a.d. In the twenty-fourth poem of his seventh book Martial says Cum luvenak meo quae me commiitere temptas, Quid non audebis, perfida lingua, loqui ? 7e fingente nefas Py laden odisset Orestes, Thesea Pirithoi destituisset amor : Tu Siculos fratres et maius nomen Atridas, Et Ledae poteras dissociare genus. In the same book we have an epigram (91) addressed to Juvenal himself, De nostra facunde tibi luvenalis agello Saturnalicias ftiittimus, ecce, nuces. The date of Martial's seventh book is 92 a.d.^ At that time he knows Juvenal intimately and calls him /acundus. This word has been taken as implying that Martial only knew of him as a teacher of rhetoric : but such a limitation is not necessary. Facundus is by writers of this period applied to eloquent writers as well as eloquent speakers or declaimers : Horace A, P. 41 Cui lecta patenter erit res, Nee facundia deseret hunc nee lucidus ordo. Statius Silv. i. 4. 28-30 seu plana solutis Cufn struis orsa modis, seu cum tibi dulcis in artum Cogitur, et nostras curat facundia leges (whether you write prose or poetry) : Martial 5- 30- 3 facundia scaena Catulli (of Catullus as a writer of mimes) : 14. \Z^faatndi Maronis : a strong instance, as Vergil was notoriously a bad speaker. Quint. 8. i. 3 in Tito Livio, mirae facundiae viro, putat inesse Pollio Asinius guandam Patavinitatem. There is nothing, then, to stand in the way of supposing that Martial knew of Juvenal as a writer in 92 a.d. The only other allusion to Juvenal is in Martial's twelfth book (18), written in 10 1 or 102 a.d. Dum tu forsitan inquietus erras Clamosa, luvenalis, in Subura, &c. * One of the biographies (3) notices the fact: Romam cum veniret et MmrtiaUm suum non videret. '^ Martial's epigrams are dated by Friedlanderas follows : Books I and II, 85-86 A.D.: III, 87 88: IV, published December 88; V, autumn 89: VI, 90 (summer or autumn) : VII, VIII, 92, 93 : IX, X (ist edition), 94-96 (December) : X (2nd edition) 98 ; XI, 96; XII, loi. 11^ f if'f ^ « , M 124 £//•£: ^A'O poi:.tf5 Of JVVENAL. The intimacy between Juvenal and Martial need not nf course, of uself exclude the supposition that Juvena was lU wheZTr"- ''" '^""^ '''^ ""^^"^ - ^ whole I doub Tf rlo ?K '"^ '° '"PP°^^ *at there was a difference One ve /remart^r ^ ''"^•^^" "'^ ^^^^ °^ "'^ '- ^ " nn^K /^™''''^'''« CTcumstance. which so far as I know has ; e. mention, the.r language and U^ ^^1 r r:; Thave t d::n?hT"H'^ a'wa>s or great ,n,por.ance when e nave to deal w.th the history of Latin literature The cor e pondence I allude .0 po.nts to one of two conclu ions eith"; took a pleasure m mi.tating his friend's poetry • or thnt vL a7n;:stXt:d%rkinTeh:r^^""- "-^- -^ ^ ->• (I) iheir view of literature Martial 8. 3. ,7 5.W^^«/ />/« ^^^^,^_, • .^^ , . . LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 125 lepidus sale tinge libellos : Agnoscat mores vita legatgue suos. Angusta cantare licet videaris avena^ Dum tua viultorum vincat avena tubas. Martial ic. 4 Qui legis Oedipodem caligantejnque Thyesten^ Colchidas et Scyllas, quid nisi monstra legis ? Quid tibi raptus Hylas^ quid Parthenopaeus et Attis^ Quid tibi dor mi tor proderit Endymion ? Exutusve puer pinnis labentibus^ aut qui Odit amatrices Hermaphroditus aquas ? Quid te vana iuvant miserae ludibria cartae? Hoc lege, quod possit dicere vita, Meum est. Non hie Centauros, non Gorgonas Harpyiasque Invenies : homi- nem pagina nostra sapit. Juvenal i. 52 Haec ego non agiteml sed quid magis t Heracleas Aut Diomedeas aut mugitum labyrinthi Et mare per- cussum puero fabrumque volantem ? 85 Quicquid agunt homines, votum timor ira voluptas Gaudia discursus nostri farrago li- belli est. (2) Subjects treated. Philosophical debauchees. Martial i. 24 Aspicis incomptis ilium, Deciane, capillis, Cuius et ipse times triste supercilium, Qui loquitur Curios,' adsertoresque Camillas: Nolito fronti credere, nupsit heri. 12. 42 Barbatus rigido ?iupsit Callistratus Afro, &c. 7- 5^- 7 Quaere aliquem Curios semper Fabiosque loquentem, Hirsutum et dura rusticitate/ trucem : Invenies : sed habet tristis quoque turba cinaedos : Difficile est vero nubere, Galla, viro. 9. 27. 6 Curios, Camillas, Quinctios, Nutnas, Ancos, Et quid- quid umquam legimus pilosorum Loqueris sonasque grandibus minax verbis, Et cum theatris saeculoque rixaris. Occurrit aliquis inter ista si draucus, &c. 9. 47 Democritos, Zenonas, inexplicitosque Platonas Quid" quid et hirsutis squalet imaginibus. Sic quasi Pythagorae lo- queris successor et heres, Praependet sane nee tibi barba minor, &c. Juvenal 2. i foil. Ultra Sauromatas fugere hinc libet et glacialem Oceanum, quotiens aliquid de moribus audent, Qui Curios simulant et Bacchanalia vivunt. Indocti primum ; «• It , ■' \m • ijii- 126 LIFE AND POEMS Of JUl^ENAL. guamquam plena omnia gyMo Chrx;;^^; ■ tissimus horum est, Si auifZllot?^ , '' "'"" ^"^■^"• Martial i. .07 Saefie J/Tj r '^^'' ^'''^^' ^^''''^^■ , .- r viHae sordidum petam^ ,uaeris^ /c ' ^""'"'^''^ Compare Juvenal 3. 239 foil. Women and their habits At,ue intrare ,onu,s iusL^I^Mi^^ aHI' "'"'" "'' nor, fius tnWsima lux est £t JXv / ' ""'" ""' '"■" Quae nuHt totiens .Z' \ '"" """ ^'^"•'^'' ''''■O- ^^^ l::t^tj^z:T;::r' -' -'- '-^ -- Sic crescit numerus „■ fi, , . ' '" '""'"' ''<""'>'■ w. res ^::,:;:£"' """ ""-■"' ^-V'^ /- -''~, Juvenal 6. .46 En,ron.Uas Tyrias et fe,„ineun, eero.a Quis LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 129 nescit.vel quis nonvidit vuinera pa/i? &c. ib. ^20 ?nagno gaudet sudare tumultu Cum iassata gravi ceciderunt bracchia tnassa, &c. Martial 10. 68 Cum tibi non Ephesos, nee sit Rhodes aut Mytilene, Sed domus in vico, Laeiia, patricio, Deque coloratis nunquam lita mater Etruscis, Durus Aricina de regione pater ; Kvpie fiov, ^«Xi ^01;, ylrvxri fiov congeris usque^ Pro pudor ! Hersiliae civis et Egeriae. Lectuius has voces, nee lectulus audiat omnis, &c. Juvenal 6. 1 85 Nam quid rancidius, quam quae se non putat ulla Eormosam, nisi quae de Tusca Graecula facta est, De Su/monensi mera Cecropis, &c. . . . Quotiens lascivu?n intervenit lllud Ztoi; KCLi. ^vxrjj &C. Martial 2. 66 [/nus de toto peccaverat orbe comarum Anulus, in certa non bene fixus acu. Hoc facinus La/age, speculo quo viderat, ulta est, Et cecidit saevis icta Plecusa comis. Desine iam, La/age, tristes ornare capiilos, &c. Juvenal 6 490 Disponit crinem iaceratis ipsa capillis Nuda umero Psecas infelix nudisque mamiliis. Altior hie quare cin- cinnusl taurea punit Cofitinuoflexi crimen facinusque capilli, &:c. (3) Persons'. Thymele and Latinus: Martial i. 4. 5 qui Thyme/en spectas derisoremque Latinum : 5. 61. 11 quam dignus eras a/apis, Mariane, Latini. 9. 28 (his epitaph). Juv. i. 36 ; 6. 44. Fronto : Mart. i. 55 ; 5. 34 : Juvenal i. 12 Frontonis platani. Mommsen ijndex Plin.) thinks this is possibly the consul of .\.D. 96. Chione: Mart. i. 35. 7 al. Juv. 3. 136. Pontia: Mart. 2. 34; 4. 43: Juv. 6. 638 (where %t^\kit. scholia), Tongilius: Mart. 2. 40, Juv. 7. 130. Cordus the poet : Mart. 2. 57 ; 3. 15 ; 5. 23 ; 5. 26 : Juv. 1.2; 3. 208. PoUio the singer : Mart. 3. 20. 18; 4. 61 ; 12. 12, Juv. 6. 387. 7. 176. I should perhaps have said names, as m.-iny of the names in Martial and Juvenal are doubtless fictitious. But even where this is the case, the coinci- dence is no less striking, and tells, though in a different way, in favour of my argument. VOL. II. K I30 LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. Paris ihe pantomimus, Mart. ii. 13, Juv. 6. 87. Catullus the mime-writer: Mart. 5. 30, Juv. 8. 186; 13. m. Hamillus the schoolmaster: Mart. 7. 62, Juv. 10. 224. Glaphyrus the flute-player : Mart. 4. 5. 8, Juv. 6.* 77. ' (4) Words and expressions. Mart. I. 20. 4 doietum qua/em Claudius edit edas. Juv. 5. 147 boletus domino, sed quales Claudius edit, &c. Mart. I. 76. 14 steriles cathedras. Juv. 7. 203 vanae steri- hsque cathedrae. Mart. I. 92. ^pasceris et nigrae solo nidore ailinae. Juv. 5. 162 captum te nidore suae putat ille culinae. Mart. 2. I. 4 hoc primum est, hrevior quod mihi carta perit : 10. 4. 7 quid te vana iuvant miserae ludibria cartae 1 Juv. i. 1 8 periturae parcere cartae. Mart. 2. 43. 9 /// Libycos Indis suspendis dentibus orbes. Juv. II. 122 latos nisi sustinet orbes Grande ebur. Mart. 4. 54. I cui Tarpeias liceat contingere quercus. Juv. 6. 387 an Capitolinam deberet Pollio quercum Sperare. ^ Mart. 5. 44. 1 1 antiquae venies ad ossa cenae. Juv. 8. 90 ossa vides rerum vacuis exsucta medullis. Mart. 6. 50. 5 Vis fieri dives, Bithynice ? conscius esto • Nil tibi vel minimum basia pura dabunt. Juv. 3. 49 quis nunc dihgitur nisi conscius, &c. Mart. 6. 60. 10 victurus genium debet habere liber, Juv. 6. 562 nemo mathematicus genium indemnatus habebit. Mart. 6. 71. 3 tendere quae tremulum Pelian Hecubaeque maritum Posset ad Hectoreos sollicitata rogos. Juv. 6. 325 quibus mcendi iam frigidus aevo Laomedontiades et Nestoris hirnea pass it. Mart. 8. 21. 2, placidi numquid te pigra Bootae Plaustra vehunt? Juv. 5. 23 pigri serraca Bootae. Mart. 9. 35 Scis quid in Arsaa'a Pa corns deliberet aula • Rhenanam numeras Sarmaticamque manum : Verba ducis Daci cartis mandata resignas, Victricem laurum quam venit ante vtdes: Sets quotiens Phario madeat Id that many of the earlier satires are, in n,y opmion to be assigned to the later years of Domitian. It will no doubt be asked whether the seventh satire, £t spes et ratio stud,orum ,n Caesare tantum, does not belong to the age of Trajan or Hadnan. Undoubtedly this is the opinion of most modern commentators, including Mr. Mayor'. But it is evident ett n. If r " ""'' " '" considerable d.fficulties. The settmg of he piece ,s, in any case, taken from the time of and the good fortune of Quin.ilian, indeed, as quite recen {^^<),e:ca„planavorumFaforum transi). But the con.mentators n iZcibr" "''^'' ' """°' ^°"'P-'^-^- -- '° h e to" ;z at 7nr:::e t vr^- ''- "-^ if ''- '' -'"' n„,^v .u ' "^ ^^"8 '™er than in that of Dom.tian that the evl which men do lives after them For the cnmes of his later years I am not attempting to 'apo^o^ile But u ,s only just to say that they were comn,Ld by a man «hom susp,c,on and terror had driven to the verge o frenzy Dom,t,an was probably not a man of strong head, and ,t should never be forgotten that the historians of his reign belonged o he senatorial party. It is abundantly clear, however even f om heir evidence, that his administration o the empire was .hat of a careful and conscientious rulerl The provides were "efol- ::';;,• • "^"^ ''"™- • • ^^ (-• -^^ Sa.iren, Stoff die Zci. ' Perspektivisches Zcichnen scheint seine' auvenal-sl ■ S^rh. „; ... d.e grossere kuns.lerische Ruhe, das Massh' .e„ die versfh'.e S, r^ ' den we.teren Gesichtskreis und die epischc Glaite w.l.h. k ! T ^' ergeben sollen, dass es etwas V>rg?„?enes i ",er ihl L t""' "' later thai ,^ ^^H/C^ZJ^ "" ""'""' ""' ""= ''^"^'' ' Suetonius, DomUian, , „>„„/„,,•,,, ,^,, ,„,., „,^,„^,^^_ ,„p.,„,,,u. LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 133 well governed in his reign, and justice well administered. Profligate and cruel in private life, he yet showed in some of his legislation a real concern for humanity and public morals. Though himself an indifferent general, there is no evidence that he was not concerned to make good military appoint- ments. That he had an honest intention to encourage litera- ture, so far as to do so seemed compatible with the security of the Empire and the preservation of private morality, there can be no doubt. He took steps for the restoration of libraries and the copying of texts. The calumny of Suetonius, that he read nothing but the commentarii and acta of Tiberius, is refuted by the undoubted fact that he read Martial, and was indeed concerned to keep that brilhant writer within the bounds of decency. And if he read Martial he probably read Turnus and Statius. The agon Capitolinu5\ or five-yearly contest of artists and men of letters on the Capitol, and the poeticae studium, tarn insuetum aniea sibi quam postea spretum ct abicctum, redtavitque etiam publice ... 4. Instituit et qiiinquemiale certamen Capita- lino lovi triplex, musicum equestre gymnicum, et aliqtianto pluriuvi quam nunc est coronarum. Certabant enivi et prosa oratione Graece Latineqiie, &c. . . . Celebrabat et in Albano quot annis Quinquatria Aiinef-vae, cui collegium instituerat, ex quo sorte ducti magisterio fungerentur ederentque eximias venationes et scaenicos ludos, superque oratorum ac poetarum certamina. 8. lus diligenter et industrie dixit, phrumque et in foro pro tribunali extra ordinem : ambitiosas centum virorum sententias rescidit : recupera- tores, ne se perfusoriis adsertionibus accommodarent, identidem admonuit : nummarios indices cum suo quemque consilio notavit. Auctor et TR. PL. fuit aedilem sordidum repetundarum accusandi iudicesque in eum a senatu petcndi. Magistratibus quoque urbicis provinciarumque praesidibus coer- cendis tantum curae adhibuit, ut neque modes tiores unquam neque iustiores extiterint : e quibus plerosqiu post ilium reos omnium criminum vidimus. Suscepta correctione monim licentiam t heat rale m promiscue in equite spec- tandi inhibuit : scripta famosa vulgoque edita, quibus primores viri ac feminae tiotabantur, abolevit. Sac. * Statius Silvae 3. 5. 28 : tu me nitidis Albana prementem Dona comis, sanctoque indutum Caesaris auro, &c., 4. a. 66 Cum modo Germanas acies, modo Daca sonant em Proelia, Palladio tua me manus induit auro. 4. 5. 22 hie mea carmina Regina bellorum virago Caesareo decoravit auro\ 5. 3, 228 si per me serta tuHsses Caesarea donata manii. Hi 134 LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. similar trials of skill at the emperor's Alban villa, no doubt must have done something to encourage poetry and rhetoric nTntf " r t"" '^""^ ^'''""'- 54) 'hat they resulted Cy m flattery of the emperor. ^ ^ thaUoTnlV" 7"" '"'" '""y- "^ ■^''°"''l P^°bably say that to encourage literature was an honourable tradition of the "mLrtrfunc?"' ') I "°"''"' "^^ '"-^^^ -^ "P° mmself the functions of the old aristocracy. There was no dehberate mtention on the part of the emperor to erul^he freedom of speech as such : a poet or orator was safe so o' a he remamed on neutral ground. None the less, of course fsi Choked up, as the aristocracy declined from its ancient nower posuion, and independence. For the production ofXt wor5 expansion of soul is necessary, nor could ,„inds of '^^^^ and sincere emotion be content with the hackneyed themeTof yhoog,„ ., ,^.^,..^^ ^^^^.^^ .^^^^^^^M theme so all, the mam burden of Juvenals seventh satire is not so much he encouragement of literature by the court as its negLTbJ the nobility its natural patrons ; and this is a point upon which Martial, writing mostly under Domitian, insets wi^h almost wearisome iteration. S.>U Maucnates, no„ ^.." , ^^ Marones, and so on. If the satire under discussion isl^ be allowed to have any life and meaning it n^ust surely be a siHd to the reign of Domitian. ^ assigned It remains to be asked whether there is any evidence that Juvenal was banished from Rome inH if "^"'"e"^*^ that bani>;hf.H? Tk c ■ ^onie, and if so, when he was banished ? The fact ,s asserted by all the memoirs, though they differ as to the place of exile. I will now ment on the on"v Other evidence which seems tn m^ »^ k ^ and of this I h^ustconfert^t ttlTan be^^Lr,:': T'"' juvenal twice. It is, however, noteworthy that Mir.i.,1 A,^ not again address Juvenal till the year fo ,1 y '« afte^ I>omit.ans death. Can the reason^f this 'be the absete LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 135 of the exile from Rome ? If so, it may well be that Juvenal was one of the large number of persons whom the last years of Domitian drove from the city and from Italy. Let us now, leaving the question of chronology, endeavour to form an idea of the social surroundings into which Juvenal was born, and to examine whether his satires are a faithful reflection of i . It is not too much to say that modern city life on a large scale, the highest development of European civilization in its best and its worst forms, has its first example in the Rome of the first century a. d. In the history of moral progress, eighteen hundred years would sometimes appear to be a mere cipher. I am not, be it well understood, wishing to understate the differences between ancient and modern life as a whole ; but even taking all these into account, it remains true that Rome was the first great capital city in Europe, exhibiting in its society all the features of the struggle for wealth, that is, for power and position, which is the main characteristic of modern life when left at repose from war or revolution. The central fact which should be grasped in looking at the Roman society of the early Empire, as contrasted with that of the last two centuries of the Republic, is the comparative instability of its distinctions. The disorder, the want of public security of the last period of the Commonwealth, had endangered com- merce, and thus helped to maintain the landed aristocracy in an assured position. With the Empire came peace, and their chances to all and sundry. JVunc patimur lotigae pads fftaia, says Juvenal regretfully in his sixth satire (286). While the aristocracy was wasting its strength in futile struggles with the court, and many noble families were becoming impoverished, the honest merchant and the unscrupulous adventurer, Roman, Greek, or Oriental, were pushing to the front and using their new social and political opportunities. The situation was much aggravated by the existence of slavery. A peculiar character was given at this time, and at Rome, to this curse of i 136 LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. Rome Th J !, ^ '• '^'°'" °"« '•e-'-so" or another, to s:t -/LAS i£ ~ r =;:; not inconsiderable men who ZT\ !' ^^ '^'" *''^' °'"'^" with the vices of .r . "^ ^"'^ '"'^^'^'1 e^eO'thing, supp.e^er ,Sbe ,S"' 1"'°"' "'^ virtues of freedo-^' and in mind that c^S' \ ''''"^S-man, proud in heart served the lust o ^^ ^"' ''"'^ S"°^« '" -"r cap, darknes ; h her ZST'^ '"" ""^ ''" ^'^ -' °^ and broke themt'helerfacToThr''^ " ' ''''''' ^■°'''' the contriving of ,ust and tl :7o^r^v" 'T "." ;o/n:srhrs^-si-^^^^^ Quadra (Sen JV O , ,M ,, ^ ," , ^- ^7- S foil.) the Hostius Seneca, Martial and P.? ''"' '"'^ '^' Trimalchio of •■ness and dignity were oLed a ver^^rh't""";^"- of foreien vice and ,h. u 7 ^ ''>' "^^ '"«"" The mere p esence of th^n ?' °' '°"''«" '"^-"'"-• Roman feehnT tL h, f r '''"' '"''''"^ ^"^ "''^™^^d icciing. ihe hunt for wealth tho r„cK r rorn.a.on of f.nlense ^^^^^^^^^ ^ X f""^^. ^"' ^'^ gratified itself by every refinernent of , '^''' ^ ' slaves gave facilitierfn !k ! '"'^ ^' '^^ "^"'titude of gave facilities for the gratification of every forni of lust. ^w/a. ,..,., ,:iJ^"Z;^^z T "'^^ ^^:;''^ '"^'''''- ''^--^. §§ 32-34. ^ompararet. See especially Pliny //. A' 33 LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 137 Impudicitia in ingenuo probrum est^ in servo necessitas, in li- berto officium^ is an opinion quoted by the elder Seneca. A loosening of the older social conventionalities began even in the circles of the Roman nobility, who sometimes for their own gratification, sometimes to please the court, would forget the proprieties of a former day and turn actors, gladiators, charioteers. Women enjoyed their share of the general freedom, and while the more serious among them plunged into literature or law, or became devotees of some foreign religion, others patronized actors and gladiators, or pursued other and more questionable forms of an emancipated life. Meanwhile the life of the capital exercised its irresistible attraction upon the provinces. Men streamed to Rome, with hopes, more or less slender, of making a livelihood by honest means. They might succeed, and make a name in literature or politics ; they might fail, and become the restless and degraded dependents of one or more of the great houses. This is the dark side of the picture; what is there to set against it ? This century, if characterized by the beginning of remarkable social changes, saw also the beginning of a religious and moral evolution no less remarkable. In the upper and better educated class philosophy and the higher culture were producing considerable moral results. Philosophy and religion are in this unfortunate, that while their practical manifestations in ordinary life are often unrecognized even by honest observers, any clever cynic can detect their counterfeit. Philosophy also, as Bernays has well pointed out, lay in the ancient world under a peculiar disadvantage. It was for the most part revolutionary and opposed to the existing forms of social life. Postremo nemo aegrotus quicquam somniat Tarn infandum, qiwd non aliquis dicat philosophus^ is the verdict of healthy Roman common sense as expressed in Varro's Saturae {EumenSdes fr. 6). No doubt, as the social evolution implied in the change from Greek to Roman life worked itself gradually on, the antagonism became less pronounced. The organization of the Roman empire was, to a certain extent, a realization of the Stoical ideal ; at any !(■ 1 ' 1 1,1 138 LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. sTbiutS t u :htr„ XT 7 °^ '"'''-' -'>■ ''- -^ performance of the dS Tc Le Ts -tt ^" """ far from it— with tu^ c "^' inconsistent— Non The leslhad hf hT"" k"' ' ''°" °^ Academician, '"e less had the philosophic profession i-s •, „i,„i a strong tendency, at the period which welre con V, ' ■solate its followers if not from the du^es leas 10^;^° in the nature of thincs • fZ ^ ^'"."'^."' ''"^ ^y so<^'ety lay intellect' a:dr:';:rwr:a'p:,Urr-^^^^ ^'-- "-^-e Jud.sm found its way froml^th" ^ l^ ^ ^ g^hiri dlT Tl^f t? • ^^-^^ '^'''°""'^'^' '^-"^ ^^^ e uorn laaies. But of the great revolution which was silPn.K, P^panng itself among the lower orders, binding togehr the poor and oppressed into a new society with nrin ? / duct, a mode and object of wors^^ t^ hoSr t'hV T' unknown or imperfectly known beVthe': jL" Z^X LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 139 In the presence of social phenomena so absorbingly inter- esting, what is Juvenal's attitude ? Are his pictures of contem- porary life to be trusted ? Does he, in his character of moralist, represent the highest effort of contemporary thought ? In a sense in which Juvenal did not intend the words, difficile erat saturam non scribere. The satura was not properly an attack on vice and folly, though Juvenal did his best to encourage the idea that it was, but a sketch of life and character. The Romans had a natural aptitude for this kind of writing, not because they were more spiteful than the Greeks, but because they had a larger sphere of experience, and a greater knowledge of the ars vivendi. At the time which we are now considering, the artist had abundance of materials, nor is it surprising that during these years two eminent poets. Martial and Juvenal, refused to have anything to say to the old mythologies, and turned to real life for their models. Turnus, a third excellent writer of the time and a satirist like Juvenal, has been so unfortunate as to leave to posterity nothing but his name, which is coupled with that of Juvenal by Rutilius Nama- tianus (i. 603). Martial (i i. 10) says of him Contuiit ad saturas ingentia pectora Turnus: and again (7. 97. 8) Tumi twbilibus libeiiis. Juvenal was the native of a country town, Aquinum, and had been brought up in the house of a rich /ibertinus, whether as his son or fosterchild is unknown. In position he exactly resembled his contemporary Turnus, who. if we may believe a notice preserved in Valla's scholia to Juvenal i. 20, attained great influence in the courts of Titus and Vespasian. He seems to have been in Rome from his childhood upwards {3. 84 nostra infantia, &c.). Thus, though an Italian by birth, he was a Roman by education, and as a consequence became a Roman in sympathies and antipathies. Several passages show that for some time at least he was a cliens^ in the later sense of the word, that is, a poor dependent on great houses: i. 99 iubet a praecone vocari Jpsos Troiugenas^ nam vexant limen et ipsi Nobiscum ; 3. \%i praestare tributa clientes Cogimur^ et culiis I40 : \ LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. ^^'^^A-. A^///.z ,,;^,> .• and so Mart 12 i«/5, . /• • inquietus erras, &c "^ ^i^ first fan of his co.posi.fon: Th^ ou; :? r^r^' '^ '"^ '°"^ wherf> TK . ^^ ^"^ declamator is everv- /«X ^o S^nrthTd' T'' ^'''"' '^^^^'-^'^ -'''-^^' from the rest- ^ declamatory satires, such as the tenth, strung toge hf IIT^'T • "" "^'^' °"' ^"^ '^-'r Lateranus 8 5 hV ^ - ''""''"'' '• "^ '■°"- = °f 8 2,r ,fi« ; ''^''^ °" ^'^^^°' -^I^^us, and the Decii o- 231-268: on Seianus, 10. >;6 foil ■^nA „,(,„ • T satire. The comDo.,MV.n .^o 'on., and others m the same ician InnJ """P""""" "8="" 's sometimes that of a rhetor- a sen- s of' '"'r°"'°"^' '^^°-^^'--^- The first safVe " Crispinus with his rin^the a«'er Ma'tho"" '^\^^^''^- infamous will-hunter the rnhK fu '" *"' ''""• '^e the provinces: th pander husbanlrhrr'',!'^ '"""'"^^ °^ the forger, the Doisoner TT ' °""^°"' spendthrift, ■ntelligfbi; orLrL Jiih h e'::m::.rT'f "^""^ ■" "° and the same conclusion n sev"ra tSt'' "'"' ""^"'^ saturam? Then at v S, ,J variations «<,« x^„V(«„, . clij m. r„ '• ." *>"'1»"" ■>' "he hardship, of suppose any coherence at all in 1 ^'^"'^ ^'^ '° hved before the d of n1 iet T"'""^ ''°" ""° passage (.W .. .ie., &^rpurpl 1 to'ha ""k '" '"°"'" after too .a.d. Purports to have been written Z.//T ^A^Z) POEMS OF JUVENAL. 141 Juvenal's most elaborate effort is the sixth satire. A very brief analysis of the first part of this celebrated piece will discover the badness of its composition, 1-59 : Do not think of marriage, few women being both chaste and fair : 60-113 do not look for a wife in the theatre : all ladies prefer actors and gladiators: 1 14-135 Messalina's habits are described: 135-160 no men love their wives, but only their wives' for- tune or beauty : 1 61-183 *^ perfect wife would be intolerable : 184-199 it is very bad in a lady to talk Greek: 200-224 ^ wife is always a tyrant: 225-230 she will marry as often as she likes: 231-241 the daughter-in-law is corrupted by the mother-in-law : 242-245 there is a woman in every lawsuit : 246-267 ladies are often very fond of gymnastics : and so on, and so on. In fact, with all its brilliancy of execution in detail, the piece, as far as composition is concerned, is a mere chamber of horrors. The main theme, that it is madness to marry because a good wife cannot be found, is not so much worked out as illustrated by a series of pictures quite unconnected, and argu- ments sometimes inconsistent The gist of the argument seems to be that women are either very bad or very good, or too learned, or too athletic ; but in truth there is no argument properly so called, but a string of sketches, which give the impression of having been drawn not from a wide observation of life, but from particular and notorious cases. An instance of Juvenal's desire to produce effect at the expense of con- sistency is to be found in his treatment of the passion of women for athletics and for law, in the second and in the sixth satires. In the second satire, where his object is to exalt women at the expense of men, Favonia is made to say luctaniur paucae^ comedunt coiyphia paucae : Numquid nos agimus causas, civilia iura Novimusi &c. But in the sixth satire (242 foil., 246 foil., 352 foil.) a directly opposite im- pression is conveyed. Rhetoric, as Matthew Arnold well says, is always incon- sistent, and this is the inconsistency of the rhetorician. A cor- ^ 142 UFE AND POEMS OF JVVESAL. responding unreality tinees manv ^t t a morahst. We have seen th^ in t ^T""''' """^""^^ ^^ ■""ch 'he same amount of iidl"' ^'" ""'"" ^' ^''P«"ds - barber as on the most Th^H °? °" '^' """"'"" -i^^e of grievances of the poorcl^ntperhr^H "''"'■"^'^' ^^^ '^at the » place out of allpropo ,ion " ^ °"" ^''^'"'^^^- °^<^"Py more strikingly conspicuou It isf" ■""=" ""'P""""'^-- St^ second and eighth satires- '1'^^?°^ J^^^ement in the and fifty verses of excellent ouaHf! ^',f ' •"''^' '°'"'^ '"'"^red o'^ .nto an ind.gnant tt rat,?^:^ eTbr'J"--'-ikes fond of horses, the nobleman whn . ""Pieman who is too crimes of Nero : which are it would" °\"^ ^'^8^' ^^ '^e ■mother and his relations -and a! ''"'' ""'' '"""'"' °' "is and the drama. Are we ;ead,n; D.^^ ' ^" '°'^ °' "'"-- - is further evidence ^llZfT^'Y""'-^^"'^'^^' "moralist, that irritation agist sSl ^""""' " ""'^ '''"^ » -s strong an element of hf ntect^ '"""'"P"''''' ^^ "'most v-ce ? That with such a ooinr 7 ^'""'"' ""^^^ "g"'"st •heoryof life but that of th. '"'' "^^ ^''""'^ have no 'hat he should see SeTn ;t-,o3:rf '■^', ^--" -- 's only natural (14 ,,^y ' ^losophy but a solemn imposture he has nothing to say al'in^fT"" °'''''''''' •"'"■ however 'he amphitheatre! hough Sene 7 "" ''''"'' "''^ ^--^ of P'etely condemns tllem " ^''' ^^"'- ^ -"<' 47) com- Ju^^^ltntrrSrat'^""" -^ '^^ ^--^ -hat 'he simple philosophic!, ee.n-roTp '' '' ''"'^ ^''°" °^ ■ncapableof the light and nl , '''""'• he is equally Juvenal we hear whapeolot^^^^^^ °^ P^'--. From h"t we know nothing o 'heir nl r'^''«''°"^ "^^^^ done ; a character, he cannot laulh Th "7 f'V "' '^"""°' '^-• "gl- Thmk of Juvenal's Virro and * In the second Cv i^,^ nff» Z"^'"': &c. ""' """^''" /'«.«a c.a.M,; z,„/.,^,';„; LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. 143 then of Petronius's Trimalchio ; the one is a figure cut out in paper, the other a hving man. The inconsistencies of the sixth satire might be defended in a humorist ; he would be in his right in saying that a Hcentious wife or an over-virtuous wife are equally objectionable. But this ground is not open to the moralist, who is bound to defend virtue against all cavil. In fact, Juvenal is at his best not when he is lashing vice, but when he is in the vein of grave and simple moral expos- tulation. The tenth satire is perhaps too declamatory to be taken as a specimen of his best work : the thirteenth and four- teenth are better, defaced by none of the faults which I have mentioned, and carrying the reader along from point to point with sweetness and dignity. The style of Juvenal, the influence of which is so familiar in modern literature, is, so far as we know, new in satire. While Persius imitates Horace, and makes at least a clumsy attempt to preserve the form of a dialogue, Juvenal, in most of his pieces, throws this entirely aside, and casts his ideas into the mould of the Vergilian epic. Fingimus haec altum satira sumente coturnum Scilicet^ et finem egressi iegemque priorum Grande Sophocieo carmen bacchamur hiatu Montibus ignotutn Rutulis caeioque Latino (6. 634). Taking these words out of their context, we might accept them as a description of Juve- nal's manner, which, like all we know of the man, is elevated, serious, and unbending. He is a perfect master of his metre, a perfect master of expression within the limits of his ideas. But his ideas, and the way in which he marshals them, are those of the poetical declaimer, not of the poet. Facit indignatio versum : verses, yes ; but not poetry. It would be difficult to quote from Juvenal one really poetical line. But he is a great metrist, a master of points, a rhetorician inspired by the love of his calling. His arrangement is often bad : it is his glittering language which arrests attention. It is this, far more than the coherence or truthfulness of his work- manship, which has won and will maintain his position in literature. There is a genuine and passionate rhetoric which ■H . 144 LIFE AND POEMS OF JUVENAL. seems almost to reach the strain of poetry ; this is the gift of Juvenal, wh>ch we should do ill to underrate. But we should do equally ill to mistake it for anything higher than it really is or to put too much confidence in a writer honest indeed but soured by poverty and disappointed ambition, who, with w-hatever brilliancy of detail, does not pass beyond the bounds of a somewhat narrow experience, mingles righteous anger with much personal irritation, and gives, after all, an exaggerated picture of a peculiar phase of ancient life. [NOTE TO PAGE n8. J'wir^T^l^ '""'''" '" P""' ^"^ ""e unpnblUhed life of Juvenal to wh ch Mr Nettleship alludes on p. „ 8, though it is of no real valui Wne almost .denfcal with Jahns third life, still more so with Durr's IV A U occurs on the first page of MS. Canon. Lat. xxxvii — imr^r"'" '^'^^'i'''"'' f"" *• ''^ Aquino oppido ten,porib„s Claudii Xeronis .mperator,s: prima aetate siluit : in media fere aetata declamauit • unde Idem fecit quoddam m Paridem pantomiraum, qui tunc apud imperaiorem plurimum po.erat (.) : hac de causa venit in suspitionem quasi ipsiu'T m^ra ^s empora noUsset Sicque sub auten.u mil.tUe pulsus e't urbc r^a tristitia et languore penit.J VI. THE STUDY OF LATIN GRAMMAR AMONG THE ROMANS IN THE FIRST CENTURY A.D.' (•JOURNAL OF PHILOLOGY,' VOL. XV. {xS86).) -♦«- The history of Latin Grammar in antiquity demands a new chapter in the record of Latin hterature. The seven volumes of Keil's edition of the Grammatici Lathii appear to contain a large number of independent grammatical treatises, which bear different names, and are often quoted as the works of in- dependent authors. A nearer study of them soon reveals the fact that they consist, in large part, of matter nearly or quite identical ; that the same rules, lists, and instances served as the stock in trade of a great number of different professors at various times and in distant places : and that the whole mass might probably be so sifted as to reduce the bulk of original work to a comparatively small amount, and enable us to refer it to the authorship of probably less than a dozen scholars, none of them later than the age of the Antonines. The work of analysis will certainly be tedious beyond ex- pression, but it will be worth going through, and indeed must be gone through before the history of Latin literature is complete. I can personally claim to have done no more than attempt an » [Prof. Nettleship left a few notes for the revision of this essay, but they were far too fragmentary for another hand to use.] VOL. II. L 146 LATIS GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CEXTi'RY. account of the labours of Verrius Fhccus, and make a beginning in the way of investigating the sources of GeUius's Nodes Aiticae and the De Compendiosa Doctrina of Nonius. The present essay will be devoted to an extension of these enquiries. It may fairly be said of this troublesome piece of research, as Quintilian says of grammar in general, plus habet opens quam ostentationis. As far as I know, there is no continuous work in which the subject is dealt with with anything like thorough- ness. Much has been done towards the investigation of particular points by several scholars in Germany, as by Alfred Schottmiiller in his monograph De C, Plinii libris gram ma tin's J by Casimir Morawski's Quaestiones QuintiUaneae2iX\d, analysis of the first part of Charisius's Ars Grammatica, by H, F. Neumann's essay De Plinii Dubii Ser mortis Libris Cha- risii et Prisnani fontibus, and by Schlitte De Plinii SecunJi SfiiJiis Gramma/iiis (Sordhausei), 1883). These treatises, none of which exceed the length of an ordinary- dissertation for the degree of doctor of philosophy, are, with some German reviews upon them, the only aids which I have been able to procure \ It will perhaps be convenient that I should divide my subject intQ two parts ; giving, in the first place, a short account of the scholars who wrote upon grammar during this period, with a sketch of their works, and in the second place en- deavouring to ascertain the contents of these works, and mark the progress of the science, if any, recorded in them. I. It would be impossible to gain anything like an intelligent idea of the progress of grammatical study in the first centur}* without taking notice of the labours of Marcus Terentius Varro, on which, to a large extent, though perhaps not to so large an extent as has sometimes been supposed, the work of succeeding scholars was based. Varro. then, composed neither a regular Ars Grammatical nor a lexicon. But he treated grammatica as one of the ^ Dr. T. W. Beck has kindly presented the writer with his Qutusticrus \cvai di .1/. VaUric Prccc ^Groniugen, iSS6'^ since these sheets were sent to press, bee p 169 «. LATIN GRAMMAR I\ THE FIRST CENTURY. 147 nine disciplinae, or stages of the ordinary educational curri- culum, translating the word ypa/i^ianr^ by litteratura, a term fairly equivalent to our word philology' when used in the wider sense. Of litteratura or ypa^t^ar^Kn Varro took the broader view which was the inheritance of the Alexandrian tradition. He defined it as consisting of four parts, reading, interpretation, correction, and criticism : lectio, enarratio, emendatio, iudicium. His book is known to have included also a treatment {a) of the alphabet, {b) of parts of speech, of which he recognized four (c) of pronouns, (d) of local adverbs or prepositions. And it ^n hardly be doubted that he must also have handled the subject of nouns and verbs. Besides the Disciplinae, which was more or less an educa- tional handbook. Varro was the author of several fuller and more valuable treatises. (1) The De Lingua Latina, in twenty-five books, only a few of which remain. This was a comprehensive work on the Latin language, including discussions on et}*mo!ogy, gender, case- formation, comparison of adjectives, conjugation of verbs, and the collocation of words in forming sentences. (2) De Sermone Latino. Lingua means language, sermo language in a connected form : in other words, lingua is language, sermo is usage. The treatise of Varro consisted of five books, which discussed orthography, accent, quantitv, metre, and the various styles of prose composition. il) De Antiquitate Litterarum ; probably one of his eariiest works, treating of the origin and histor>- of the Latin alphabet. (4) De Origine Linguae Latinae ; probably a discussion of the connexion between the Greek and I^tin languages. (5) De Similitudine Verborum. Of this only a single frag- ment remains, and the same must be said of (6) De Utilitate Sermonis. Two other important works belonging to the last years of the republic must be mentioned, the Commentarii Grammatid of Nigidius Figulus, and the De Analogia of Julius Caesar. The first was a work in some thirty books, which according to L 2 148 LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. Gellius, who has preserved some fragments of it, was prevented by its style from becoming popular, or even as widely known as the writings of Varro. Julius Caesar's treatise De Analogia consisted of two books, the first of which dealt with the alphabet ' and with words ' : the second with irregularities of inflection in nouns and verbs. We have now arrived at the Augustan age. The first work which meets us here is the lexicon {De Verborum Significatu) of Verrius Flaccus, a contemporary of Livy. Of this work and its author I have already given an account in my Essays in Latin Literature. Verrius also wrote a work De Orthographia, of which I shall have occasion to speak further on. Of M. Pomponius Marcellus, a scholar of the age of Tiberius, I believe that nothing is known but what Suetonius tells us in the twenty-second chapter of his De Grammaticis \ Originally a boxer, and one must presume a slave, he for some reason or other turned his attention to scholarship, and became a very severe critic of the Latin of his contemporaries. He informed Tiberius that though he could confer the franchise upon human beings, to confer it upon words was out of his power. We must suppose from the account given us by Suetonius— and this I believe is all we have— that he made his livelihood by practice at the bar and teaching grammar: that he wrote anything there is no evidence. I come next to a figure notable for a time in Roman society * Pompeius in Keil's Gtammatici Latini 5. p. 108. - Gellius I. 10. ^ JM. romponitis Marcellus, sermonis I.atini exactor mokstissimus, in advocatione qiiadatn {nam intcrduni et causas agehat) soloccismum ab adversaria factum usque adeo arguere perseveravit, quoad Cassius Severus, interpellatis iudicibus, dilalionem petiit, lit litigator suus alium grammati- cum adhiberet -. * quando non putat is cum adversaria de iure sibi sed de soloecismo controversiam futuram.' Hie idem, cum ex oratioue Tiberium reprehendisset, adfrmante Ateio Capitoue, et esse illud Latimtm, et si non esset futtn um ctrte iam inde, * Mentitur' inquit, ' Capita ; tu enim, Caesar ^ civitatem dare potes hominibus, verbo non potes.' Pugilcm olim fuisse Asinius Callus hoc in cum epigrammate ostendit : • Qui caput ad laevam didicit, glossemata nobis Praecipit : os nullum, vel potius pugilis' LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 149 and ever afterwards in the histor)' of Latin Grammar, that of Remmius Palaemon of Vicenza \ This vain, arrogant, talented, luxurious and immoral man was born, it is probable, during the last years of Augustus's reign. He was originally a slave, by trade a weaver, and learned the rudiments of literature while accompanying his master's son to and from school. Having obtained his freedom, he took to teaching grammar at Rome. Although there was no vice with which he was not commonly charged, although both Tiberius and Claudius openly stated that he was the last man to whom the education of youth ought to be committed, his long memory, his readiness as a speaker, and his power of extemporizing verses, enabled him to distance all his competitors. Nor was his school his only source of emolument, though it brought him in ^4000 a year. He made a considerable profit from clothes-shops, and succeeded to a marvel in the cultivation of the vine. Palaemon's Ars Grammatical or handbook of grammar, seems to have been the first exclusively scholastic treatise on I^tin Grammar. For the section on Gramtnatica in Varro's Disci- piinae was, in all probability, no more a school-book than Freund's Triennium Philologiaem^ or I wan M tiller's Handbuch der klassischen Phiiologie. Varro and Verrius Flaccus had taken the trouble to collect stores of material ; our able ped- agogue knew how to turn their labours to his own profit. Nor was he in the least grateful to the scholar who was no doubt indirectly responsible for much of his success. Terentius Varro he called a pig, and boasted that letters had been born and would die with himself. The Ars of Palaemon, which gained its author considerable celebrity in his day, contained, as we learn from Juvenal, rules for correct speaking, instances from ancient poets, and chapters on barbarism and solecism ^ When it was published is not * Suetonius De Grammaticis 23. ' Juvenal 6. 452 Odi Hanc ego, quae repetit volvitque Palaemonis artem, Servata semper lege et rat tone loqucndi, Xec curanda viris opicac castigat amicae Verba : soloecismum liceat fecisse marito. lb. 7. 215. 1 150 LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. known, but for a reason which I will mention below I think it probable that the date fell between 67 and 77 a. a I now proceed to mention the eight books of the elder Pliny entitled Vudii Sermonis, an expression which may be para- phrased On Irregularities in Formation. This work was wruten m the last years of Nero's reign, when, as the younger Pl.ny puts u ■. the atmosphere of despotism made it dangerous to pursue any free or manly branch of study. It had been published for ten years when Pliny, in 77 a. a, was writing the Preface to his Natural History »; and it had excited some opposition among the philosophers of all the principal sects 1 he Ars Grammatica attributed to Pliny by Priscian and Gregory of Tours is, it can hardly be doubted after all the labour expended on the point by recent scholars, the same work as the Duhii Sermonis. 1 must finally mention the man who was probably the best scholar of the century, M. Valerius Probus of Berytus in Syria. This remarkable man took up the study of scholarship, if we may believe Suetonius, only after failing to succeed in the military profession. The study of the ancient authors-and such was the self confidence of the Augustan writers and their immediate successors that Cicero, Lucretius. Catullus, and Varro were reckoned and perhaps half despised as ancients long before the century had run its course-soon began to languish at Rome But these writers maintained their reputation out of Italy, and the curiosity of Probus was awakened by reading some of them with a provincial lecturer. The study of these fact that the pains he was spending were likely to gain him nothing but discredit, he determined to devote his life to the emendation, punctuation, and explanation of ancient texts LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY, 151 during his lifetime, but left a considerable posthumous work in the shape of a Si/va Observationum Sermonis An fig id, or mis- cellaneous collection of ancient usage ; and also a book De inaequalitate consiietudinis. He was alive in 88 a. d., but his merits had been recognized at Rome some thirty years before \ II. So much upon the external history of grammatical study during this period. We have now to enter upon the more difficult and interesting part of our task, and endeavour to ascertain approximately what were the contents and character of the various works just mentioned. Much of the treatise of Verrius Flaccus De Orthographia can be recovered from the books De Orthographia of Terentius Scaurus and Velius Longus '^^ who wrote under Trajan and Hadrian, and from the seventh, with part of the fourth, chapters of Quintilian's first book. This statement I am, of course, bound to make good ; and must ask for the patient attention of the reader while I develop a somewhat tedious argument. The treatises of Terentius Scaurus and Velius Longus on orthography are so generally similar that they may almost certainly be referred to a common authority. Now we have already seen that Varro had a disquisition on orthography in his De Sertnone Latino. But, so far as we can infer from the remaining fragments of this work, Varro treated the subject incidentally only, as a branch of Latin usage. He does not seem to have written any special work on correct spelling. Nor, again, is it at all likely that Scaurus and Longus had direct recourse to this section of the De Sermone Latino. They often, indeed, mention Varro, but as an authority of whom they are independent, and from whom they are quite ready to differ. And their range of quotations includes Vergil, which Varro, who died in 27 b. c, could hardly have done. It is next to be observed that the authority followed by Scaurus and Longus must have been more ancient than ' Conington's Vergil, vol. i. 4th edition, p. Ixiv. ' Keil Grammatici Latini vol. 7 : the following references to Scaurus and Longus are to the pages of that volume. 152 LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. Quintilian For it is impossible to read the fourth and the eventh chapters of Quintihan's first book side by side with Longus and Scaurus J^e Ortho,^„phia without noticir,g the thes/in d :°:TP°"^.^"^- ''"--" 'hem. Let me exhibit these n detail, by prmtmg Quintilian in the text, and the parallel passages from Longus, Scaurus and Paulus in the Quintil. I. 4, ?§ 7, 8. Desintne aliquae nobis necessarlae Uthrae, nan cum Graecascr,b„nus {turn enim ah iis d„as mutuamur) sed proprie 'nLau„,s, ut .„ his 'servus' et 'r.i^,s' aeoiiaJn digaJma^ destderatur, et medius est ,uida,n 'u'et'i' litterae solus ■ non emm s,c • optimum ' didmus ut ' opimum V votam ^" ""'■'" """' "''""'^'"' ^^'"•'"^ '"'"" "^^firationis notam, quae st necessaria est etiam contrariam sibi poscit) ut effectu speaeque, n,st guod paulum a nostris obiiquatur, coppa ultma, qua tarn carere potuimus, quam psi non quaerimus'. ' Scaurus p. 1 2 Keil quia aniiqui per ' uo ' scriiitri.,, .v., , ,ui pu,a.cn.„t superlativlfll ut^Ua/"^": ■ ""'"" Z'"'"'"""' visum est -. comp. Longus -^t,. ^ndtgebant, supervacuum Scaurus 23 Primum ilYud respondemus, H esse Utteram f-. r Longus ,2 53, who concludes on the whole that T is?reu;r Thf'"^' Longus 50 Z lingua Latina non apioscit. ^' LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 153 § 10. At quae 74 1 vocaks iunguntur aut unam longam faciunt, ut veteres scripserunt, qui geminatione earum velut apice utebantur\ aut duas, nisi quis putat etiam ex tribus vocalibus syliabam fieri, si non aliquae officio consonantium fungantur. § II. Litter a i sibi insidit: ' coniicit' enim est ab ilio ' iacit,' etu, quomodo nunc scribitur 'vulgus' ei 'servus.' Sciat etiam Ciceroni placuisse ' aiio Maiiavique' gemifiata i scribere ; quod si est, etiam iungetur ut consonans '. § 12. Quare discat puer, quid in litteris proprium, quid com- mune, quae cum quibus cognatio : nee miretur cur ex ' scamno ' fiat ' scabillum,' aut a pinno, quod est acutum, securis utrimque habens aciem * bipennis '*.* § 13. Ut Valesii et Fusii in Vaierios Furiosque venerunt, ita arbos iabos vapos etiam et ciamos ac iases et asae fuerunt*. § 14. Atque ipsa s Utter a ab his nominibus in quibusdam ipsa alteri successit : nam ' mertare ' atque ' pultare ' dicebant ' : quin 'fordeum faedosque ' pro aspiratione f ut simili iittera utentes ' .* § 15. Sed b quoque in locum aliarum dedimus aliquando, » Scaurus 18 Accius geminatis vocalibus scribi natura longas syllabus voluit, cum alioqui adiecto vel sublato apice longitudinis et brevitatis nota posset ostcndi. Comp. Longus 55. ^ Longus 54 Cicero videtur auditu emensus scriptiottem, qui et Aiiacem et Maiiam per duo i scribenda existimavit .- quidam unum esse animadver- tunt . . . Inde crescit ista geminatio, et incipit per tria i scribi coiiicit, ut prima syllaba sit coi, sequentes duo iicit. lb. 58 Cum per o {valgus et servos) scriberent, per u tamen enuntiabant. Comp. Scaurus 12. ' Scaurus 14 B cum p et m consentit, quoniam on'go eorum non sine labore coniuncto ore respondet . . . /:/ alii scamillum, alii scabiilum dicunt. Paulus p. 23 M. : Scaurus 13 and 23: Longus 69 and 73. * Paulus 81 exfuti effusi, ut mertal pro mersat. 134 mertat pro mersat dicebant. • Paulus 84 'faedum ' antiqui dicebant pro * haedo^ ' folus ' pro * holered 'fostim ' prp ' hoste: 'fostiam ' pro ' hostia, ' Scaurus 1 1 ubi illi f litteram posuenrntyuos h substituimus, ut quod illi ' fordeum' dicebant nos ' /lordeum," '/ariolum' quern nos ' /tariolum,' similiter 'faedum' quem nunc nos 'haedum * dicimus. Comp. ib. 13 and 23 : Longus 69. 154 LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. Paul '^Tf,' " '^"''"' " '^'"'"''' (' ^^^d '"'^""' from Paul. 3,, iaUenam: . . . hanciW ^..,a, dicebant antigui con- suetudme gua „ippo. burrum, ni(o. buxum dMant) Nee non '"^'nficrte, v«.//.- ^ Mlun,; unde Duelios guidan, diare JDelios ausi . §16. Quid ' stiocum stlitesque ' ' ; Quid d litterae cum t quaedam cognatio * ? Quid oatque u permutatae invicem ? ut ' Hecoba ' ./ ' notnx ' «.?t W T:f r''-'-'^'^ - - - Graecisid^an^um notetur, dederont et ' probaveront •. ' § 17. Quidi non equoquei loco fuitl ' Menen'a' et 'Mcr' et masesUr' et ^ Diove Victore; non ' Viofi Viaori'.' Quintilian i. 7. § 4. Putaverunt ilia guogue servanda discrhnina, ut'ex' syllabae s Uttera, si 'pecto,' remota scriberemus-' § 5- Ilia guogue sen'ata est a multis differentia, ut 'ad' cun.jsset praepositio, d litteran, eun, auteni coniunctio, t acci- anli^ui - Burrum: &-<. J>yrr,am, ,1 ju,m no, ' Pyrrhum' ' Paul. 66 dutUum helium. V^triw' ^'"" '■"'"'"'^ ^''"'"^ ^'"«"' •■' P^^^ds, probably from Longus 73 discusses de/erus nnd ^.//.«, Jal and LI, P , nonces /..^.. and ioei^ertas for //^.r, /,^..r/a. ^ * ^'"'- ' ' • Scnurus i I nn ^'^'T'T y^'^^''"^' «"e from Quintilian's.) ^caurus 1 1 . Longus 6i, 62, 69. See note 4. /l^r/iV GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 155 * C^w,' si tempus significaret, per q et fn, si comitem, per c ac duas sequentes scribe retur '. § 6. Frigidiora his alia, ut ' quidquid' c quartum haberet, ne interrogare bis videremur\ et qiwtidie, non cotidie, ut si quot diebus ^. § 7- Quaeri solet, in scribendo praepositiones sonum, quern tunctae efficiunt, an quern separatae, observare conveniat, ut cum dico ' obtinuit ' ; secundam enim b litteram ratio poscit, aures magis audiunt p*. § 10. K quidem in nuliis verbis utendum puto nisi quae significat, etiam ut so/a ponatur '. § 15. Diutius duravit ut e et i iungendis eadem ratione qua Graeci (I uterentur : ea casibus numerisque discreta est, ut Luciiius praecipit iam puerei venere : e postremum facito atque i ut pueri piures fiant : ac deinceps idem mendaci furique addes e, cum darefuri iusseris *. * Caper Keil Gramm. vol. 7 p. 95. 2 q^^^^ ^. ' Longus 79 [Exist imo) iUos vitiose ct dicere et scribe le, qui pot ius per quo quotidie dicunt, quam per co cotidie Non enim est a qiioto die quotidie dictum^ sed a continenti die cotidie tractum. * Longus 64 * Ob ' praepositio intcrdum . . . ad earn litteram transit, a qua scquens vox incipit, ut est ' offulsit; ' ommutuit ' .- item et si p sequatur, ut * opposuit.' * Longus 53 Qui k expellunt, notam dicuntesse magis quam litteram, qua signipcamus kalumniam kaput kalendas. Com p. Scaurus 15. « Longus 55, 56 Ilic quacritur etiam an per e et i quaedam debeant scribi secundum consuetudinem Graecam. Aon nulli enim ea quae prodttcerentur stc scripserunt, alii contenti fuerunt huic productioni i longam aut notam dedtsse. Alii vero, quorum est item Luciiius, varie scriptitaverunt, siquidem in iis quae producer entur alia per i longam, alia per e et i nota- verunt, velut differentia quaedam separantes, ut cum diceremus * viri; si essent piures, per e et i scriberemus, si vero esset unius viri, per i notaremus Et Luciiius in nono * iam puerei venere^ e postremum facito atque i, ut puerei piures pant, i si facis solum, ' pupilU; ' pueri; ' LuciU; hoc unius pet. \ 156 LATIN GRAMMAR IX THE FIRST CENTURY. Quod quidim cum supervaamm est, turn incommodum aiiquando. h 1%. Ae syllabam, cuius secundum nunc e litteram f animus vane per a et i effcrebant ; quidam semper ut Graeci,quidam smgulanter tanlum, a,m in dativum vel genetivum casum inadtssent, unde ' pictai vestis' et ' aquai' Vergilius amantis- simus vetustatis carminibus inseruit In eisdem plurali numero e utebantur, ' hi Su//ae Ga/bae\' § 20. Quid quod Ciceronis temporibus paulumque infra fere guotuns s Httera media vocalium longarum vel subiecia Lgis esset,geminc,batur? ut'caussae' 'cassus' 'divissiones' : quomodo et ipsum et Vergilium quoque scripsisse manus eorum docenf EtHim 'optimus maximus,' ut mediam i litteram, quae veteribus ufuerat, acciperent, Gai primum Caesaris inscriptione traditur factum '. § 23. Quid? non Cato Censorius ' dicam' et'faciam" dicem' et 'facenr scripsit\ eundemque in ceteris, quae similiter cadunt modum tcnuit? § 26. Nostri praeceptores ' servum cervumque' u et litteris scripserunt, quia subiecta sibi vocalis in unum sonum coalescere et confund, nequiret: nunc u gemina scribuntur ea ratione quam item ' hoc illi factum est uni; tenue hoc fades i - * haec UUifecere; adde e, ut pingnius fiat. . . . Hoc mini videtur supervacamae esse obsercationis ut 'ar,/' .'1/' '^^"t"'" ^""■^'"' ^'^''^ consuetudine per ai scribehant, u aulai Musat: Pompems, Keil 5 p. ^97 ' Aulai medio \ . ,una syllaba Longus p, niHdetzam a^inotandum circa i Htteram est, quod ea auae nos perae autzqu.perai scHptitavenoU, ut ' fu.ai^ « Claudia^' hacsZloZ '^ Scaurus 2 1 Causa m item a multis scio per duo s scribi, ^c ^iae Zhel ''^'J''''^^^'^'^^^^'*^^ -^ mancupium aucup.um mani- oiae, siquidem C. Caesar per t scHpsit, ut apparet ex titulis itUu. n, Augustus per u, ut testes sunt eius inscripUones ^ ' ^' Paulus 7. ' dice ' i? dicem^ pro ' dicam ' antiqui posuere. LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 157 reddidi. . . . JVec inutiiiter Claudius aeolicam illam ad hos usus Htteram adiecerat^. § 27. lilud nunc melius^ quod ^ cui' tribus quas posui litteris enotamus^ in quo pueris nobis ad pin^uem sane sonum qu et oi utebantur^ tantum ut ab illo 'qui' distingueretur^. § 28. ' Gaius ' C Httera signijicatur^ quae inversa muiierem dedarat ^. Now we know of no special treatise on orthography older than Quintilian, except that of Verrius Flaccus. And of one of the notes quoted above, that on pictai vestis from the Aeneid, it is nearly certain that it cannot be from Varro, while Pompeius in the passage cited tells us that it came from Verrius ; indeed a note very like it is preserved by Paul us p. 25. Moreover two other notes, that on dicem, faciem, for dicam^faciam^ and that on GaiuSj occur in the epitome of Verrius's lexicon ; and this, as we have seen, is the case with many of the notes in the fourth chapter. May we not then pronounce almost with cer- tainty that in Quintilian, Scaurus, and Longus we have part at least of the treatise of Verrius Be Orthographia ? If I am right in referring these parallel or identical notes to Verrius, it is not impossible to state with some precision what was the nature of his book. That it was largely based on the researches of Varro is evident : and if we may trust Pompeius, Verrius must have also used the grammatici HbelH of Valerius Cato. Legite Verrium et Catonem, et ibi invenietis^. It dis- cussed the various changes of letters as known to the history * Scaurus 1 2. Longus 58 Aeque ab iisdem ' equus ' per v et scriptus est, et quaeritur utrum per unum u an per duo debent scribi. Sed prius- quam de hoc loquamur, v litteram digamma esse interdum non tantum in his debemus animadveriere, &^c. " Longus 76 Jtaque audimus quosdam plena oi syllaba dicere ' quoi' et * hoic * pro * cut ' et * huic,* quod multo vitiosius est, quam si tenuitatem y ittterae custodirent. Est out em ubi pinguitudo u litterae decentius servatur. Com p. ib. 72. ' Longus 53 C conversum^ quo Gaia significatur . . . Gaias enim generaliter a specie omnes mulieres accipere voiuerunt. Comp. I'aulus 95 fin. * bee above, p. 156, note i. 158 LATiy GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. writtl 'Ivl !'''"'v'^"' '"^ '"^'^ ^■"'■^"■°"' '•" contemporary «m,ng ^^h,le Verrms must have derived much of h^ mformat,on from Varro's Be Ser,none Latino and dT Anti .u.ate L.ttcranan, his book was probably more sys^matt than anythmg which Varro had written ; it was, wfth equ^ probab.hty, written in no spirit of servile adhesion to VaTot op.mons ; and u mcluded, of course, instances of the usage o authors later than those quoted by him. ^.f ."'^"""^ P"'' '° "^^^ consideration of Pliny's work entitled D„lm Sermonis. We know th., ,K- T Pioht K^„i 7i • , '™' '"'5 consisted of e^ght books, Ubn as the younger Pliny calls them, UMH i„ the modest phraseology of their author. A considerable number of notes, bearing Pliny's name ar<. quoted by the later grammarians, and a gLt dea mo^ehls almost certamly been taken from Phny without acknowledj ment. I hope to make it probable, also, that parts of the early chapters of Quintilian's first book (,. 5. J 5,!! 5 8) are based on the same authority. ^ ^ « 54 1.0.^28) Jl "''^^.''? ""•'"■"'y '■"fe"^'^' from the remains of Pliny's ^rea ise which have come down to us, that it covered a vel w.de field. It embraced the consideration (a) of lettTrT their changes and pronunciation; (.) of noun, heir ge de ' pronoun , (d) of verbs, active, passive, and deponent with questions about their irregular formation • (,\ J and their usacre • ( f\ ^f '°™^"o" . (') of prepositions barbarkl M ^^^ conjunctions; (^) of solecism and barbarism. Nor was ,t a mere collection of lists. We owe o Phny more than one successful or unsuccessful attempt To frame a grammatical terminology. He reckoned the gTrunds duendr duendo &c., as adverbs-. He applied to the com y««.«/;a for the primary forms of nouns as opposed to their ' So Dionysiiis Thrax (Uhli^ n 8;;^ nll.rl A. ' Charisius /,/./. ,. ,6 (Keil Cramm, i. p. ,,8}. LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 159 derivatives. He is probably responsible for the use of ar/i- culus in the sense of the definite article (Probus Inst. Keil Gra?nm. 4. p. 1 33). He was careful, when he could, to point out a difference of meaning coincident with a difference of form, as, e.g. when he remarks that vertex means height {immanem vim impetus) and vortex a whirlpool (Charis. p. 88 Keil), ox\\\dXauguro means to have a presentiment, auguror to take the auguries. We know from his own statement that the book excited the opposition of the philosophers. Why this ivas the case we can to a certain extent conjecture with probability; and here again I must ask for the reader's attention to a somewhat complicated argument. The fourth chapter of Quintilian's first book, and the fifth as far as § 54, includes, as I shall endeavour to show further on, the main chapters of an Ars Grammatica ; and indeed at the end of § 54, Quintilian seems to take leave of grammar altogether. He then proceeds to consider the question of words, provincial, Gallic, Spanish and Greek, simple and compound, literal and metaphorical. Thus the fifth chapter ends, and the sixth is a dissertation on sermo or usage, con- sidered under four heads, that of ratio or reason, including analogia and etymologia, antiquity, authority, and custom. Now this division is not the same as that adopted by Varro in his De Sermone Lati?io. According to Varro, sermo de- pended on natura^ analogia^ consuetudo^ auctoritas\ Again, Varro is expressly attacked by Quintilian in his remarks upon" etymology. The authority for this section then can hardly be Varro, but must be some later writer. It is not probable that this writer was the same as the author of the fourth chapter, and the fifth down to § 54. For Quintilian, in several instances, repeats, in a different con- nexion, remarks which he has already made there, without any sufficient notification of the fact. This looks as if he were, in the later of the two passages, borrowing or adapting from another treatise which partially covered the same ground. ' Diomedes in Keil Gramm. i. p. 439. ; i l6o LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. ^TJl ^f ' •^~"- Several of Quintilians remarks coin- rnanans. Ihus m r. 5 5 63 his observation on the declen- s,on of such words as BiJo, Calypso-neguc enim ,a„, C. Caesar uMur hoc ratione dedinandi. Sed auctonLm consuefudo superavit-^r... nearly with what Phny ZlZ Char,s,us (p. ..; ^^^^\consuetudine„, faare hanc Calypso, hanc nlun , nrrV^' '"' °' "'^ ^'^"'^^ °f 'he prLipal noun (,. 6 § 6). So Pompeius (p. ,64 Keil) tells us of Pliny, pnnapak genus, redeamus ad de,ninutionem. We may compare Qumfhan's remarks on /./„. and lupus with those of Char,s,us p. ,35, which are in all probability Plmy's. In for!, f ^"T« "°"'" '^^'"'"'" ""'J ■^"''""^ -^ =» double form from Alba, and this observation Pompeius (p ,A o:°'::ySrf r !%' -' '- '^-^^^ ^' «^i° ^^ on saymg r,bu„ale for Iriiuna/. So Charisius p. 62 in a context full of material taken from Pliny, says Id LT„ 7z;:^v:ti "'" '"""' '-" --'^^ - -r^ i th s oa t°f K """"?" '° ''^ '^""^'^"^ ^P'-' °f Charisms TniXKith Phn;^''^''^ '° ^"^'^ ^— - ^« » ^--''e To return then to the jxjint of this argumentation We know that Pliny was fond of appealing to ral and ^Ll and that he recognized veleru,,, licentia and veU.u,n dijL P- 1.8). Whether he reckoned natura as a positive principle ^ See the quotations from Pliny ap Charis n ,./: r n ^^-^^^■V-':%Pliniusquo' curious observation with regard to the pages of Charisius (225 foil.) which treat of conjunctions and those (p. 231 foil.) on prepositions. It is that before hypothetical instances (such as cum dico as example of cum with indicative) Charisius in these places mostly uses velut instead of ;//, or 7// puta : and as Palaemon's name IS mentioned in the neighbourhood, he jumps to the conclusion that this use of veiut is a sure test of the presence of quotations from Palaemon. Applying this test to other passages in Charisius, he vindicates to Palaemon all in which velut is found in this connection. Some other passages in Charisius he claims for Palaemon on other grounds. But the Palaemon of Charisius and Diomedes is not, in Schottmiiller's opinion, the Remmius Palaemon of Quintilian and Juvenal. He is a late grammarian of the age of Sidonius Apollmaris (a. d. 450). The arguments for this position are (i) The Palaemon of the grammarians sometimes quotes * Dc Plini sccinidi libris grammaticis diss. (Leipzig, 1858 J p. 2i. M 2 i 164 LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. Pliny. Now Remmius Palaemon died before the publication of Pliny's preface to the Natural History (77 a.d.) and Pliny must have mentioned his Ars Grammatica had it been written after the publication of his own book Dubii Sermonis, that is, had it been written between 67 and 77 a.d. It must therefore have been written before 67, and consequently Remmius Palaemon could not have quoted Pliny. (2) Quintilian (i. 4. 20) mentions Palaemon as a second Aristarchus (Schottmiiller p. 28 cum Aristarchis comparat)-. a compliment which would be quite out of place as applied to the author of the very weak remarks which are attributed by the later grammarians to Palaemon. I propose to take the last point first, and to argue that there is no valid reason why the Palaemon of the grammarians should not be identified with the Palaemon of Quintilian. Quintilian, it may be observed, does not really speak of Palaemon as a second Aristarchus, but says merely that he followed Aristarchus in making eight parts of speech: ut Aristarchus et nostra aetate Palaemon. This argument being disposed of, let us now consider whether there is any necessity that Palaemon's Ars Gram- matica should have been written before, and not after, Pliny's Dubii Sermonis. Pliny says that he has waited in vain for the grammarians to attack his book. But supposing Palaemon to have meantime written a book friendly to Pliny, why should the latter mention him as hostile? What objection is there to supposing that the Ars of Palaemon was partly based upon the collections made in the Dubii Sermonis, and that Palaemon may really, as he is represented in the gram- marians as doing, have quoted Pliny ? Again, the definitions and remarks attributed to Palaemon by Charisius and Diomedes are by no means those of an incompetent writer. The passage on conjunctions (Charis. 225-6 = Diomedes 415) is very sound work, and so is a good deal of the dissertation on prepositions in Charis. 231-2. Indeed it must be added that the notes on this LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 165 subject in Diomedes p. 411-413, which only differ from those in Charisius as an older and better draft differs from a later and inferior one, must also be from Palaemon, and that they show not only good sense but learning. They are probably due to Pliny* and ultimately to Verrius Flaccus. Supposing then that they come from Remmius Palaemon, can Schottmiiller's test of the use of ve/ut be applied to detect his hand in other passages ? While I admit the oddness of the phenomenon to which Schottmuller has called attention, I doubt whether he draws the right inference from it. For the same passages from Palaemon (or depending mainly upon him) are quoted more than once by both Charisius and Diomedes, but where Chari- sius uses ve/ut, Diomedes uses ///. This we find to be the case if we compare the passage on conjunctions as given by the two grammarians (Charis. p. 225-6, Diomedes p. 415): and again if we compare the chapter on the usages of pre- positions (Charis. p. 232, Diom. 411) where Diomedes gives fragments of a much fuller version than that of which Charisius, perhaps, abridges the whole. I suppose then that the use of ve/ut is a sign, not of Palaemon's hand, but of some late redactor using old material and putting his own mark upon it. Assuming then that the Palaemon of the grammarians is the real Palaemon, we infer that he wrote fully upon prepositions and conjunctions, and (at least in his account of prepositions) may have been indebted directly to Pliny and indirectly to Verrius Flaccus. Priscian tells us further (Inst. i. 47, Keil 2. p. 35) that he called the ^Ckfj or soft breathing exi/is: and from Quintilian we learn that he recognized eight parts of speech and no more. But can we not learn more than this from Quintilian about Remmius Palaemon ? I have before observed that the part of Quintilian's first book which begins i. 4. i and ends i. 5. 54 contains in an * See Audax, Keil Crammatici 7 p. 355. I l66 LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. abridged and adapted form much of what might well have been found in an Ars Grammatica. i. 4. §§ 2-17 treat of letters: §§ 18-21 of the parts of speech : §$ 22-26 of nouns and cases : §§ 26-29 of the verb : i. 5. §§ 5-33 of bar- barismus', §§ 34-54 o{ soloecismus'. and at this point Quintilian bids adieu to grammar. That Quintilian had some technical treatise before him, the rules of which he throws into literary form, may be assumed as almostcertain : have we any means of decidingwho its authorwas? No careful reader of Quintilian can fail to observe that these sections go over, in part, the same ground as is again traversed in chapters 6 and 7, and at the same time that Qumtilian takes hardly any notice of the fact. The authority cannot be Varro. For to Varro, as we saw grammatica or litteratura included lectio enarraiio emendatio and indicium. To Quintilian (i. 4. 2) it is no more than rede loquendi scientia :ind />oetarum enarratio : the schoolmaster has driven the philosopher away, or put him in the background- enarraiionem fraecedit emendata lectio, et mixtion his omnibus tudicium est\ Again, Quintilian or his authority does not accept Varro's theory about the letter h (comp. i. 5. 20 with Cassiodorius Keil 7. p. 153). Accent is by Quintilian (i. 5. 22) called tenor, to Varro it is frosodia : nor is Quin- tihan's treatment of accentuation at all like Varro's (Sergius on Donatus Keil 4. p. 528 foil). Varro called the ablative sevtus casus (Diomedes 302) : Quintilian is disposed to divide it into two, making the instrumental a se/iimus casus. Nor again are we reading Pliny in these sections. This is proved by the fact that the definition of barbarismus given by Pliny is different from Quintilian's. Quintilian accepts on the whole the theory which reappears very often in the later grammarians, that barbarismus is a mistake in a single word {quod fit in singulis verbis vitium\ soloecismus a faulty combination of words expressed or implied, which may be committed in one or ^ [Professor Nettleship marked this argument as doubtful in his copy ol this essay as printed in the Journal of Philolog)']. LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 167 more words, but never in a word isolated from its expressed or implied context: i. 5. 38 sit aliquando in uno verbo, num- quam in solo verbo. Now Pliny made quite a different distinction : barbarismus was what violated natura, soloecismus what offended against rule (Pompeius 283). What this meant we may perhaps gather from Pompeius's remark (p. 290), cum per naturam nemo dicat sea lam, nemo dicat quadrigam, sine dubio barbarismi sunt. Quint, i. 5. 16 says it may seem absurd to apply the term barbarismus to mistakes such as scala scopa for scalae scopae : but had he been adapting from Pliny, is it conceivable that he would not have mentioned Pliny's theory of nature and art as applied to barbarism and solecism ? If Quintilian, then, is in these sections consulting neither Varro nor Pliny, it is most probable that he had the Ars of Remmius Palaemon before him. There is some positive evidence to help us here. Quintilian i. 4. 27 uses the word qualitas for mood: so again i. 5. 41 modos sive cui status eos did seu qualitates placet. This term seems to have been used by Palaemon. Charisius 226 and Diomedes in his corresponding section, a passage which, as we have seen, comes essentially from Palaemon, says superest ut dicamus quae coniunctio cui qualitati iungatur : and so subiufictiva^finiiiva qualitas Charis. 263. Remmius Palaemon, if we may believe the Scholia on Juv. 6. 452, was Quintilian's master: what more likely, then, than that Quintilian should give him the place of honour in his grammatical dissertation ? And I may finally observe that the sketch of Ars Gram- matica which Quintilian gives, as a system beginning with recte loquendi scientia, ending with soloecismus, and including especially the explanation of poets, coincides exactly with Juvenal's description of Palaemon's work : Odi Hatic ego, quae repetit volvitque Palaemonis artem, Servata semper lege et ratione loquendi. Nee curanda viris opicae castigat amicae Verba: soloecismum liceat fecisse marito (6. 452). There it is, all of it : rules, poetr)', and solecism. I68 LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. If I am right then in supposing that these sections of Qu.ntihan are no more than a literary adaptation of the prin- cpal parts of Palaemon's Ars Grammatica^ I niay proceed to state what seem to have been the main characteristics of that work and to make a few observations on its influence upon the later writers of Artes Grammaticae. ' The first part consisted of a dissertation on the alphabet and the combmation and changes of letters. As almost all of this coinades closel>^ with the treatises on Ortho.rraphia oiV.X.., Longus and lerentius Scaurus on the one hfnd, and with no^es m Pestus or Paulus on the other, it is highly probable that ,t was taken by Palaemon from Verrius Flaccus De Ortho,raphia : a work which as we have seen was, in all likelihood partly transcribed by Quintilian in his seventh chapter. After letters came syllables : Quint. ,. 4. 17 Pahe- mon after D.onysius Thrax) made eight parts of speech, not d, tmgmshmg appellatio or vocabuium from nomen\ He divided substantives according to their genders, not omittin^ to inquire into the etymology of such substantives as had passed into cognomina. He in all probability distinguished the uses of the ablative proper from those of the same form used instrumentally or otherwise-the septinua casus. He discussed the half verbal half nominal nature of the participle o^ZZr^' "; ^'^'^ ^"^''"' '-^"^ ^^^ P-^'- -^^- nouns' of cognate signification. The supines he called participial whe remarking that the form of the passive supine resembl S hat of some adverbs. Finally he gave a very full treatment to the various kinds oi bardarismus and so/oedsmus author of the treatise which Quintilian was consulting, thlre o th e,enth case: the discussions on participles a'nd i!nper sonal passives and supines recur in fuller or shorter forms ; ' The distinction is given from Scaurus by Diomedes, 320. LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 169 and the doctrine of barbarisvius and soloecismus is expounded on the same principles, but with differing degrees of fulness, in many Artes. Quintilian's authority may, on this point, be best studied in Pompeius and Consentius ^ The sum of my conclusions with regard to the grammatical chapters of Quintilian's first book is, then, as follows. The fourth chapter, and the fifth as far as § 54, is a rough literary adaptation of the Ars Grammatica of Remmius Palaemon. Chapter 5. § 54 to 56. § 27 is probably from Pliny's Dubii Ser- vionis. §§ 28-38 of the same chapter, on etymology, is partly directed against Varro, partly against etymological writers and their science in general. It is impossible to point out any particular authority for these sections, which may well represent no more than the general recollections which Quintilian had carried away from lectures and from his own reading. The seventh chapter, on orthography, from § i to § 28, is taken or adapted from the De Orthographia of Verrius Flaccus. Of the Silva Observationum Sermonis AntiquP v/ritten by ^ Pompeius, p. 284, foil., Consentius, Keil 5. p. 386, foil. " The main contentions of Dr. Beck's excellent essay (see p. r46«^ on Probus are as follows : (i) That the Silva Observationum Sermonis Antiqui, attributed by Suetonius to Valerius Probus, was not a work composed by that scholar, but a collection of the notes taken home by the young men who had conversed with him. (2) That Probus was not the author of any regular grammatical treatise, but only left behind him a few obiter dicta on grammatical points. (3) That in several places where Priscian professes, and has hitherto been supposed, to be quoting Valerius Probus, he is really quoting Diomedes : and that this is sometimes true also of other gram- marians. (4) That, in consequence, the grammatical observations usually attributed lo Valerius Probus must be assigned to other scholars, and, in particular, to Pliny. Dr. Beck's second proposition will probably not be disputed : but I am not so sceptical as he is as to the Silva Observationum, and the relics of this work generally supposed to have been preserved by Diomedes and Priscian. It may be, of course, that Probus did not himself entitle his book Silva Observationum Sermonis Antiqui, though it has been generally assumed that he did. Gellius, it is true, never mentions such a book when he quotes Probus; but Gellius's method of quotation is so unsatisfactory that httle can be made of his evidence one way or the other. On the whole, there seems to me to be nothing in the evidence to disprove the existence of f r70 LATIN GRAMMAR L\ THE FIRST CENTURY. Valerius Probus little can be said positively except that it was he work of a pure scholar, untinctured by any philosophica heones perfectly or imperfectly apprehended. It was a collec- ■on of apparently irregular usages taken from ancient authors • and undoubtedly it n,ust have covered much the same ground Lrr dT r **"'"'""• ''' S^"-^' ^''--'- -n be of Mn Z " n '""""' °' " '" '''^ grammatical books of Nonms Marcellus, which 1 hope I have shown (in my essays prefixed to the first volume of Conington's Virgil) Zl based p,„y ^„, p^^^^^ ^^ ,J^^ ^^) a r'egu, :i°er''°" "' "^P""^'"^'^ <"- --' "^ 'he notes on rregu aru.es m conjugation or declension which meet us in the later grammarians. The conclusion to which my argument points is that the mam out nes of the traditional Latin grammar, such as we find ,t ,n the numerous, but often identical, expositions which DiomeH " p""' """'' °^ "'^ '="" S""™--'"ans-Charisius, Diomedes, Pompems, Donatus, Cledonius and others, were drawn m the first century x.r,. The rules and arrang^me" '^liz:lLTr "' """ '"'"'"'"^'^ "o'"^- ""■'^''" ■""'■"■ '""■ no^r ' "'•■ """" '° P°'"' '° "'°'- ">="• » -nerc collection of Diirder"' ir; ""' '"■J^'^ "^ '° '"^ 1"'"="*<>- - P^scian and iJiomeaes. I grant, of course, that the I'robus of Priscmn i, in „ ™ , »any cases, not Valerius, but the Probus of the ij^^^^^ fZ think, however, that when Prisdan quotes, with the name of' pL IZ'T' °' "^'!' '""'"' '-'"'■■ "^^^'- ■' - "<" "nleasonable "o suppo^ «t!ls .Cd ."" "P^^'-' f-™ « ■"isce.Ianeous' collection of anct,^ Le .r„u;d%n^^pi^','; !^:.'i^ - t^e ^aXprr i^ Dtomedes, and adopts a different method of arraucement Ih l^f. on my mind is that both authors are ve,^ Hk"' a, .eco„ T." hand, consulting the same au.horitv, v;ry Trobal clrr I' himself using the collections of Probus and ptnv A '^' "" D^medes and Priscian with Nonius w.ll, : ^L! '^^oun'd tr^r^th!: LATIN GRAMMAR IN THE FIRST CENTURY. 171 of the conventional Ars Grammatica, such as was used and taught during the later empire by the professors in the large cities, were in all probability, in most cases, those of Remmius Palaemon. The instances were mostly supplied by scholars of the age of Hadrian and the Antonines, who drew their information largely from Pliny and Valerius Probus. The grammatical studies of the first century a.d., when compared with those of the last century of the republic, exhibit, in some respects, the same character as the other literary work of the same period. There is more system, more effort after compilation and arrangement, but less freedom, less grasp, and altogether a narrower sphere of ideas. Pliny's researches are inspired by a philosophy more hasty and commonplace than that which Varro had adopted from the Stoics, and Verrius, Palaemon, and Probus write without any philosophy at all. Again, the scientific impulse is checked by the requirements of practical necessity. The passion for correct speaking and writing is strong in the upper class, and is instilled into the boy from his earliest school-days; just as it is the fashion in literature, whether in prose or verse, to hunt for choice expressions and telling points. With the increase of wealth and population at Rome the demand for education increases. A boxer like Pomi)onius Marcellus, a weaver like Remmius Palaemon, find teaching grammar a profitable occupation. Scholarship is one of the dozen accomplishments of the Graeailus esuriens, and Juvenal's complaint that the schoolmaster is badly paid shows only that the market was overstocked The modern scholar may lament this degeneracy, and bitterly regret the loss of Varro's encyclopaedic treatises ; but he must remember that but for the educationists and scholars of this period he might have lost much even of what he seems to have, and have been left ignorant of the very existence of the Latin studies in philology, one of the most remarkable and interesting intellectual efforts of the ancient world. I CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. 173 VII. ON THE PRESENT RELATIONS BETWEEN CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND CLASSICAL EDUCATION IN ENGLAND ^ No acquisition of modern times is more remarkable than the nearer reahzation of the unity of spirit which pervades all research. Among a multitude of labourers in various fields of knowledge, there is a consciousness of a common aim, a common method, a common inspiration. This consciousness is no mere abstraction, but a living reality ; the active pursuit of truth is a bond as strong as the bond of charity. And, while the widely-spreading love of truth is forming a new element of union among men, the objects of knowledge themselves are discovering more and more of their inner harmonies as their laws are read and verified by fresh experi- ence. No branch of knowledge can now be seriously studied in isolation, or without a view to its actual or possible con- nexion with other branches, and the ultimate discovery of the simple principles underlying them all. This fact is obvious m the sphere of the humanities as well as in that of the natural sciences. Histories are studied for the sake of knowing histor}-, languages for the sake of knowing language ; and the studies of language and histor)- are seen to be [' Originally printed in Essays on the Endczcm.nt of Research bv varions writers ^London, 1876; : essay X, pp. 244-268. Some of Mr. XcUleshiu's criticisms are naturally less true now than in 1S76.] inseparably connected. Unities only guessed at or wrongly imagined before are disclosing themselves in their true aspect under the light of the comparative method. In this view it cannot be said of any ascertained set of facts that it is unfruitful or unworthy of further examination, or of any philosophical system, that it is final. It is of the essence of a liberal education that it should stand in constant relation to the advance of knowledge. Research and discovery are the processes by which truth is directly acquired ; education is the preparation of the mind for its reception, and the creation of a truth-loving habit. The two lines of activity, though one is subordinate to the other, are in their nature inseparable. In practice, however, a clear line of distinction, familiar in common parlance and opinion, is rightly drawn between the functions of education and of research. The ends of education are practical and immediate, those of research speculative and remote. Educa- tion is mainly concerned with the imparting of elementary and essential knowledge, scientific investigation with the discover}' of new truths, the importance or unimportance of which is not immediately present to the investigator. It is a teacher's first duty to consider the mind of his pupil, and whether his communication is suited to its condition ; it is the first duty of a person engaged in research to consider what new materials, what new combination of old materials, what new hypothesis, are available for the progress of know- ledge under his hand. This difference of pure and applied truth exists in all branches of education and knowledge, mathematical, classical, or scientific. Men engaged in the cultivation of the natural sciences are fully aware that, although the spheres of education and of discover)' are distinct, the two pursuits have a living and perpetual relation to each other which can never be lost sight of without detriment to both. The progress of science is so rapid, and the interest excited by it so absorbing, that the work of education is being continually modified by it. It is im f 174 CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. possible for a teacher of one of the natural sciences to hold aloof from the progress of discovery. But in the case of classical study it is hardly too much to say that, in England, the connexion between education and research has been, as far as popular feeling and opinion is concerned, almost wholly lost sight of. A great deal of the best educational ability of this country is absorbed in the teaching of classics ; but the number of persons in England who are engaged in, or seriously interested in, classical learning is out of all pro- portion small, and the importance of that learning is hardly acknowledged, or at least not acknowledged at all as clearly as the duty of scientific research is by scientific men. There is an unmistakeable tendency among Englishmen, whether engaged in education or not, to regard classical research as an unproductive pursuit, a pleasure of the few rather than a labour serviceable to the many. ' Many,' says Professor Mayor, ' who live by teaching the classics, affect to despise them '.' Without entering into the perplexing questions connected with the present distribution of endowments, or asking whether any other possible distribution would have the effect of reviving a love for the higher scholarship, I propose to notice some of the causes and some of the results of the present in- difference to learning, and to suggest means by which some advance might be made towards restoring the proper relation between classical research and classical education. Among the causes of the phenomenon under consideration, one of the most obvious and important is the idea that the field of classics is practically worked out. The masterpieces of classical literature have long been familiar to the cultivated classes among us, and have formed the staple of our liberal education. Enough, it may be thought, is known of these immortal monuments and of their practical value to us. With the general outline of ancient life we are so familiar that we may fairly dispense with the trouble of adding new and minute touches to a picture already sufficiently restored. The ^ Preface to his Bibliographical Clue to Roman Literature. CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. 175 age of discoveries in classical literature is past ; the spirit of discovery has gone elsewhere, to animate new labourers in new regions of unexplored wealth. Though the facts of the case are far otherwise, though (to say nothing of the new position in which comparative philology has placed the Greek and Latin languages) there is an amount of work, practically infinite, yet to be done before we can know all that is to be known of the ancient world, and though every succeeding generation brings its own lights to the reading of antiquity, reasoning like this is plausible enough to weigh strongly with many able and practical minds. But there are other reasons which co-operate with it to prejudice against the cause of classical learning not only many whose life lies <^tside the educational profession, but many also of the classicists themselves, both at our schools and at our universities. The vocation of a scholar is often wrongly conceived. The classical authors are rightly studied, in great part, as models of. style, but in England we have been too tenacious of this point of view. Boys are set to imitate in their own verses the poetry of Sophocles and Euripides, of Virgil, Ovid, and Horace, and in their prose the eloquence of Demosthenes and Cicero. A few succeed, to a certain extent, in the difficult task, win the name of scholars, and keep it mainly on the strength of their skill in (}reek and Latin writing. The element of taste is undoubtedly an essential element in scholar- ship, but far too great a prominence has been given to it in common English opinion. It is forgotten that for the making of a scholar, more manly qualities are required ; grasp of mind, power of dealing with materials, historical insight ; and scholarship and scholars suffer by the forgetting. The rhetorical side of classical education may be justly insisted on with boys, but it has unfortunately become our habit to apply the same method to men, and to continue too exclusively at the universities a training only suited to schools. One result has been that the words 'scholarship' and 'scholar' fl 176 CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. often convey, in popular language, little or no idea of research, but imply chiefly the power of manipulating the Greek and Latin languages, or translating them into English. I have touched so far only upon habits of thought and language; but there are also important conditions in the life of English schools and universities which tend to foster our forgetfulness of the importance of classical study. The English nation has adopted the habit of sending boys, when possible, from home to be taught and trained at the large boarding schools which, it may be roughly said, have now the monopoly of our higher education. The system is expensive and exclusive, and it might at first sight be supposed that it would favour the cultivation of learning and of studious habits among the masters of our great schools, who are able, as a rule, if fairly successful in their profession, to live in easy circumstances, and to enjoy some three months' holiday every year. But the case is in reality different. The duties of a 'house-master' at an English school are in them- selves so absorbing and exacting as to leave him little, if any, leisure for reading. He has to provide for some thirty or thirty-five boys, to care for their instruction, to attend to their discipline, to sympathize with their various needs. He has but few hours in the week to himself, and cannot even call his evenings his own. The old system of /at'ssez- faire which was tolerated by public opinion a generation ago is now generally, and it may be hoped for ever, abandoned, and the master of a ' house ' at one of our large schools must attend to the moral, physical, and mental welfare of his boys, at the expense of failing in his profession. It is hardly surprising that, after their monotonous and absorbing duties, schoolmasters should often when the holidays come round leave their books for a * complete change,' and hurry to games or mountain air for recreation. Again, the mere fact that the boys attending the great English schools live together for most of the year with little or no society but their own creates among them a well-defined CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. 177 boyish tradition, code of morals, and general habit of mind, which is strong in proportion to the position which the school occupies in the eye of the public, and to the length of time during which it has maintained that position. This boyish public opinion is sometimes of great strength, and not without its influence upon the masters, who in many cases have been public school boys themselves, and are therefore in sympathy with it. There is now a far better understanding than formerly between boys and masters, far more efibrt on the part of the masters to enter into the feelings and even into the pursuits of boys, far more endeavour to make learning attractive to them and to vary the subjects of study with their varying aptitudes. The modern English master is not an easy-going isolated pedant, but a member of an active community, whose aims, habit of mind, and tone of thought he makes his own. The familiar moral and social type of character developed by the English public schools is, in many respects, a high and manly type, but it is on the whole unfavourable to the cultivation of learning, and to sympathy with it. The work done is regarded less as an end in itself than as a means of strengthening the minds, and above all the characters, of the boys. This is as it should be, regarding the matter from the boys' side ; but a broader view is required for the masters, otherwise their work becomes so much task-work, a medley of isolated and second-hand results having no living interest or connexion with the great body of knowledge. Such, then, are the conditions of life in our great schools as to make the thorough pursuit of learning, in any branch of knowledge, extremely difficult; in general, indeed, im- possible. But in the universities, it may be supposed, with larger opportunities and abundance of leisure, the pursuit of learning is actively carried on. It can hardly be said that the routine work either of professors or college tutors is onerous or absorbing, when they enjoy more than six months' vacation every year. There is plenty of time for research at the universities, which are its natural homes. VOL. II. N 178 CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. The very idea of a university is that of a place where all the great branches of knowledge are taught and cultivated, and where students and teachers are united, if not by a common system of thought embracing all their studies, at least by a common method and common ends. With all their advantages, however, it cannot be said that the English universities implant in their students either a love of research or a knowledge of its methods. Men leave them with their minds liberalized and expanded, and with a sense of having gone through a course of mental gymnastic which has trained and tested their powers, and braced them for active life. But it may be doubted whether an average first-class man at Oxford or Cambridge has, as a rule, any clear conception of the principles and procedure of classical research. He has read and mastered the contents of a con- siderable number of classical books, and (at least at Oxford) has acquired a tincture of modern philosophical culture, and a ready power of expressing himself on paper. But his knowledge has been gained almost entirely in the form of results, and with the directly practical aim of succeeding in the examinations and assuring him a good start in life. He has been taught in the main by young men, who hand on the tradition in which they have been reared themselves, and whose method is more popular, because more practically useful, than that of older and more experienced teachers. In short, the attitude of the students and the teachers at the universities towards the subjects of study has a tendency to become professional rather than scientific. Knowledge is worked up and dealt out for the purposes of the market, not pursued and communicated as a life-giving means of culture. It is easier to dwell upon a fact now so generally acknow- ledged as this than to point out its causes or suggest remedies for it. It is not uncommon to lay the whole blame on the examination system, and no doubt this has much to answer for. At Oxford (of which alone I am able to speak at first-hand), a definite course of reading is prescribed to the I CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. 179 classical student, which occupies him from the beginning to the end of his career, leaving him no time for following his own inclination in the choice of a branch of study ^ It follows that no lectures which travel out of the ordinary beat are likely to obtain many listeners. The noble idea of Lehrfreiheit and Studienfreiheit, familiar to the Germans, is unknown to us, and, as a consequence, little also is known of the continuous quickening contact between the minds of the teacher and the taught which is the result of the effective love of knowledge pursued by the one and communicated to the other. The conditions of the examination system at Oxford not only make it almost an impossibility for the professors (the natural representatives of learning) to obtain large classes, but go far to prevent the college tutors from giving thorough courses of lectures. The whole tendency of the system is towards summarizing and shortening, towards the communication of results, not the training in method. It cannot be said that classical philology is at all represented as it should be in the Oxford curricuium. For the first public examination, in which men are examined in the language of parts of certain classical books, is a boyish proceeding, in which the rudiments of the higher scholarship have but little part ; while the university scholarships are for the most part awarded, and necessarily awarded, for sagacity and rhe- torical skill rather than for width and depth of knowledge or mastery of materials. It cannot be otherwise, when no time is left for the acquirement of knowledge. At Cambridge a far greater freedom in the choice of classical study is, in terms at least, allowed than at Oxford. The theory is that a man is examined in Greek and Latin * It is true that recent legislation at Oxford allows the reading of certain voluntary or 'extra' subjects. But the mass of compulsory work is so great that this freedom is, so far as philology goes, in practice illusory, and that the higher scholarship is not taught in the ordinary courses of lectures. [More recent legislation has tended considerably in the direction desired by Mr. Nettleship] N 2 iM i8o CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. without limitation to particular books. Such a system, while it necessitates wide reading, must also leave considerable time for special study. And it is, I think, the case that Cambridge men have, as a rule, a more thorough knowledge of the Greek and Latin languages than Oxford men, and a clearer idea of the methods of classical research. If less accomplished rhetoricians, they have received a more solid grounding in the elements of scholarship. But at Cambridge also I believe '(I cannot speak from actual knowledge), that the rigidly competitive character of the examination has of late had a tendency to throw the teaching more and more into the hands of private tutors, and to give it a more practical and professional complexion ; while the importance attached to Greek and Latin composition compels the bulk of the men who read for honours, to spend much time on writing which might be more profitably given to reading. There is no doubt that a well organized system of examina- tions is, in its essence, the enemy of research. The more its organization is improved, the more must the examination tend to narrow the field of knowledge both for teacher and taught, the more must it exact of the memory and the knack of rapid composition, the more time must it demand, the less must it encourage creative and original power. Yet I cannot agree with those who are inclined to lay upon the examination system alone the dearth of learning in our universities. The classical examinations might go on much as they now do, and much time would still be left to the college tutors for original work, which, though it might not have any direct bearing on their lectures, would naturally be interesting in itself, and would indirectly strengthen their teaching efforts. It is not so much the examinations which are at fault as our ready acquiescence in the necessary evils which attend them. We make ourselves their willing slaves, and then blame them for their despotism over us. There is no inherent necessity for this. Examinations are probably, as things now are, an essential part of the machinery of CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. l8l education, and they have, no doubt, though in a somewhat mechanical way, helped materially to diffuse the elements of knowledge, and to diminish habits of idleness and dissipa- tion among the students. It does not follow that they should be allowed to narrow the aims of the teaching body. The comparative barrenness of our universities in original work appears to be rather attributable to that general want of speculative interest which is characteristic of Englishmen. Our mode of dealing with examinations is probably no more than a symptom of a deeply seated and long inherited tendency. If this be so, why, it may be asked, indulge in fruitless complaints ? If the English universities, with all their oppor- tunities, have ceased to be the living centres of learning and research, if recent reforms have only ended in producing an increased amount of activity and industry in the appropria- tion of knowledge for practical purposes, why endeavour to stem the tide of which we can do no more than mark the advance? Our national character, it may be thought, has insensibly set its stamp upon our national education ; we have got what we want, not the best thing, it may be, but the l>est thing for us ; we do not produce, and do not wish to produce, scholars, but educated men, furnished with so much of liberal culture as will enable them to win and to maintain their position in life and in society, or to succeed better in any practical pursuit in which they may engage ; this, whether expressed or not, is our deliberate aim. We like acting better than thinking or writing, or making discoveries ; practical activity, success in all our pursuits, professional or disinterested, selfish or philanthropic— /r^z^ tibi erufit artes. This ought we to do, and not to leave the other undone. Mere energ)' and activity, divorced from the thought of principles and wider aims, must in the long run waste itself. Our so-called practical habit of mind is the cause of a great defect in our conception both of education and of learning. It may be worth while to notice some of the evils which result from this defect, for one at least of the conditions of \ l82 CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. health is a recognition of the disadvantages of an unhealthy state. One marked result of the neglect of classical learning in England is the isolation of learned men both among them- selves and ^-om the body of the educational profession. Learning ana research are furthered, more than by anything else, by combination ; but of combination for classical research we have in England little or nothing. There is undoubtedly in this country, within and without the universities, a respect- able body of learned men, but the want of concert between them, and the indifference with which their labours are re- garded by the general public, are a serious discouragement both to those who have chosen the career of learning and to those who are aspiring to enter upon it. Learned men are isolated, again, from the educational profession as a body. The conditions of life in our leading schools, as I endeavoured to describe them above, tend to concentrate the attention of masters more and more upon questions of morals and discipline, and the qualifications for a classical teacher in a good school, though they naturally include 'scholarship,' or in other words, the attainment of a high classical deeree at a university, do not include the intention to pursue any branch of study. And this is true, as a rule, of head masters, as well as of assistant masters. Head masters are now so occupied with the duties of administration, that it would be impossible for them to imitate Arnold's combination of knowledge with practical power. No one would now dream of expecting a 'History of Rome' from the head master of an English public school. The cause of learning has thus, to a great extent, lost the sympathies and interest of the ver)- men whose co-operation, owing to their position and influence throughout the country, would be most seniceable to it. Again, the defect under consideration leaves marked traces in the general character of our learned literature. No systematic instruction is given at Oxford or, I believe, at Cambridge, in the methods of classical research ; there is little CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. 183 concert between university professors and students (before or after taking their degree) for the object of common labour and co-operation in the solution of outlying philological problems. If a man wishes to make himself a thorough scholar, he must go to Germany and learn method there, and improve by his efforts on what he has learned. Mean- while, there is no lack of new classical books in England. Some of these have a quasi-literar)- character, and are written animi causa, as a sign of the author's interest in the subject ; many are educational and intended, directly or indirectly, for school purposes, or for service in examinations. Too much of the scholarship displayed in both classes of books is of an amateur cast. It must be so, for a scholar is not trained to know clearly what he intends to do when he sits down to edit a Greek or Latin book. He has been left entirely in the dark as to the principles of diplomatic criticism, and has never even been made intimately familiar with the proceeding of any great scholar in his greatest works. The dearth of really original work is as remarkable as the number of our school books. The staple of the classical education given at Oxford, for instance, has long been the study of Aristotle and Plato and of Greek and Roman histor)' ; yet no considerable work has appeared at Oxford in recent times on the philosophy of Aristotle as a whole, or upon Herodotus or Thucydides, or Liv}', or Tacitus. The unhappy divorce of learning from teaching is also the cause of much of the confusion of aim and idea with regard to classical knowledge and education which is manifest both in the minds of educationists and of the general public. So long as the classical literature was generally thought to contain the best things that could be known, there was no difficulty in maintaining it as the staple of a liberal education. It cannot be said, however, at the present time, that the Greek and Latin books have now the paramount claim which they once had to dominate our schools and universities. This is a fact which students of natural science and of modem \\ M H !i 184 CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. languages have naturally, in the discussion of the rival claims of the ancient and modern learning, been ready enough to seize upon, and, so far as the parallel claims of their own studies are concerned, they may be considered to have had the best of the argument. But the defenders of classical education have put themselves at a disadvantage by not thoroughly recognizing and insisting upon the fact that, while the classical literatures retain their intrinsic, though not their paramount, value, they have won a new place for consideration as an important part of the growing organism of knowledge. Classical teachers have regarded their subject too exclusively as a means of training, or of information, or of enjoyment, forgetting that like any other branch of knowledge it requires fresh and constant cultivation, that the field of classical research is in no sense worked out, that even for the greatest and best known works of the ancients much remains to be done in the way of criticism and interpretation, while the field of the late Greek and Latin has much fresh store to yield ; that fresh discoveries of coins and inscriptions and works of art are almost daily throwing new light on obscure points of ancient life and histor>- ; that the comparative study of languages has given to every- detail of Greek and Latin grammar a possible interest and importance that it never had before ; that the comparative study of syntax is only in its infancy; that the comparative study of institutions IS making ever fresh demands upon the students of Greek and Roman law and antiquities. When it is fully recognized that classical study is an essential part of the growing body of knowledge, and of paramount importance as the key to a .great chapter of human history {humam nihil a/ienum), it will matter little on what other grounds it mav be commended or disparaged. Classical students will have a clear aim and a hope of fruit, and the spirit of languor and compromise will disappear \ ' In his Inaugural Lecture on the Academical Study of Latin (published m the first volume of his Miscellaneous U'ritinss) Conington has the CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. 185 It is time to ask whether there are any practical ways of meeting the evils complained of. It is difficult enough to following obser\ations, which I venture to quote as suggested by considera- tions parallel to those upon which I have been dwelling : — * There are, I know, persons to whom the enumeration of the obstacles to the understanding of the classics suggests regretful, if not contemptuous, feelings. They lament the waste of labour spent, not in thediscovery of the unknowTi, but in the recovery of the lost, and make light of divinations of truth which the unrolling of a single new manuscript may supersede or dis- prove. The complaint is the same which is put soepigrammatically by the author of Hudihras where he says of Time and his daughter Truth : 'Twas he that put her in the pit Before he pulled her out of it. I need hardly say that, if valid at all, it is valid, as Butler doubtless in- tended it, against all historical research. There, as here, we have the spectacle of human thought toiling painfully to repair the losses caused by human thoughtlessness as well as by the unavoidable chances of time ; there, as here, the utmost that can be done may disappear before the contradiction or the fuller affirmation of an accidental discovery. But is the case so different as regards other parts of knowledge ? Is not the attainment of all intellectual truth a labour which might have conceivably been spared to us, nay, which doubtless would have been spared had the mere possession and enjoyment of truth been the end which we were meant to compass? Even the very word enjoyment, so used, implies a misconception. The intellect enjoys truth, not by simply contemplating it but by feeding on it, by assimi- lating it, and thus making it instrumental to the perception of further truth, which in its turn ministers to other and higher realizations. The toil of getting and the joy of using are not, as in other things, separate, but identical if distinguishable in common speech it is only as we may choose to dis tinguish parts of a process which is really uniform and indivisible. . . Whoever may complain of the difficulties which beset the pursuit of classica scholarship, assuredly it will not be the scholar himself. He knows it is pre cisely by means of these difficulties that he is made perfect in his work. . , It is nothing to him that his time has often to be spent on minute and seemingly trivial points, for he feels that the smaller is to be estimated by the standard of the greater, and that in accepting his calling he has accepted a duty, more or less defined, to ever)thing that appertains to it. The task of recovering a lost word or illusion is not resented as a gratuitous hardship but embraced as a welcome boon, which compels the student, as it were, to enter the author's laboratory, not as a spectator but as a fellow- worker, and rewards the restoration with something of the same delight which must have attended the original invention. It is his labour that he has to go down among those who have long been dead ; but there is a conscious i V: J !- of scholarship (a subject almost entirely ignored by Oxford men) might be studied. No such distinction should be drawn between the form and the matter of classical writings as is now drawn at Oxford, CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. 189 where the students are taken first through a preliminary course of poetry and oratory, and are afterwards introduced to the historians and philosophers, reading, for instance, for the first public examination Demosthenes and Cicero and Homer and Virgil, and for the second Thucydides and Livy and Aristotle and Plato. This arrangement not only makes the first year of the student's Oxford life a mere continuation of his school work, but prevents him from taking any view of classical literature as a whole. The comparative study of languages should be begun at the universities not (as now at Oxford) by the reading of compendia or notes from lectures, but by learning the rudiments of Sanskrit. Students of philology, after they have completed their uni- versity course, should be invited by the professors to co-operate with them in original work, or to undertake original work of their own. Or they should at least be directed how to set about such work, if it be their wish to undertake it. Suggestions of this kind (and there are doubtless many others which will occur to minds more fertile than my own) might be acted upon without materially modifying the prin- ciples on which the course of studies at our universities is based. They require for their application no more than an increased elasticity in the examination system, with which, in its main features, I should not propose to interfere. I suppose that the demands of the examinations are nowhere more rigorous than at Oxford ; but even there, if the mass of compulsory work were diminished, and a real freedom given to learn and to teach subjects falling outside the pre- scribed course, there would be little difficulty in communi- cating, to those interested in the matter, the elements of philological method, and removing from the Oxford system what no one interested in classical antiquity can but regard as a glaring defect. I am pleading for a kind of instruction with which I suppose all serious teachers and students of the natural sciences to be familiar, and which is indeed \ % tifc.f s.-4t«f. '^•. it J I90 CLASSICAL RESEARCH AND EDUCATION. 1 inseparable from the progressive pursuit of any branch of knowledge whatever. Classical study can maintain itself as a living element of knowledge, but not as a patchwork of accomplishments. The revival of learning in England requires the aid not of genius, but of ordinar)' ability and good will. Singleness of aim among even a few like-minded persons can accomplish much, and it is to be hoped that the importance of research to education, its efficacy in strengthening the individual character of the student, and the general indirect influence of learning in preventing the degeneration of literature, will soon be recognized not by a few but by many. In resources of all kinds, endowments, leisure, opportunities, our universities are exceptionally rich. Much has been done to remove the old restrictions which prevented free access to these resources; the duty remains of employing them fruitfully, and adding a new element of well-being to the national life of England. VIII. THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURES In choosing this subject for an evening lecture, I need hardly say that I had no thought of attempting to exhaust it ; still less did I suppose that I had anything new to say. An hour is a very short time to give to a great subject on which much has already been said and written. On the other hand, a great subject has this advantage over a small one, that it invites more attention and stimulates more interest, and thus the points to which one can attract notice in a short time are more likely to remain in the memory, and suggest reflection afterwards. (i) It is hardly superfluous to ask — What is literature? We are apt to think of literature as the contents of books, and books as an affair of ink and paper, half, if not altogether, dead ; something removed from the real life of the world. And no doubt it is true that a mere knowledge of books is not the same as a knowledge of life and of the world ; it is not the same thing, and it is a very inadequate substitute for it. But look at the matter a little more closely, and one sees that the line is drawn too rigidly. For books are, after all, nothing more or less than voices speaking to us — not the voices merely of our own friends and contemporaries, but of a long line of past * [A Lecture delivered at Toynbee Hall, October, 1889: published, with Essay IX, by Percival & Co., London, 1890.] \ I 192 THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. generations; human life that has escaped the grave, still appealing to us for our homage, our love, our sympathy, our condemnation, or our abhorrence. Literature is a voice ; and what is there that its message does not contain if we will listen ? But we must add a word more Literature is the voice of those who can speak. The addition means something. The writer of books is one who has the gift of utterance. Not by any means, on that account, a greater or better man than his fellows ; for some of the greatest men- -Socrates, for instance, and Cromwell— were comparatively inarticulate, and thousands of others who have taken a great part in making social and political history have died without leaving a word behind them. There is a great deal of life which never finds its way into books or speeches at all. But the gift of utterance is a special talent, sometimes associated with greater qualities, sometimes not so ; sometimes even bound up with mean qualities, and depending apparently on a defect of moral nature. Great powers of imagination are usually connected with great powers of expression ; but imaginative genius, as every one knows, does not always carry with it what is generally understood to be a sound moral constitution. Literature, then, being, in its length and breadth, the voice of those who are more able to speak addressing those who are less able, the moral effect of their message must depend on what they have to say ; and this, again, must depend on the moral force that is in them, and the degree in which it has moved them to speak. Their gift of utterance may be in- separably linked with some weakness or defect of nature ; and thus it may happen— indeed, very often it does happen -that the literature of a particular generation gives but an inadequate idea of the best part of its life. (2) We are talking, somewhat too glibly perhaps, about morality and moral force. So, at the risk of being tedious, I must define the sense in which I am going to use the words in this lecture. I will say then at once that by morality I do THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. 193 not mean the mere passive obedience which we render to law and social prescription. If the be-all and end-all of life were summed up in the one duty of doing what we were told by the powers ruling in the state or in society ; if our whole aim were to live, not in conscious and active sympathy with the natural principles out of which law and prescription have in the long run arisen, but in a mere enforced conformity to law and pre- scription, we should have a society like that of ancient Sparta or the Geneva of Calvin. Literature would not be needed; the book of the law would be enough, and we should have accepted a dilemma like that attributed to the Mohammedan conqueror of Alexandria, ' If these writings of the Greeks agree with the book of God, they are useless and need not be preserved ; if they disagree, they are pernicious and ought to be destroyed.' This feeling still exists widely, and always has existed, but it has been overruled by the instinct of moral and intellectual progress. For morality consists not in an imposed but in a free conformity ; in a free conformity to law and prescription so far as they are themselves based upon the moral impulse which has given them birth, and which they are there to protect. I have no claim to speak as a philosopher, and therefore this moral impulse may, for my present purpose, be defined as the spontaneous tendency which exists in human beings to live and act for each other's well-being. I am not concerned to go further than this, for my only object now is to lay stress on the fact that, in my opinion, no action can properly be called moral unless it is freely unselfish, done for the love of another without fear of punishment or hope of reward. If a man asks for a fee for not killing his father, his abstention from parricide cannot be called a moral act. {3) What, then, are the principal and the most obvious manifestations of this natural or spontaneous tendency ? Deep down in the laws of Nature herself is rooted the love of parent for child and child for parent ; out of this, organized by custom and developed by the constant enlarging of the social sphere, has gradually arisen the social spirit which now more than ever VOL. II. o h \ \ I ^ 194 THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. is felt around and among us, animating all the better part of modern life. On the active side of human life its work is evident, and need not be dwelt upon, especially in this place; on another side it has inspired the love of truth, the deter- mination to hold fast to intellectual honesty, which is a far rarer and more difficult virtue, especially in a democratic society, than the practice of philanthropy. (4) What, then, is the effect of literature in encouraging and developing this great social force ? I would answer, generally, that literature is powerful rather to encourage than to create moral action. For literature is in itself, to a large extent, produced by the moral impulse, and the stream cannot rise higher than its source. On the other hand, I believe that bad literature does not so much create vice as encourage it. I think that Milton was in the main right when he said that you may banish all objects of lust, and yet that you will not thereby make those chaste that are not so already ; that Macaulay was in the main right when he said that men are not so much corrupted by books as by the course of the world. I know that there are many persons, better qualified than I am to speak on this matter, who would attribute to books a more powerful influence than I think they, on the whole, possess. My own belief is that bad literature! in the main, is created by the demand for it. ' Whatsoever from without goeth into a man, it cannot defile him ; . . . that which proceedeth out of the man, that defileth the man.' If the bad book were not wanted, there would be no sale for it. Not that this in any way lessens the responsibility of its author, whose conscience may one day be rudely awakened by the thought that he has been doing his best to encourage the forces of destruction. (5) We are now naturally brought to consider what classes of literature have had, and are most likely to have, a direct effect m encouraging the moral impulse within us. There is much literature the effect of which is good, but which may best be described as non-moral. I mean all such THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. 195 writing as embodies the spirit of greatness and sublimity. The greatest works, it must be said, are great ; they are not moral. The I/tad and Odyssey, the tragedies of Aeschylus, Sophocles, and Euripides, the Aenetd, the Divine Comedy, the tragedies of Shakespeare, the /fl;/j/,— these are creations of a scope and grandeur which place them beyond any special human interest. So far as the perceptions and imagination of man can, under the limitations imposed upon him by the surroundings of his time, compass the whole length, breadth, height, and depth of his existence, can rise to its greatest capabilities and sound its lowest baseness ; not less than this is the measure of the power which these monuments reveal. They are like Nature her- self; we lose ourselves in them, are absorbed in awe and wonder at the magnificent vision. The sense of elemental power and beauty is borne in upon us ; the sense of some- thing all and more than all than we are. Many persons would, I dare say, assert that the impression is a moral one. Ruskin, for instance, is always endeavouring to impress upon us the ethical bearings and meaning of art ; and what is true of art, of painting, or of music, is still truer of literature. I believe, how- ever, that it is a mistake to identify the sphere of morals with that of great art. The common sense of mankind refuses to do so, and the course of life, as we observe it, supports the common sense of mankind. We say commonly, ' He was a great artist, and also a good man ; ' or, ' A great artist, but not a good man.' But it is fair to say also that the study of great art, and the absorption of life in it, whether the study be creative or merely imitative, works negatively in the moral direction. The condition of mind which is necessary to pro- duce great works of art, or to study them with sympathy, is one which is incompatible with baseness of intention, or a mean absorption in petty interests. If such baseness be there, the work will suffer : do we not feel this in the case of Byron ? Without charity, even genius becomes as sounding brass and a tinkling cymbal. It would seem, then, that while the study of great literature o 2 iil f 196 THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. is good and ennobling, as drawing the mind upwards and bracing it to the consideration of sublimity and beauty, it cannot be said to have an actively moral effect. The same is true of the intellectual element in all works of art. By the intellectual element I mean not merely what may be called the intellectual contents, the intellectual significance, of such works, but the workmanship, the mechanical appliances by which such significance is brought home to us. Good workmanship is an absolute necessity to good literature. I only wish that English writers understood this as well as their French brethren. If Browning would have taken the trouble to write like Swinburne, how much more might he have done for us ! But workman- ship is not a moral matter, except in so far as it requires a habit of mental concentration in the worker. (6) It may seem as if I were excluding from the sphere of ethics the best things in literature — the writings to which we most naturally turn for relief and refreshment. But much is left, and I will speak first of a branch of literature which is not, perhaps, accessible to many, or at least not approached by them— the literature of philosophy, of history, of science, and of research in general. I would observe, before going any further, that in my opinion knowledge is a moral force, and cannot be too clearly recognized as such ; and that consequently the acquisition and diffusion of knowledge is a duty, for the performance of which those who are able to devote themselves to it are seriously responsible. I am not speaking of the acquisition of knowledge pursued by individuals for their own pleasure, of the striving after culture for its own sake, of the intellectual life as a beautiful thing. These things may be good or not ; but they have a tendency to form intellectual epicures, and at best should probably be characterized as non-moral. I am speaking of the diffusion of knowledge— the spreading of the truth, so far as man can at any given time ascertain it, in its broad social effects, in its bearing on the life of nations. Now, I would wish to em- phasize the fact that the pursuit of knowledge acts in more THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. 197 ways than one upon the character both of individuals and of peoples. To begin with, it sets before the individual the lofty ideal of harmonizing human life with fact, and thus improving and gladdening it in all its aspects and relations. This, throughout all the din and smoke of the thousand heart- rending conflicts which have stained the pages of history with blood, may be discerned to be the real end after which the great leaders of philosophical and religious thought have at all times and in all places been striving. Need I speak of the dis cipline and qualities necessary to the right living of such a life ? the renunciation of individual caprice ; the training of the mind's eye to bear the light ; the purity of motive ; above all, the courage? As Goethe profoundly says, the most perilous service of all is the service of man.' Indeed, in a democratic society, with its tendency towards equality of condition and a uniform level of comfort, with its encourage- ment of sympathy and sentiment, I sometimes think that the virtue of intellectual honesty runs more danger of being sapped than in a ruder state of civilization. It is a good thing to love one's neighbour, but a bad thing to fear him ; and we are con- stantly running the risk of regarding the truth of what we are saying less than the effect which we think it will produce. It is well for the philosopher, the historian, the savant, and the scholar to remember that he owes more, perhaps, to posterity than to his contemporaries. But there is another way in which morality is effected by knowledge. Cruelty is born, to a large extent, of fear, and ever)'thing which tends to diminish fear tends to diminish cruelty. Now, of all the agencies which diminish fear, know- ledge is perhaps the most powerful. In the great struggle in which mankind is perpetually engaged with Nature, it is the progress of knowledge which enables him to win for himself, inch by inch, a freer and stronger position, to gain constantly * ' Willst du viele befrei'n, so wag' es vielen zu dienen ; Wic gefahrlich das sei, willst du es wissen? Versuch's.' {Epigramme ( 1 790,, 5 1 .) I'l •1 8 \ I 198 THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. new points of vantage, from which the hght that he has with him shines further, and the shadows that have been terrifying him vanish into nothingness. His new acquisition is not to be measured only by the advance he has made in material pros- perity, in inventive power, in the command of new mechanical appliances for bringing ease and comfort to his outer life. He has won something better than this, namely, a surer apprehen- sion of the laws of his own existence, a knowledge which acts as a force conservative of the conditions which maintain life, and as a force destructive of the conditions which impair it ; which dissolves the antagonisms and hatreds born of terror, and acts in conformity with all the great charitable powers out of which Nature, even without the aid of widely extended know- ledge, is ceaselessly active in building up human society. (7) Philosophy, the highest of all forms of literature, represents the highest endeavour of the human spirit after knowledge. The study of philosophy, then, in the works of its greatest masters, is, of all the intellectual aids to moral life, the most effective. There is nothing like it for bracing the mind, for raising it upwards, for realizing that mastery over circum- stance which the spirit of man has always claimed as its birthright. Will it be said that theology does this better than philosophy ? I would answer that the comparison is mistaken ; that theology, so far as it is true, is no more than philosoi)hy assuming a special character and attitude under special historical conditions. Will it be said, again, that philosophy necessarily leads to pessimism ? If so, it is a partial philosophy, an imperfect synthesis. (8) The course of history shows that this is no piece of a priori dogmatism. What are the great moral forces upon which European civilization, as we know it, is founded ? The answer would be, I suppose, the system of social ethics de- rived from the Jews, improved and extended by Christianity, and the intellectual impulse derived from the Greeks. But this answer, though true in the main, is put in a form which somewhat misrepresents the facts. THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. 199 We owe to the Greeks, as well as to Christianity, much of our ordinary ethics. No doubt the most striking and obvious characteristic of Greek literature is its presentation to us of great personalities or types of humanity— Achilles, Empedo- cles, Pericles, Socrates, Aristotle, Alexander. We think of Greek society as imperfect on the political and moral side, and as giving us examples rather of individual power and harmonious self-development. This judgment is partial, as being based mainly on our reading of the great classical monuments of Greek literature. We forget the schools of the philosophers, which for the three centuries before the Christian era kept up an unbroken tradition of healthy moral practice in the face of an imperfecdy instructed society, and developed ideas which on the one hand came into fruitful contact with the religious doctrines of the Jews, and on the other hand inspired a new and inner life into the developed social and political organiza- tion of the Roman empire. (9) Seldom, if ever, has philosophy and the spirit of pro- gressive intellectual inquiry been more fruitfully alive than during those three centuries. Much was done in them, not merely in the way of gathering literary knowledge and ad- vancing physical science, but in consolidating the foundations of moral conduct. Yet, when all is said, there is wanting in Greek literature, as a whole, the element of sweetness and wholeness which meets us in that of the Jews. I am sorry to say that I am no Hebrew scholar, and have, therefore, no right to speak of the Old Testament, except as an ordinary reader might speak of it. But I think that even a superficial reader of the Hebrew prophets must be struck with the fact that they appeal to a people which knows and understands, in a special manner, the sanctity of family ties, the love of father and mother, wife and child. The wife is not a nonentity in the household, but the husband's love is for her, body and soul. How beautiful is the constant image under which the God of the Hebrews is represented as the lover and the husband of His people ! ' Thus wast thou decked with gold and silver; i s i I f 1 I i 200 THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. and thy raiment was of fine linen, and silk, and broidered work ; thou didst eat fine flour, and honey, and oil : and thou wast exceeding beautiful, and thou didst prosper unto royal estate. And thy renown went forth among the nations for thy beauty : for it was perfect, through the majesty which I had put upon thee, saith the Lord God. . . . Thou hast built thy lofty place at every head of the way, and hast made thy beauty an abomination. . . . How weak is thine heart, saith the Lord God, seeing that thou doest all these things ! . . . A wife that committeth adulter)- ! that taketh strangers instead of her husband ! . . . Nevertheless I will remember My covenant with thee in the days of thy youth, and I will establish unto thee an everlasting covenant '.' Can Greek or Latin literature show anything like this? Or, again, will you find, in Greek and Latin literature, such sympathy for the poor and suffering as is expressed over and over again in the Hebrew prophets and psalms? ' Hear this, O ye that would swallow up the needy, and cause the poor of the land to fail, saying. When will the new moon be gone, that we may sell corn ? and the sabbath, that we may set forth wheat ? making the ephah small, and the shekel great and dealmg falsely with balances of deceit ; that we may buy the poor for silver, and the needy for a pair of shoes, and sell the refuse of the wheat ? The Lord hath sworn by the excellency of Jacob, Surely I will never forget any of their works. Shall not the land tremble for this, and every one mourn that dwelleth therein - ? ' (10) A national literature is the offspring of the national life, and Its moral influence will be strong in proportion to the moral forces which are the spring of that life. The position which the Bible has held as a religious book, as an inspired record of events, and as an oracle of conduct, has varied in past tmies among different Churches, and will continue to var>' as fresh light is thrown by scholarship upon its historical narratives, and upon the true meaning of its moral and religious ' E^ek. xvi. 13, 14, 25, 30, 32, 60. (R.V.) « Amos viii. 4-8. / I THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. 201 Utterances. Its real influence, however, will not be impaired so long as it is apparent that large portions of it, at least, are based upon a clearer apprehension of the univeral laws of moral progress than existed among any nation of antiquity except the Jews. So long as this is admitted, all questions affecting the date and authorship of particular books will, how- ever they are determined, produce no effect upon the ethical position of the Bible. The value of the historical record may be differently estimated ; the value of the moral record does not depend on time, place, or writer. (11) To pass from the Bible to works of modern fiction may seem to you a piece of unpardonable bathos. But one can hardly exaggerate, nowadays, the power for good or evil which is exercised by the novelist. The Ten Commandments, the Catechisms, even the Sermon on the Mount, are learned by heart and forgotten, or, if the words are not forgotten, they become conventional and cease to convey an effective meaning. But the influence of novels pervades the whole of modern society in its length and breadth. Children are brought up upon stories ; the majority of women, when they have leisure for reading, devote it to reading works of fiction. I have heard it said that in England alone a new novel is written for every day in the year ; in a single year some three hundred and fifty romances. Let us try to lay our finger upon the main objects which a novelist should aim at securing, if his books are to have a genuine moral effect. I assume what is taken for granted in France, and ought to be taken for granted in England, that he spends the utmost pains on his workmanship. His writing should, then, if there is anything in what has been said already, be based upon the great foundations of moral life, and follow their lines. In other words, it should be animated by two spirits— the spirit of truth, and the spirit of charity. If these are present in full measure, two subordinate results will follow : the work will be pure, and it will be noble. If they are present in imperfect measure, or, to put the same thing in % ut» ■■'■aaVjKlc'jr'.-'' 202 THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE a simpler form, if the writer is thinking of himself more than of his readers, of his own gain or his own intellectual gratification, the work will be less pure and less noble ; the whole effect being, of course, in all cases, proportionate to the genius of the writer. By truth I do not mean what is called realism, and by charity I do not mean sentiment. M. Zola and his followers profess to describe human life exactly as it is, or nearly as it is, for, after all, no novelist will ever be able to describe ever)thing. I may be wrong, but I confess that Zola appears to me to have missed his mark. If you are to describe life as it really is, you must take note of its heights as well as its depths, and you must have a hrm hold, in your intellect and imagination, of the organic connexion between them, of the wonderful correlation of moral torces which human life ever>where exhibits. Vou must be ideal as well as real, to use two phrases of which one gets somewhat wear)-. The ideal is, after all, nothing outside us. It is the highest and best of what is within us. The kingdom of God is within you. What do we know of the possibilities of human effort, of the life of hero or saint or martyr, unless it be trom what the hero and saint and martyr have actually thought imagined, and done, and from the s>Tnpathetic echo which their thoughts, imaginations, and deeds awaken in our own breasts ? It is the constant absorption of the lower elements of life into the higher, the reality of both in their mutual relation, that is the real theme of the novelist. A novel need not be impure because it is true ; it is impure only if it reveal the fact that, in the novelists own mind, the baser elements are the more real. I find it impossible to read much of Zola, because of what seems to me the want of proportion in his view of human society. This want of proportion is destructive of beauty, and IS, therefore, a literar>' as well as a moral blemish ; in short, Zola's realism is not only a crime but an error. On the other hand, Balzac appears to me to be a realist of the right kind because, with all his grasp of the lower side of life, he never THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. 203 loses sight of its sublime possibilities. He regards man as a living whole, not as a headless galvanized body. The same may, I think, be said of Thackeray, who no doubt would have written with even greater truth and freedom than he has done had he not stood too much in awe of the susceptibilities of his English public. What could give a more terrible picture of the gaunt realities of wickedness than the follo\^nng passage from * A Gambler's Death,' in the Paris Sketch-Book ? — ' We sallied forth, and speedily arrived at the hotel which Attwood inhabited still. He had occupied, for a time, very fine apartments in this house ; and it was only on arriving there that day, that we found he had been gradually driven from his magnificent suite of rooms au premier to a little chamber on the fifth story. We mounted, and found him. It was a little shabby room, with a few articles of rickety furniture, and a bed in an alcove ; the light from the one window was falling full upon the bed and the body. Jack was dressed in a fine lawn shirt ; he had kept it, poor fellow, to die in ; for in all his drawers and cupboards there was not a single article of clothing ; he had pawned everything by which he could raise a penny — desk, books, dressing-case, and clothes ; and not a single half- penny was found in his possession. ' He was lying as I have drawn him, one hand on his breast, the other falling towards the ground. There was an expression of perfect calm on the face, and no mark of blood to stain the side towards the light. On the other side, however, there was a great pool of black blood, and in it the pistol ; it looked more like a toy than a weapon to take away the life of this vigorous young man. In his forehead, at the side, was a small black wound ; Jack's life had passed through it ; it was little bigger than a mole. * " Regardez un f)eu/' said the landlady, " messieurs, il m'a gate trois matelas, et il me doit quarante-quatre francs." * This was all his epitaph : he had spoilt three mattresses, and owed the landlady four-and-forty francs. In the whole world there was not a soul to love him or lament him. . . . \H 204 THE MORAL ISFLVESCE OF LITERATURE. 'Beside Jack's bed, on his little table de nuit lay the remains of his last meal, and an open letter, which we read. It was from one of his suspicious acquaintances of former days, and ran thus — * *• Oil es-tu, Cher Jack ? why you not come and see me 1 tu me dois de largent, entends-tu ? un chapeau, une cachemire, a box of the Play. Viens domain soir. je t'attendrai at ei^ht o'clock. Passages des Panoramas. My Sir is at his country. '••Adieu \ demain. ,..c J.- ***FlFIXE. 'I shuddered as I walked through this \tn Passage des Panoramas in the evening. The girl was there,' pacing to and fro, and looking into the countenance of ever>- passer-by, to recognize Attwood. Adieu a demain -xhtxt was a dreadful meaning in the words, which the writer of them little knew.' ^Vhat can be more real, and yet what could sui^gest more to the miadnation or more profoundly stir the moral emotions ? Ut us for a moment pause, and see what Thackerav can be m his mood of exquisite tenderness. I quote the end of the tenth chapter of the second volume of The Xru\'omes. 'Clive sees the carriage drive away after Miss Xewcoroe has entered it without once looking up to the window where he stands. When it is gone he goes to the opposite windows of the salon, which are open towards the garden. The chapel mus:c begins to pby from the convent next door. As he hears n he sinks down, his head on his hands. * Enter Madame de Kcra.: ySL^ gees te» kirn u^'th anxiems /ih^is. What hast thou, my child ? Hast thou spoken ? * C/ive ZYT} steadiJy ». Yes. * MaJ^Mu de F. And sbe loves thee ? I know she loves thee. * Cxrv. \ ou hear the organ of the convent ? * Madame de /\ Qu'as-tu ? * C/rx. I might as well hope to marrr one of the sisters THE MORAL L\FLUESCE OF LITERATURE. 205 of yonder convent, dear lady. (He sinks down again, and she kisses him.y* * Ciive. I never had a mother, but you seem like one. * Madame de F. Mon fils : Oh, men fils ! ' Thackeray is true and tender ; pure, therefore, and noble. To speak of Dickens is hardly necessar)-, for I think he is better known, certainly he is better understood than Thackeray, who veils his great qualities under a kind of aristocratic reserve. I would only say that if there be any novelist of genius an)-where whose work is based upon charity, upon love for his kind, sympathy for the weak, the healthy worship of goodness, it is Dickens. The fantastic, grotesque, unreal, theatrical element in him will be forgiven by posterit)' for this. I know no work of his in which the real mind and heart of the man is more plainly revealed than in that strange stor>- of 'The Haunted Man,' printed among his Christmas Books. It is the tale of a man who, over-sensitive and with an over-mastering memory, obtains from a spirit the power of forgetting all his past recollections. With this power he loses, also, all his power to s>mpathize with suffering : the springs of his moral nature are broken, and he blights the moral nature of others. '"Give me back myself!' exclaimed Redlaw like a madman. *' I am infected ! I am infectious ! I am charged with poison for my own mind, and the minds of all mankind. Where I felt interest, compassion, sympathy, I am turning into stone. Selfishness and ingratitude spring up in my blighted footsteps. I am only so much less base than the wretches whom I make so, that in the moment of their transformation I can hate theoL* "* Had I not prosed long enough, I might have said a few words on the great living Russian novelist. Count Leo Tolstoi. The applause with which you receive his name shows me that you are familiar with his books, and this fact of itself relieves me of the necessit}* of talking long. I will therefore only say this — ^that the greatness of Tolstoi seems to me to consist in his almost unique combinauon of a prosaic grasp of comcK>n I 206 THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. facts and everyday life with an extraordinary strength of moral vision. By the aid of this vision Tolstoi beholds our ordinar>' life elevated, transformed, glorified. He is not only a great artist (I mean in the wider sense, for his workmanship is defective), but a moralist of profound spiritual insight, who has steeped his mind and heart in the teaching of the New Testament. I would call your attention especially to the view which he is always either propounding or suggesting, that It is often not until the approach of death that the true relations of things are borne in upon us. Read the account of the illness and death of the Prince Andre, in Uar and Peace, and say whether the moral imagination of man has ever risen higher. Then his powerful apprehension and inter- pretation of the old truth, that in the simple service of his fellow-men lies a man's only lasting happiness— how beautifully is it repeated and enforced, more especially in his later allegories! His notion of a return to a primitive communistic life, in which wealth-hunting and war and violence, and with them literature and science, should cease, is, I suppose, more easily comprehensible when we remember that the village communities of Russia have, in times past, approached a certain way towards its realization. To an inhabitant of Western Europe, with its highly developed city life and the consequent complexity of its civilization, Tolstoi's idea must appear a dream. But there are dreams and dreams, and from Tolstoi's dreams one would rather not awake. (12) Can literature, in these its aspects, be made an instru- ment of moral education for the numberless children whom we are daily teaching to read, but providing with very little direction what to read ? I was much struck with a suggestion of Lord Armstrong's, made, I thinJc, some months ago in one of the magazines, that two hours or so every week should be set aside in elementary schools for the reading of good novels to the children. To say nothing of such writers as Hood and Dickens, English literature is singularly rich in good works of fiction. Could not two hours a week in elementary THE MORAL INFLUENCE OF LITERATURE. 20-J schools be spared (say) from the analysis of sentences, or the geography of Siberia, to the reading aloud, by the masters to their classes, of writers like Hood and Dickens ? Such a lesson would, no doubt, not be disciplinary. But I believe that many children would remember all their lives long something of what they learned in it, and that is more than can be said for a great many lessons, the sole object of which is mental gymnastics. In trying to recapitulate these scattered and inadequate remarks, I would say that what I have endeavoured to convey might be summed up in the observation that the moral force of a book is always in direct proportion to the moral force of its author. The works of Mill and Carlyle are moral forces ; but how much greater do we feel the men to be than their books! The voice is much, but the speaker is more. This, and much more that I have said, is, I fear, a truism ; but I am not without hope that you may feel what I remember once hearing said with regard to an obvious proposition, that * though a truism, it is nevertheless true.' i V. f I CLASSICAL EDUCATION, ETC. 209 \\ IX. CLASSICAL EDUCATION IN THE PAST AND AT PRESENT'. I SHALL endeavour, in the few remarks which I am going to make on this subject, to give some idea of the origin of classical education, and the different character and position which it has necessarily assumed, under the pressure of vary- ing circumstances, at different periods of history. This may perhaps make it easier to realize on what ground it stands at present, and what services it can still render in modern civilized communities. The principle underlying the system of classical education was originally this : that it was a good thing for a boy to know the best literature, because the best literature would furnish him not only with models of artistic composition, but with words of practical wisdom which might aid him in the realization of moral truth. All educational material must be, from the nature of the case, a small selection from the great mass of knowledge; but the smaller this mass of knowledge is at any period, the larger, of course, will be the proportion which the material of education bears towards it. At the present time our great difficulty lies in the vastness of the field around us. I'he ['\ lecture delivered before the Teachers' Guild, Oxford, November 1689: published, with Essay VIII, by Percival & Co., London, iSj^aJ amount which can be known is infinite, but the limitations of each individual mind remain, and are likely to remain, what they always have been. If we wish to find a people, and a period of history, which in this respect presented conditions almost diametrically opposed to those of our own day, we cannot do better than look at the Athenians in the early and middle parts of the fifth century B.C. It was among the Athenians, and at this time, that the principle of classical education first took root. It exhibited itself in a very simple form. An Athenian boy, for all his literature, learned his Homer and something of the best lyric poets. He had some, but not much, difficulty about the language; certainly not so much, I should imagine, as a modern English boy would have in learning Chaucer. We may realize this state of things by supposing that no English boy learned anything at school in the way of literature but certain passages of the Bible and Shakespeare, read, explained, and committed to memory. A boy's literary education would probably, at this period of Athenian histor)-, stop at this point ; but if he were wealthy and wished to enter public life, it is very likely that he would, as a young man, get some further education in the art of public speaking. One can hardly exaggerate the importance of this art in classical antiquity. In all cities which had a republican constitution, and they were very numerous, it was absolutely necessary for a man who aspired to a leading position. The Sophists, as they are now called, were to a large extent professors of the art of persuasion. They taught the young speaker how to arrange his matter, to put his points, and to polish his style. The beautiful prose style which is one of the ornaments of Greek literature was, in great part, formed by the influence of these teachers and their pupils. Even historical prose was, to a considerable degree, moulded on the prose of the orators. The lessons of the Sophists, or teachers of speaking and such knowledge as bore on speaking, were partly lessons in the art of prose composition, and may VOL, II. p 2IO \f( CLASSICAL EDUCATION IN THE so far be regarded as a part of literary, or what we should now call classical, education. With the establishment of the Macedonian empire, and the extinction of freedom at Athens, another period in the history of classical education may be dated. Alexandria became the intellectual centre of Greek civilization. The Ptolemies founded great libraries there, and gathered round them savants and scholars from other parts of the world. The rich vein of genius which, from the time of Pindar and Aeschylus to that of Demosthenes and Plato, had been so fertile of great works, became exhausted. An age of scholars and savants succeeded the age of poets, historians, orators, and philosophers. Much great and lasting work was done in the third and second centuries B.C. The foundations of physical science and of criticism, literary and philological, were firmly laid. And it was in this period that literary education first began to assume the shape which it has worn ever since. It then became an education in a literature which, if not dead, belonged to the past, the spirit of which was extinct, and its form only to be restored by imitation. Inseparably connected with this feature of classical study in the Alexandrian period is another ; I mean the organization of literary' and philological criticism into a system. It was necessary, on the one hand, to select from the large mass of good writing offered by the Athenian literature those works which seemed best suited for educational purposes. Accord- ingly we now find the masters of criticism, Aristophanes of Byzantium and his pupil Aristarchus, in the first half of the second century B.C., forming canons of the best poets, orators, and historians ; canons which were in later times naturally enlarged or modified, but which, from that time to this, have exercised a great influence in the educational and even in the literary world. As the selection had to be made upon some principle or principles, it came to be thought part of the duty of a professor to give his higher classes something in the way of literary criticism ; some remarks justifying the PAST AND AT PRESENT. 211 position which was assigned in the canon to the author they were reading. I grieve to say that one result of this was that bits of literary criticism were handed on unaltered from one master to another, and, we must suppose, epitomized and learned by heart by the pupils. On the other hand, it was necessary that the selected authors should be read in good texts ; and the necessity of forming and handing down such texts created the science of philological criticism. The professor was forced to ask. Can Homer, or Pindar, or Aeschylus, really have said this? If not, what did he say ? If he said it, how is the usage to be explained ? Commentaries thus began to be formed, parts of which have, in forms no doubt much abridged, and there- fore very inadequate, survived to the present day. It will be seen that classical education has now ceased to be the simple matter that it was in the time of Pericles. No author can now be taught without a considerable amount of professorial criticism, aesthetic and philological. The texts are encumbered with comment. The next change which takes place strengthens the inevitable tendency already begun. Before the close of the third century B.C., a new political power had won a commanding position in the south of Europe. Italy under the lead of Rome had vanquished Carthage; Rome was thus becoming a great commercial centre, and was urging imperial pretensions; a collision between the Italian and the Macedonian empires was sooner or later inevitable. The Romans were as eager to submit to the Cireeks in the field of letters as they were to conquer them in the field of battle. They had a great history behind them, a record of social and political achievement to which no city of Greece could show a parallel. They had literary records of all this, in their own national prose and poetry. But the Greeks had long been busy in the Italian cities— busy with the history and antiquities of Rome, eager to convince the Romans that their origin, and with it their religion and mythology, were Greek or Trojan — anything but what they p 2 II (I ll 212 CLASSICAL EDUCATION IN THE really were. There was then no such thing as historical criticism, in the proper sense of the word. What there was was in the hands of the Greeks, whose writers were able and accomplished to a degree which no Italian could yet hope to attain. The Romans swallowed the lying tale, pas- sively allowed their own mythology and antiquities to be corrupted, and left a legacy of endless difficulties to us un- fortunate modern scholars. One can hardly blame them for this; and there is another point in their conduct for which they deserve nothing but praise. They recognized to the full the transcendent merits of the Greek literature, and set themselves, with genuine modesty, to learn from the Greek masters. Latin literature, as we have it, began with transla- tions and adaptations from the Greek, and was at hardly any time whoFly independent of Greek influence. This important fact had an inevitable effect upon education. To learn Greek and understand Greek literature soon became an ambition of the wealthier classes in Italy, and in spite of much opposition on the part of some friends of the national language and literature, Greek had become, before the last century of the republic, a regular part of liberal education at Rome. To learn how to write Latin hexameters, boys learned the metre of Homer ; to master the principles of harmonious composition in prose, they wrote Greek prose exercises. Clas- sical education had become bilingual. A new difficulty was added to it — that of mastering a foreign language and entering into the niceties and refinements of a foreign literature. By the end of the first century a.d., a canon of good Latin authors had been formed, and the phrase dassicus, or belonging to the first class, was applied to those who were thought to deserve that position. Literary education had now attained a fixed type, which, so far as I know, it retained for centuries. No doubt, with th^ decline of learning which set in after the beginning of the second century a.d., it degenerated in many schools into a mere getting up of fragments of literature and manuals of PAST AND AT PRESENT. 213 learning ; but the idea or principle remained the same. The masterpieces of literature were studied mainly as things of beauty, as models for style ; only secondarily as storehouses of thought or information. The conception was identical with that prevalent at Athens in the age of Pericles ; only the subject, with the manifold accretions of time, had become more complex and difficult. To what extent the great writers of Greece and Rome were known and studied in the Middle Ages I am not competent to say ; but I suppose that the influence which they exercised upon thought and feeling cannot have been extensive, other- wise the Renaissance of the fifteenth century would have been a far less important phenomenon than it was. Or rather there would have been no Renaissance or new birth at all. What thfe fact really was we all know. The rediscovered literature of antiquity was regarded not only as a monument of beauty, but as a storehouse of moral and political wisdom, as containing the authentic basis of history and science, as revealing the possibilities of a free and humane life. Hence the passion, which the lapse of four centuries has not exhausted in the civilized world, for attaining a correct view of antiquity, for restoring its texts, piecing together its broken monuments, realizing the course of ancient history, living again in ancient thought and feeling. The ardour of discover)' which animated the scholars of the Renaissance and the Reformation was strong enough to give Greek and Latin literature a permanent place in education side by side with the Scriptures and the manuals of Christian doctrine. In this instance men acted, as they often do, upon the sound instinct which prompts them to embody in their life and action as many elements of good as they can, without inquiring whether those elements, if suffered each to attain its own development, might not turn out to be antagonistic, or even mutually exclusive. The theory according to which the Greek and Latin classics were regarded as the main storehouse of human wisdom was ■' A 214 CLASSICAL EDUCATION IN THE a theory which, from its very nature, was doomed in the course of time to extinction. For, even supposing it to be true in its full extent, it is obvious that the lessons taught by the classics must, in the course of studying them, be absorbed into modern literature, and become part of the common stock of cultivated opinion. Since the Renaissance we find, accord- mgly, that this point of view has been gradually abandoned, and that two other aspects of the classics have come into prominence. I will term these two aspects the literary and the scieotific respectively. The literary aspect is that with which we are the most familiar in England, and which has also been dominant, I think, in France. But the recent histor)' of classical education has been, I believe, different in France and in England. In France the Revolution dealt, for a time, a serious blow to ihe study of Greek in the public schools, and the literary study of l^tin has served, hand in hand with that of French, as the main instrument for the culture of literary taste. In England we have fortunately had no revolution for two hundred years. Greek has never been banished from our schools ; and the Greek as well as the Latin language and literature have been studied mainly as models of expression and composition; as a means of developing the literary feeling which was long regarded as a natural, if not necessary, characteristic of a cultivated Englishman. By the scientific aspect of the classics I mean the view which regards them, not exclusively, or even mainly, as models of literary composition, but as historical documents, or material for reconstructing a truthful representation of ancient life in all its aspects, moral, religious, social, literary, and political. This view might, in the time of Scaliger have been called the French view, while the literar>- view was predominant in Italy. The more serious study of classical philosophy passed, however, with Scaliger, from France to Holland and, later on, froni Holland to Germany. In Germany, for more now than a cen- tury, this field of intellectual labour has found many of its PAST AND AT PRESENT. 215 most illustrious representatives. It is this historical and philo- sophical tradition (for philology is really a subsidiary branch of history and philosophy), consolidated if not founded by the genius of Friedrich Wolf, which has formed the strength of classical study in Germany for a centur>' past. Without an ideal so ennobling, the prodigious labour spent upon the classics in Germany could never have been maintained ; it must have starved long ago for want of an adequate motive. I speak advisedly of an historical and philosophical tradition. We have had great scholars in England, but n progressive tradition of advancing knowledge. We honour our scholars, and found prizes and scholarships bearing their names ; the results of their work are soon snapped up by teachers and examiners ; but the spirit of their work— how many are found to cherish this, the most precious thing they had to bequeath, and to make it the animating principle of their own lives? I suppose that few enlightened educationists in England would now contend that the Greek and Latin classics should form the exclusive, or almost exclusive, instrument of a liberal education. The field of knowledge has been immensely widened. Other literatures assert themselves as worthy of study side by side with those of ancient Greece and Italy. And, whether the literature be ancient or modern, few would now maintain that an education mainly or entirely literary ought to be the only kind of education encouraged by a great and civilized nation. The importance, now generally recognized, of physical science as the right means of training for some, perhaps for many, minds, is the great educational fact of to-day. My own opinion is of very little value in this matter. But I may perhaps say that I have no faith in a little science taught in classical schools, or a little Latin taught in scientific schools. I look forward to a time when the modern and the classical types of school shall be so separated as to ensure in each a training as thorough in its kind as was the best classical education of forty or fifty years ago. In the *l 'I ti v: 216 CLASSICAL EDUCATION IN THE Classical schools I would have the education as complete, as wide, and as simple as possible, so as to serve as a solid ba«=is for future study, either in literature proper, or in history and philosophy. No doubt such a separation of ancient and modern must result m a certain amount of rivalry between the two systems. And many, I dare say, are apprehensive that, what with the mcreasing prominence given to physical science, the growing mercantile spirit, and the depressingly low standard of literary taste among the large half-educated public which constitutes so large a part of all modern societies, the Greek and Latin classics will go to the wall. I do not share this apprehension. Classical education survived a serious attack on the part of the champions of ' useful knowledge ' some sixty years ago. At present most enlightened educationists would probably say that we have not too little, but too much of it, in England. A\ hat IS wanted is to ensure a larger variety in the subjects selected from the vast and increasing mass of knowledge for the purposes of serious mental training, and thus, as far as possible, confining the study of the Greek and L^-itin classics to those who are likely to profit by it. The ideal of education IS that not a single mind should be thrown away upon a study for which it is unfit. The ideal of national culture is that not a smgle branch of valuable knowledge should be unrepresented m the national schools and universities. No reasonable man probably, would desire that the study of the Greek and Latin classics should perish out of the land. They cannot, it is true, be any longer regarded as the chief storehouse of know- ledge, or as furnishing us with absolute canons of composition and criticism. But the Agamemnon of Aeschylus is still the greatest tragedy that has ever been written ; no amount of criticism and dissection will affect the commanding literary posi- tion of the Homeric poems ; Pindar, Sophocles, Aristophanes Demosthenes, Herodotus, Thucydides, Cicero, Tacitus, remain Where they were. To say anything more of the classics in their literary aspect would be flat and affected. But there PAST AND AT PRESENT. 217 is another point on which, perhaps, I may be pardoned if I linger for a moment. It must be remembered that the classics have still more than a merely literary function to perform. Greece was the mother not only of poetry and oratory, but — at least for the European world — of philosophy. And by philosophy I do not mean merely a succession of metaphysical and ethical systems, but the active love of knowledge, the search for truth. Will it be said that this spirit is not now as necessary an element in civilized human life as it ever was? In the long run it would almost appear as if it were mainly this which saves society from degeneracy and decay. The charitable instincts die out in an atmosphere of ignorance, for ignorance is the mother of terror and hatred. The free moral impulse which makes a man a man, which bids him love all good more than he fears death or pain — this is what was cherished in the Greek philosophic schools, the vital element, of which their metaphysical disputes were only the superficial manifestation. Even in th^ pale reflection of Greek philosophy which is presented in Latin philosophical writing, even in Cicero, you will find more of a temperate and manly love of truth than in the invectives of a TertuUian. This is an inheritance as precious as Greek art and literary form ; nay, if the continuous life of the nations be regarded, an inheritance even more precious. If u |i h X. AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF CONDUCT AND INTELLECT. [INTERNATIONAL JOURNAL OF ETHICS, IL (1892) 217-231.) Mr. Leslie Stephen, in an article on * Cardinal Newman's Scepticism,' recently published in the Nineteenth Century (1891, p. 188), says that the word 'authority' may mean two different things. ' Authority, when I speak as a historian or a man of science, is a name for evidence. Authority, as used by a lawyer, is a name for coercion, whether physical or moral.' I propose to use the word * authority ' in the sense of the power which, in the sphere of conduct, in the long run deter- mines our practice, and in the sphere of intellect in the long run determines our assent ; admitting, at the same time, that the two spheres are by no means always distinct in human life as we know it. It is not necessary for me to say a word on the importance of this subject, either in itself or in reference to the present time. Every one who observes human life at all must ac- knowledge that the desire for authoritative guidance is one of the most universal desires which men experience and ex- press; and that the feeling of loyalty or devotion to the persons or institutions to whom, or to which, a man owes anything of his better life is, of all feelings, one of the noblest AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF CONDUCT, ETC 219 and the most commanding. This is true at all times and in all places, but at the present time the desire is felt to be especially urgent, because it is in so many cases unsatisfied. We live in a time of widely-diffused intellectual activity — widely-diffused, I say advisedly and with emphasis, rather than deep or penetrating. A main consequence of this fact is that there are as many claimants for authority as there are moral and intellectual aspirations demanding it. The desire for authoritative guidance may be observed to exist in two different forms, and issue in two different results, according to the moral constitution of the persons anxious to satisfy it. In this relation, human beings may be roughly divided into two classes : those who are capable of forming convictions, and those who are not. This division does not, it need hardly be said, correspond with the line of mere in- tellectual cleavage ; it is not a division into clever people and stupid people. The capacity of forming convictions is a sign of power, but not exactly of intellectual power. On the other hand, great intellectual capacity, great versatility of talent, and manifold insight into things, need not imply any faculty of forming a real conviction. These gifts may serve no purpose but that of intensifying a sceptical tendency. The history of human thought and action varies as either of these types of mind has, at any given time, the predomi- nance. To the former class are due, in large measure, the great and sincere and constructive movements which re-awaken the moral forces which inspire society and social life. The demand of those minds for authority is answered by the moral passion which moves them ; the rule which they set up is the embodiment of their own love of truth. The latter class form their convictions, or what stands for their convic- tions, upon scepticism, and thus tend to look for and find their authority, or governing principle, in mere force. Nothing is true, they say or think ; the human intellect is impotent ; therefore, let the majority of mankind with its traditional in- stitutions, its received opinions and conventions, be our deity. \ 111 4 220 I! AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF Weary of reason, or disappointed at the results of its efforts, they fall back for guidance on the irrational elements in life. It has long seemed to me that during the last quarter of a century we have been suffering under what I venture to call a disorder of this kind\ The intellectual tendency of this period has been towards laborious collection of facts in the special spheres of particular sciences, natural and historical. Little, if anything, however, of first-rate importance, even in effort and intention, has been produced in the way of compre- hensive thinking. John Stuart Mill is dead ; Lotze is dead ; Herbert Spencer is an old man, and who is to succeed him ? The tone of literature, where it is not merely dull or conven- tional or sentimental, is that of a moody pessimism, or, at best, a clever and impatient scepticism. The danger of a reaction against the true liberal spirit, by which I mean the spirit of free mental and moral effort, is a real one. In the highest of all spheres, that of morals and religion, we are now face to face with a tendency to rest in half-beliefs, to decry the effort of real thinking as a superannuated folly, to accept traditional opinions as if, because traditional, they represented accom. plished facts ; in short, to found a system of orthodoxy and conservatism upon scepticism and distrust. Yet liberalism, or the movement in favour of mental and moral freedom, though not so powerfully represented in Eng- land as it was some thirty years ago, is no less vital in its essential characteristics. Its leading representatives at that time were John Stuart Mill and Thomas Carlyle. There were certain weaknesses or limitations in the teaching of both these great men which have tended to impair the permanency of its force. Neither, so far as I know, succeeded in giving ^ This sceptical tendency seems to have begun, in the nineteenth century. with Joseph de Maistre, who characteristically opens his defence of the principle of authority with an attack upon Locke. But it has assumed various forms, and is very differently represented, for instance, by de Maistre. by John Henry Newman, and by recent popular writers such as \V. H. Mallock. CONDUCT AND INTELLECT. 221 a thoroughly satisfactory answer to the question which I am endeavouring to discuss. Mill's contribution to the movement which he represented seems to have been twofold, lying partly in the moral force and concentration of the man himself, partly in his protest against existing authority in those cases in which it appeared to him to embody injustice. His £ssay on Liberty, published in 1859, is a masterly exposition of his principles. It is a noble protest against the tyranny of society and legislation, but, as it stands, will seem incomplete to minds which require the statement of some positive principle which, whatever its embodiment, is to take the place of society and legislation. Carlyle, who felt more strongly than Mill did where the weak side of contemporary liberalism lay, made a real attempt to set up a positive authority in the shape of the great men of history. Perhaps, if Mill had been asked the question, he would have answered that men ought to be content with the simple * love of loving-kindness,' and to ask for no further light. This* would probably have appeared to Carlyle an inadequate, if not a sentimental, answer. However this may be, there seems to be no doubt that Carlyle set himself seriously to inquire what had been the ruling force in human history, and to have found the answer in the characters and actions, much more the characters than the actions, of great men. But he executed his task in too crude and hasty a manner, and though, as I believe, he struck upon the right path, he did not succeed in satisfying his age. His action was too much confined to asserting the greatness of great men ; in what that greatness consisted, and where its permanent influence lay, he does not seem to me to have asked with sufficient seriousness. In this brief and fragmentary article I shall make no pre- tence of treating the subject exhaustively, or even thoroughly. I shall attempt only so much as is possible to one who lives outside the serious study of philosophy, and who can do nothing but record his observations on the facts of modern 222 AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF |( I! civilized society as they have presented themselves to him. Starting from the point of view of liberalism, and speaking in complete sympathy with its principle and tendency, I would ask whether it is not possible, after all, for its representatives to take up a more positive ground than was occupied by the liberal philosopher of thirty years ago. I shall first ask what are the chief existing seals of authority recognized by modern society in the spheres of conduct and intellect; and then mquire whether any common and permanent principle can be discovered which underlies them all. Roughly speaking, one may distinguish four different kinds of authority, which, although mutually connected, and indeed inseparable, in fact, suggest convenient landmarks to guide us in the discussion. These are (i) the authority of law, (2) the authority of religious bodies, (3) the authority of society or public opinion, (4) the authority of great men. Do these various authorities rest upon any permanent prin- ciple ? If so, on what ? and why is the principle permanent ? I shall try to show, in answer, that the permanent element of authority, in all of them, is the moral feeling or conviction of the society which they affect ; that where they are imper- fect, or transitory, there they fall short of, or imperfectly represent, this moral feeling ; that the authority of no one set of laws, of no one religious body, of no one society, of no one man, can be permanent; that at any given time the only absolute authority for the individual is his conscience, or his free moral conviction; but where this gives an uncertain answer, which it seldom does, recourse must be had to the moral feeling of mankind ; or, failing that, to the moral feeling of the society to which he feels himself morally most nearly attached ; that the cases of conflict, so arising, are inevitable, owing to the fact that the moral vision of every individual and every society is limited; but that the conflict is the means by which the moral force is asserting itself, and struggling for harmonious expression ; that the conflict tends to a balance of moral forces and an ultimate agreement. CONDUCT AND INTELLECT. 223 In all this I am obliged, for the mere sake of making way, to assume the liberty of using the words morality, conscience, 2iV\di freedom, in their ordinary and popular sense ; and I shall also assume the truth of a theory, which is, of course, disputed, that the moral sense and moral action, whatever their ultimate origin, are, as they now exist, sui generis, and cannot be included in any other class of feeling or action, such as the desire for pleasure in any form, or the exercise of the reason \ (i) The authority of law is that with which we are all most immediately familiar. It may be said generally that law represents such part of social enactment and social demand as society allows to be carried openly into effect by physical force. You commit a robbery or forgery ; if detected, you are imprisoned ; you wrong your wife or your husband ; the law takes it out of your power to wrong them further ; you commit a murder, if detected, you are hanged. The court, the judge, the prison, the policeman, the scaffold, represent the power of law. The spirit of liberalism has been generally adverse to the extension of the power of law into spheres where it is other than restrictive or preventive, and, on the whole, the spirit of liberalism may be said to have prevailed in modern states. Even in cases which appear to contradict this statement, in such cases as those of the English Factory Acts, Poor Law, Education Acts, Criminal Law Amendment Acts, and the like, enlightened legislators would probably argue that their aim was mainly if not entirely protective. The Factor)- and Vac- cination Acts fairly admit of being represented as protective of life; the Criminal Law Amendment Act as protective of freedom. Legislation, such as that of which we have examples ' I might perhaps have used the word social for moral, but I prefer the older term, though the moral character of an act seems to me to consist entirely in its unselfishness. This is fully recognized in ordinary thought and language. An unselfish act is regarded as good or moral in the doer, though its consequences may be disastrous ; a selfish act may have excellent con- sequences, but no one calls it good or moral in the doer. ii M IT 224 AUTHORITY AV THE SPHERE OF in the Poor Law and Compulsory Education Acts, does not, It is true, admit so easily of being viewed in this light ; the wrong persons probably regard it as a preservative against barbarism and against revolution. What is the permanent element in the authority of law ? As regards conduct, its strength may be said generally to lie in its antiquity. I do not mean, of course, that a new law is not in many cases as binding as an old one. But I mean that society does not, as a rule, appeal to law— that is, to the em- ployment of open force— unless the social demand for the em- ployment of open force is. in the particular case, of long standing ; and that the effectiveness of the law when thus appealed to is in direct proix)rtion to the length of its stand- ing. If a law is passed in satisfaction of a sudden or tempo- rary demand, it soon ceases to be effective. Those laws, the authority of which is most readily taken for granted in modern society, such laws, for instance, as secure the possession of private property and protect the institution of marriage, represent the social institutions, arrangements, and customs which can claim the highest antiquity. And they can claim the highest antiquity only because they repre- sent the oldest moral feeling of the community, or, in other words, because they are the earliest creations of the moral force. Still, confining ourselves to the sphere of conduct, we shall easily see that the ver>' antiquity which gives law its strength may also be its weakest point. When the law is found to be at variance with the moral sense of the community, it will usually be found to be behind it. The law, for instance, has in times past imposed restrictions, as in the case of the exclu- sion of the Jews from Parliament, or the limitation of the right of voting for members of Parliament ; the moral sense of the community demands and obtains their abolition. Or immoral institutions or customs, institutions or customs which in the long run are found to be injurious to society, have been allowed to exist in security— the slave trade, for instance, or COSDUCT AND INTELLECT. 22^ the traffic in young girls. The moral sense of the community demands that the law should turn its arm against them. Or unjust institutions have been protected ; for instance, the hus- band's rights over the wife's property. The moral sense of the community demands and obtains the abolition of these rights. Thus law is continually being brought abreast of moral feel- ing, without the support of which the constable is powerless. It is then the general moral sense of society which gives to law its permanent authority. No prudent government will either tr>' to resist a demand supported by this general moral sense, or force on legislation which, though in itself beneficial, is obviously in advance of it. There is little to be said upon the influence of law in the sphere of intellect. In civilized states there are but few in- stances in which the law attempts to prescribe how men are to think. The tendency of civilization is to allow the law to meddle less and less with the intellectual life of society. (2) At this point we pass, by an easy transition, to consider what elements of permanence there are in the authority of religious bodies. A religious body or a church is, so far as it can be, a theocracy. There are few, if any, churches which, if they had the power, would not extend their authority over the whole of human life. In modern times, the main differ- ence between the secular authority and any religious authority is this, that while the law only imposes restrictions on conduct, the religious authority claims supremacy in the intellectual sphere as well. It says not only, * This thou shalt do, and this thou shalt not do,' but also, 'This thou shalt believe, and this thou shalt not believe '—and this, from the ver)- nature of the case, in the highest spheres attainable by human thought. In matters of conduct, the churches generally represent a higher moral standard than that of the law, and this fact is one of the reasons, perhaps the most solid and respectable reason, of the perpetual conflict between church and state. The contest is, in Europe, as old as Christianity ; for, outside VOL. II. Q h ,\ iij 226 AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF of the pale of Judaism, it was in Christianity that reh'gion first embodied itself as a social force. Leaving on one side all debatable points, we may confidently assert that the success of Christianity in its earlier stages was due to the fact that the Christians opposed an organized society, based upon ethical principles, to an imperfectly instructed government. The intellect of the Graeco-Roman world had not penetrated far enough to understand the necessity, or to attempt in practice the organization of social life. Add to this the facts that the principles of political economy were not understood at all, that taxation was based upon wrong principles, and that scientific knowledge was not, to any great extent, applied to beneficent inventions, and it will be easily seen that the lot of the poor and of the slaves throughout the Roman empire was likely to be a hard one. The Roman aristocracy had the genius for deciding cases of dispute between individuals, and their law is one of the greatest monuments of human intel- lectual effort. They were masters of the machinery of organ- ization, and their roads united into a whole the distant parts of their empire. But they did not know how to improve life or bring it forward, and they were unequal to the problem of dealing with the poor and miserable. It was to these first that Christianity, with its binding ordinances, based upon the ancient and indestructible laws of the moral nature, gave new life and new hopes. Had its basis been any other, nothing could have saved it from perishing amid its errors and its dis- sensions. It is hardly necessary to mention any among the thousand instances in which religious bodies in Europe, since the appearance of Christianity, have used their influence in destroying or modifying immoral customs and institutions. It is the other pretension, the pretension to dictate to the intellect, which weakens the authority of religious bodies, and will, so long as it is effectively put forward, destroy the per- manence of that authority. A constant struggle, one of the most tragical of all struggles, has long gone on between the churches and the progressive intellect of mankind. The CONDUCT AND INTELLECT. 227 conscience — I will not limit the term by saying the intel- lectual conscience — of the leading men imposes on them the duty of practising intellectual honesty, a virtue at all times rare, and in a democratic society perhaps the rarest of all. The conscience of the religious community has been taught that its practice is strictly dependent on certain beliefs. Hence the churches are continually tending to lapse into what is neither more nor less than an immoral position. They find themselves under the necessity either of expelling from their midst the men who have, so far as is possible to man, attained the truth, or are conscientiously trying to attain it, or of carrying on a hypocritical coquetry with error. Now, it is much easier for a society to make unavowed alterations in its theories than to change the form of its practice ; and the religious bodies accordingly, in view of their corporate interest, adopt, if they can, the former alternative. Thus the outward coherence of the society is maintained ; but at what a price ! At the price of keeping alive the rivalries and animosities of the various churches, and preventing the co-operation of good men, as though the forces of evil could be met with a divided front ; at the price, also, of attempting impossible compromise, debauching the reason, and helping on the ruin of the thinking power, the noblest gift, as its exercise is the noblest preroga- tive of mankind. The religious life, to be of any value, must spring from the centre of a man's moral being, and absorb the whole of it. * Mine own with usury ; ' ' mine own ' includes the entirety of the loan. The religion which represents only a part of the man will die off, and perhaps corrupt the other part. The conclusion to which these considerations seem to point is that, in the case of these moral questions, the importance of which can be immediately seen and generally grasped, the au- thority of the church is likely to be permanent ; but that in the sphere of speculation it will almost certainly be transitory. A strong and united organization may be necessary for moral as for political purposes ; but the wise course is to break it up Q 2 \ M i- \ 228 AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF when it has done the work for which it was called into existence. Even now a tendency may be observed towards a union in practical moral effort on the part of churches widely divided on points of doctrine. (3) T/ie authority of society or 0/ public opinion. In modern Europe this is, or is tending to be, stronger than that of law and of the religious bodies. Society, on the whole, supports the open force which is the arm of the law, and adds to it a more formidable power, that of public opinion. Public opinion is dominant from end to end of human life, from the region of mere fashion to that of moral action, and even of intellectual belief Its force can hardly be exaggerated. Say of an action, ' Cela ne se fait pas ' {' we do not do that '), and it is doomed. This tremendous engine will become stronger as social conditions are more equalized, and what is called the democratic type of government develops itself Let us inquire where the authority of public opinion is permanent, and where it is not, or should not be. In the whole sphere of feeling, and of action which depends upon feeling, it is nearly irresistible ; I had almost said abso- lutely irresistible, but for the fact that great men have at all times been found who could dare to stand up and face it. If public feeling allow it, you can put a man to lingering tor- ture or a painful death. If public feeling forbid this, the man will probably be rescued by the mob, or vengeance will be taken upon his judges and executioners. In our own days we have seen that boycotting and its cruel sanctions may com- mand, or seems to command, the respectful admiration of literary men. The vox populi is at the same time the present dread of the saint and the philosopher, and their hope for the future. If they dare, in the interest of moral and rational progress, to defy it, they become heroes and martyrs ; but in the hour of their martyrdom, they are sustained by the knowledge that at some distant day the power which now seems to be their con- queror will bow before their prophetic insight. CONDUCT AND INTELLECT. 229 Public opinion is then the strongest available force which can be invoked in the cause of humanity, and of all the graces, charities, and sanctities of life. It is permanently powerful when enlisted on the moral side; but only then. Its weak- ness lies in the fact that it represents not only the deep moral feelings of the community, but its superficial notions. Its dictates are nearly as imperative in the one sphere as in the other. It crushes the weak ; it worships success, strength, and riches, the symbol of strength ; its golden calves are con- spicuous in every market-place. It affects to set up its laws in the higher regions of speculation, with the result that the great pioneers of progress are generally its enemies. It at- tempts to make every question a social question ; to render its notions fashionable, to get them represented in high places, and adopted by the powerful. It says to the philosopher, * Think as we do ; ' to the artist, * Give up your high aspira- tions, and paint or sing as we like.' (4) There is, however, a power, which in the long run proves itself stronger even than that of public opinion, and which public opinion is constantly, though in vain, en- deavouring to crush— that of great men, the leaders of moral feeling and intellectual activity. It is curious to observe what concessions it is at all times tacitly making to their direction. The history of religious opinion in England during the last thirty years affords some striking examples. English society as a whole professes to be Christian in the sense of orthodox Protestantism, but it does not like the alteration of any of its formulae. The influence of many leading moralists and re- ligious teachers has, however, done much during the last cen- tury to create a hatred of cruelty ; and accordingly many religious persons dislike the damnatory clauses of the Atha- nasian Creed. If they do not openly revolt against them they say to themselves that the framers of those clauses, whatever they said, could not have meant it. Leading men of science, again, have succeeded in making public opinion uneasy on the subject of miracles, or at least unwilling to think about I If 230 AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF I. I III them. Habits of intellectual compromise have thus grown up with regard to this question, which are probably spreading, and occasionally find expression in remarkable theories ; such, for instance, as that the Almighty has throughout history taught mankind by 'illusions,' and that while particular events, which two thousand years ago were regarded as mi- raculous, may really have occurred, they need not be regarded as miraculous any longer. It seems at first impossible to indicate any element of per- manence in the influence of great men. And yet no fact in ever)'-day life is commoner than devotion to some leader, than hero-worship of some kind or other. Great or leading men are always distinguished by general power and insight, by a force which in the mind seems analo- gous to physical force in the body, a force which imposes itself at once, the faculty of command. This superiority may be manifested in an exceptional group of facts, or in an ex- ceptional insight into human action, the human heart, and human motives ; or in an exceptional tenderness and power of sympathy ; or in all these combined. Difficult as the subject is, it seems possible to distinguish a permanent and a transitory element in the influence or au- thority of great men. The influence of a great man is permanent in direct pro- portion to the extent of its beneficence ; or, in other words, it is the more or less lasting according as it tends more or less to improve and consolidate society. Frederick II made Prussia a nation and a power in Europe. Napoleon Bona- parte, if we may believe M. Taine and others, founded the modern French polity; modern Italy owes its existence to Cavour and Garibaldi. The private weaknesses or vices of these men are forgotten in the memory of their public services. The names of great scientific men are remembered in virtue of the permanent effect produced by their discoveries upon the life of mankind. The foibles and littlenesses of Voltaire we pass over, remembering his great services to the causes of mercy and truth. CONDUCT AND INTELLECT. 231 It may safely be said that, however unjust posterity may be (and unjust it very often is) to the memory of good men, the name of no great man will live as a centre of authority whose efforts have been anti-social, or in so far as they have been anti-social. It is not merely personal ascendency, or strong passions, or intellectual power which has assured the great men their permanent position. Their influence depends on the intensity of their unselfish eff"ort, the greatness of their social achievement, the width of the social interests which their effort and achievement embraces. Hence it happens, as a rule, that intellectual greatness alone, even where it is not crippled by moral defects, obtains tardier recognition than the greatness of the statesman or the saint. The progress of knowledge, and intellectual advance in general, seems at first sight to be the least moral of all great tendencies, and hence the jealousy of them so often shown by society at large. But it should be remembered that every new piece of knowledge gained, whether positive or negative, marks the starting-point of a new duty. ' This is true ; there- fore this must be believed, or this must be done : this is false ; therefore it must be disbelieved or avoided.' In no case can the savant or scholar escape the moral relation. Sooner or later it becomes his duty to proclaim the truth that is in him, and no one can exaggerate the danger which he may have to incur, or the height of moral effort which may be implied in encountering it. The martyr's death may be necessary, but it is the birth-throe of a new life for the community, who give him his reward in their acknowledgment that it is for them and for their higher humanity that he dares and suffers. Indeed, in the constitution of authority the services of great men are by far the most important element. We are apt to think of great things as done by the consent of the masses; and no doubt the momentum of this consent is of enormous weight. But there is seldom any permanent unanimity among men without a leader to embody and emphasize their aspira- tions. Seldom, too, does it happen that these aspirations are h. 'I ! I ill III* ill \i 232 AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF not first anticipated and expressed by a great man. The most fatal error which any community can commit is to crush its men of genius. It is in their insight and anticipations that the future of society lies in the germ. The position and authority of a great man is the absolute reverse of that which belongs to law and to general opinion. The man goes forward, and represents the future ; law, and to a great extent social opinion, represent the past. The man is in peril ; law and society are, or think themselves, safe. The man seems to die and to be forgotten, but lives ; law and social opinion seem to be alive, though they may be dead. As I said at the beginning of this article, four kinds of existing authority may for the sake of convenience be distin- guished, but they are, in fact, organically connected. I have tried to argue that every kind of authority, where permanent, rests on a moral or a social basis, and that where it rests on any other foundation, it sooner or later crumbles away. It is not necessary in this place to attempt a complete definition of a moral act, or to inquire what is the origin of moral ideas. One may fairly appeal to the acknowledged fact that mankind tends to recognize certain acts, or conditions, as absolutely desirable, and certain others as absolutely intolerable. The real aim of society, the goal of progress where progress is de- sired, is the development of the moral sense as the safeguard of humanity. It is not material prosperity, nor even freedom from pain. A particular movement in the history of mankind may appear to have material prosperity, or freedom from pain, as its object ; but no one would admit that these are the abso- lute object of the general movement of human feeling. What men aim at in reality is not a merely negative freedom from restraint or from trouble, but the constitution of freedom for spontaneous moral action, or (in other words) for healthy social action. Where, then, at any given time, is the seat of authority in conduct and intellect to be found ? For each individual the absolute guide can, in the long run, CONDUCT AND INTELLECT. 233 be no other than his own conscience. By conscience I mean moral feeling. The individual conscience generally, to a great extent, reflects the common conscience of society; but it is, of course, equally true that every individual has a peculiar conscience of his own, that moral feeling does not exist in every one to the same extent, and that, consequently, there is never a time when a conflict is not going on, both between good men individually, and between different bodies of men in the same society. It may be urged, on the other hand, that the conflict between one good man and another is due not to the better, but to the worse, part in each. In every man there is a dead and a living part, so to speak, of the moral self. The conflict between good men is a conflict of the worser elements in their being. Again, the conflict between great men— saints or philosophers —and society is due to the fact that the conscience of the saint or philosopher is far more alive than that of the society in which he lives, and is therefore in advance of it. The conflict between different bodies in the same society may be, and often is, in great measure a conflict of material interests, in which case it does not concern our inquiry. If it is anything better, the same may be said of it as of the conflicts between good men, that it is due to imper- fect moral apprehension on one side or on both. When the individual conscience is in doubt, recourse is generally had to some external authority. This ought to be the recorded moral experience of the past, as summed up by the great moral pioneers of all ages and countries. It should be looked for, not in the laws set up by any one body of men, but, so far as possible, in the actual moral tradition and prac- tice of mankind, interpreted according to the circumstances of the inquirer. In the sphere of intellect, on the other hand, authority is generally to be looked for in the utterances of the living leaders of intellectual life ; I say the living leaders, because the conclusions and discoveries of the past are generally embodied in record and practice, and the demand for fresh light can only ■I 4_ 4 I 234 AUTHORITY IN THE SPHERE OF CONDUCT, ETC. be met by the men who are actually engaged in the intellectual labours of the age. New intellectual results are more readily accepted than new moral results, because a change in thought may easily take place without any serious social displacement, while a change in conduct, if hastily adopted, cannot possibly do so. And, in any case, the final moral consummation can only be realized by a series of conflicts, perhaps deadly and tragical. But these conflicts are, after all, healthy and natural, for the odium morale, like the odiuf?i theo/ogicum, is only an evidence of the seriousness with which the combatants realize their object. ill ^'*''"^=^— -*■■ XL THE RELATIONS BETWEEN NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURES When asked to lecture for your Society, I felt, for a short time, a difficulty in hitting upon a topic which, while in itself interesting and important, should at the same time admit of being handled with any profit in an hour's address. Many of you may perhaps have smiled when you saw so vast a subject put down on your programme as that which I eventually selected ; and, if so, I must feel that the smile was justified. Yet, even in so short a time, I hope that I may be able, not, of course, to exhaust the subject, or even to do it moderate justice, but to indicate one or two points of view from which it may be considered in its most general bearings. I do not propose to touch on any question of detail such as the title of this lecture might seem naturally to suggest— such as, for instance, how far it is possible for one man to combine the studies of natural science and literature, or how far literary style and handling is necessary to the proper exposition of scientific problems, or whether the influence of natural science upon literature, either in regard to the views of life which it has suggested, or in regard to literary style \} A lecture delivered before the Newcastle Sunday Society in December, 1886, and since published by Mr. Walter Scott (London, n. d.) with other similar lectures by Mr. Romanes, Professor Moseley, and others.] \ II I 236 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN li I Hi' 1! and execution, is, on the whole, a healthy one ; or whether methods borrowed from natural science can be applied to the historical sciences. I wish rather to speak of natural science and literature as two great branches of national culture and intellectual progress, and to ask what, in this point of view, is the real relation between them. Are they two unconnected and in reality hostile departments of knowledge, one of which is destined, sooner or later, to extinguish the other, or are they both the offspring of the same moral and mental impulse, and therefore connected by the strongest ties of kinship and natural alliance ? Some thirty years ago it was the quarrel between natural science and religion— that is, between natural science and a particular form of religion— which occupied public attention in this country. Much of the dust raised by that controversy has now been laid. But we now find ourselves involved in another, and perhaps a more serious, misunderstanding. We are all familiar with the opposition between natural science and literature which has in late years made itself felt in the field of education. It was, I think, some twenty or twenty-five years ago when the general public in England began to demand that something at least of natural science should be taught in the high English schools. I say the general public, for Mr. Herbert Spencer had, I think, for- mulated the extreme demands of natural science some time before. He went as far as to claim that natural science and not literature should form the basis of general education. I do not know how far Mr. Spencer's views are now shared by the educational public of this country ; whether there is a really considerable number of thinking persons who would seriously wish, if not to exclude literature altogether from our higher education, at least to subordinate it to natural science. But I am not wrong in saying that such a view is by no means extinct either in England or on the Continent, and that it has, and will long continue to have, representatives whose character and abilities claim every consideration for their theories. I NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURE. 22,1 There is no doubt that we have to look forward to a dispute, more or less, between natural science and literature in the field of education. The question has, in this country at least, only entered upon its first stage. Literature, the study of which is based mainly upon the study of the Greek and Latin classics, still holds the educational field. I, of course, should be the last person to complain of the well-established tradition which founds literary study upon the mastery of the Greek and Latin classics. They lie at the foundation^ of all sub- sequent literature, and the nation that ignores them altogether does so at its peril. But the nation that altogether ignores the educational claims of natural science also does so at its peril. No one can say that those claims have been adequately satisfied, or anything like it. Sooner or later, supposing peace and prosperity to be for a long time the lot of this country, we shall, after, maybe, much opposition, see a number of well- organized scientific schools spring up in England ; schools in which mathematics and some branch of physical science will form the staple of the training, while literature will be represented by its modern, not its ancient, branches. Only in this way, so far as I can judge, can the problem be solved. The two systems cannot be combined ;— to give a boy, m the years between ten and eighteen, such a general education as shall ground him thoroughly in the elements both of literature and of natural science seems to me an impossibility. This would involve a strain on the growing organization of youth which it would not be able to bear, and which, in the majority of instances (I am not speaking of the exceptionally strong intellects \ would lead to enfeeblement in manhood. We should not be anxious to communicate to a growing boy everything that is worth knowing. Education, in those eight critical years, will always, in spite of the dreams of theorists, remain in great part a gymnastic exercise for the muscles of the mind ; a general strengthening of the frame for the future need of life. So far as it attempts to exceed this its province, so far as it aims at becoming, not a method of training for ■""—•-'^-•■--'-Tfe^riigi } t 238 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN the future, but a device for cramming as much knowledge as possible into the head in a given period, it will defeat its own object, will weaken instead of strengthening, and will break down in lamentable failure. It may well seem presumptuous in me to be speaking at all on the position and claims of natural science. On this subject I have indeed no claim to say anything at first hand. My life has been entirely devoted, and will, so far as I know, continue to be devoted, to one branch of ancient literature.' But I cannot, nor can any one who keeps his eyes open, fail to notice the swiftness with which natural science has made its ad\-ances in late years, and the growing probability, I might say the certaint>\ that it will continue to advance, and will end by profoundly modifying the character and relations of human society. Xo one who has any knowledge of any branch of literature, still less any one who has a real interest in literature as a whole, can refuse his sympathy to any important movement in the great march of progressive civiliza- tion. Xay, it is the duty of all such persons to keep their eyes upon ever>-thing of importance which appears to further this progress. I may say for myself, as a student of Latin lirerature, that I look forward with eagerness to the dav when scientific education shall be constituted on some such basis as that which I have attempted to indicate, or, at least, on some satisfactory- basis. But this opposition between natural science and literature in the field of education, does it not, you will say, point to something more serious than a mere dispute between two sets of educationists? .\re there not wider interests involved? I: there not at present in the minds of many eminent literary- men a real dislike of natural science, of its methods, of the constant inroads which it seems to be making daily upon the various pro\inces of human life, of the points of \iew which it seems to be continually forcing upon us ? On the other hand, is there not, on the part of scientific men, a distrust and suspicion of literature, its methods, and the habits of mind NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURE. 239 which are engendered by the study of it ? I might answer that such an opposition does not seem to be inherent in the nature of the case ; that literar)- men, for one thing, have not always been antagonistic to science. The fact is ver)' much the reverse. Some of the greatest men who have adorned the world of literature by their works, or encouraged men of letters by their sympathy, have found room for the strongest interest in the progress of science. I need only mention Voltaire, Frederick the Second of Prussia, and the great poet Goethe. These men, however, belong to the end of the eighteenth and the beginning of the nineteenth centur}-, a time when human progress was viewed as a whole ; when the modem division, a false and baneful one, I think, but now so popular, between the intellect and the emotions was unknown ; when no leading writer would have ventured to hint that what was true for the reason was false for the emotions, or what was true for the emotions was false for the reason. This peculiar attitude, not often, it is true, distinctly avowed, but still ver\* prevalent among us, is partly due, no doubt, to that general slackening of the thinking power which any one, who takes the trouble to observe, may note as a characteristic of this generation. But it has also, to a certain extent, been encouraged by the position taken up by some of our greatest literary men. I suppose that the greatest name among English men of letters during the last fift\- years has been that of Thomas Carlyle. Who else has been gifted with such insight into the human heart, such depth of passion, such s\Tnpathy, such splendour of imagi- nation, such sincerity*, such burning penetration, such a power of seizing and presenting facts ? Vet Carlyle was, if not hostile, at least indifferent to science. If we mav believe Mr. Froude, he regarded the great h\-pothesis of Darwin with something like contempt And Carlyle, be it remembered, was a disciple of Goethe. But the greatest lesson which Goethe has to teach, the lesson of patience, Carlyle, it would seem, i !'t 240 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN never learned. Ohne Hast, ohne i?^j/— without hasting, without resting— should be the motto of all who presume to put their hand to the highest moral and intellectual work. Carlyle was too much in a hurry. His personal prejudices and caprices were too strong to allow of his forming temperate views of the great problems of human life. He lacked the power, which, if not the whole, is certainly a large part of greatness of waiting for the light, of remembering that Nature does not ask what man likes. And if this impatience was the failing of Carlyle, what must be said of Ruskin ? On the part of this tender and beautiful writer, whose courageous protest against greed and all sorts of moral uncomeliness has brought strength to so many souls, and whose exquisite style is the delight of so many readers, we find the most violent aversion to physical science. The position is plainly a false one. We seem to be engaged in an irritating family quarrel. Two great forces which should be co-operating for the benefit of the human race are found to be in mutual opposition. On which side does the fault lie ? or is there fault on both sides ? One knows, at any rate, what each party thinks of the other. The scientific man thinks the literary man a being devoid of the power of observation, whose interest is centred, if not in an unreal, at least in a partial view of things, in a study not of facts but of words and forms, or at the best of unfruitful abstractions. His mind is in the past, not in the present ; he is the victim of memory and tradition and imagination and sympathy, not the pioneer of steady advance. The man of letters on his side complains, with the hero of Tennyson's ^faud, that 'The man of science himself is fonder of glon-, and vain, An eye well practised in Nature, a spirit bounded and poor.' He thinks him shallow, without interest for the past, apt to encourage, if not to hold, low views of life. There is a literar)- fanaticism as well as a scientific fanaticism. One would make natural science the sole engine of human progress ; the other would almost limit the intellectual life to the contemplation NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURE. 241 of the past, and the development of the imaginative faculty. But I am not concerned this evening with the extreme opinions of individuals, but with the facts of the case. And I would ask whether natural science and literature are naturally enemies, or whether they are not rather helpmates necessary to each other in the work of the world. Perhaps it will be easier to answer this question if we first attempt to define what are the respective spheres of natural science and literature. It is hardly necessary to insist that with regard to all the outward mechanism of life our debt to scientific investigation is incalculable. There is no need to repeat what every one knows, that for the means of easy communication between city and city, nation and nation, and for the preservation of human life against disease and death, we are indebted to scientific research, and to scientific research alone. Social life has been transformed by it, and the course of history altered. Take only the case of new routes opened to commerce. What changes have been brought about by the opening of the Suez Canal ! What further changes may not be expected should the Panama Canal ever be completed ! The facilities of communication have done much, and are every day doing more, to substitute one form of civilization for many. Unless some great natural convulsion should destroy at a stroke the civilizations of Europe and America, the nations of the world can never again live in solitude. Thousands can now travel with ease, and every day, where one adventurous explorer hardly dared to penetrate in a generation. Consider, again, the region of medical science and art, and observe how the hand of the physician is already on the throat of disease. What a promise for the future is there ! Indeed, I have an enthusiastic scientific friend who believes that political power will one day gravitate to the medical profession, such power does he think they will acquire over the whole conditions of human life. VOL. II. R 11 242 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURE. 243 IP *!» i| But I will not weary you by repeating what you all know; for I am anxious to call your attention to another aspect of the question which is perhaps less obvious. It is this. Science has a moral function. It does more than merely ameliorate the physical condition of mankind. Its office is not limited to making communication easy and diminishing bodily suffering. The processes and the labour by which great discoveries are made involve in themselves a devotion at all times intense, and sometimes heroic, to the cause of truth and the good of mankind. Science, we should remember, has its heroes and its martyrs ; men who have forgotten themselves for the great object of serving their fellow-creatures. The mere fact that such immense demands on human courage and industry and patience are made by Nature upon those who would interrogate her secrets, is of the utmost moral importance. It renders infinitely more necessary than ever before the cultivation of the love of truth, and of the courage to utter it. These qualities are now seen to be as essential to the humblest scientific explorer as to the greatest philosopher. And the moral fibre of society in general is braced and strengthened by this necessity to an extent which it is impossible fully to estimate. This is the moral function, or at least the moral result, of active scientific research. But again, philosophy itself, the highest effort of the human reason ; what does it not owe to these investigations ? Some of the philosophic systems which have most deeply influenced Europe, which have framed men's thoughts, and brought into them harmony and order where chaos reigned before, have to a large extent been based upon physical science. It was the philosophy of Aristotle, in great part founded upon the investigation of natural phenomena, which dominated the theology of the Middle Ages ; it was the philosophy of Leibnitz, a man who left his mark on several sciences, that gave its form to theological speculation in the eighteenth century; it is the theory of Evolution, first hit upon by hypothesis, and more recently confirmed by extended observations, which now promises to recast our whole view of Nature and of human life. Such are the three great services of natural science to mankind, material, moral, and intellectual. If so much is to be conceded to natural science by mere on-lookers, what, it may be asked, is left to literature except to record the progress of knowledge ? M. Renan, perhaps the greatest man of letters now alive in Europe, has expressed more than a misgiving on this subject. The historical sciences, he says, are always being reconstructed. They admit of no advance and no certainty. Natural science, on the other hand, has an assured and certain progress ; it has the future in its hands. Must literature, then, throw up the cards? The answer to this question depends on the answer to another, What is literature ? Literature is not, as is sometimes supposed, a mere intellectual plaything, a recreation or means of enjoyment for an idle mind. I should, indeed, be inclined to go the length of saying that there ought to be no such thing as learned leisure or lettered ease, if by such terms is implied no more than a refined form of self-indulgence. Literary leisure, if it is to be worth anything, should be the devotion of the whole powers to a great branch of human advancement. For literature is the living record of the life of humanity. Can any pains spent upon the improvement and amplification of this record be adequate to such an object? We look fonvard to the future, and in the future, it is true, lies the realization of those hopes which hold men's heads erect, and make them bright and brave to face the problems of life. But if our life would gain depth and strength as well as brightness, it must rest on the memories of the past. Man is a being * of large discourse, looking before and after.' If it is natural to love parents, children, kinsmen, and friends, shall not our heart go out also to our fellows who have gone before us? Should we not welcome as the faces of our brothers the faces of all men in whose deeds and sufferings R 2 244 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN i!i I' 1 I'l the ever old, ever new story of human hfe has wrought itself out ? The theme of all history, fiction, and poetry is the same ; it is man and his story. The variations are the changes of time and surrounding. Just as in a great musical composition one conception is dominant, but set off and illustrated as it develops by a thousand subsidiary ideas which seem to grow out of, and again return to, the central thought ; so through all literature runs the story of humanity, so stern, so tragical, yet so tender, full of tears and smiles, of great achievement, and great events brought about by great achieve- ment ; the spiritual unity of the human soul discerned amid the confused detail of individual character, battered and shaped by the strokes of circumstance. Literature is (i) the record of facts, (2) the record of feeling and imagination, or (3) the record of thoughts. (i) The record of facts. This branch of literature includes history and all written work subsidiary to history. Of the serious parts of literature it is this last, the written work subsidiary to history, which is most plentifully represented in our generation. The same thirty or forty years which have seen such strides made in the natural sciences, have witnessed also a reawakening of the passion for knowledge throughout the whole intellectual world. In every department of know- ledge the scholar is busy. The language, the customs, the religion, the laws, the fables, the oldest writings of all peoples on the earth are now being submitted to a scrutiny such as they have never known before. The newly-born science of Anthropology demands the assistance of every form of literary research ; all is fish that comes to its net. Here, at any rate, is a direct link between natural science and literature. The spirit and its method of both forms of research is the same. Hypotheses, wild and rash, or probable and full of promise, may, nay must, be thrown out on all hands ; but in the long run the unerring touchstone of fact must be applied to them, and only that will survive which endures the application. NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURE. 245 Not, of course, that research is the only form of historical literature. History is much more than a mere collection of facts ; it is the record of facts in their organic connexion. The historian is not only a lover of truth, not only a chronicler of events. These, indeed, he must be at his peril, but how much more ! Insight into human nature— and this implies the rarest knowledge and finest sympathy of which man is capable ; the power of tracing the delicate relation between deed and motive, and the pressure of action upon circumstance and circumstance upon action ; knowledge of the world, in short, in the highest sense of that expression ; beyond all this, the grasp of mind which shall seize and unfold the hidden laws of the great movements in the opinions and desires of nations, the greatness of imagination to conceive, and the readiness of hand to present, the whole in a luminous picture. From this point of view the task of the historian may well seem to demand powers which, perhaps, have never been, and never will be, united in one individual. If I am not much mistaken, there is required in a great historian something of the same combination of powers as in a great student of Nature- patience in collecting facts, and the power of tracing rela- tions between them. The sympathetic touch, the power of imaginative presentment, is not required— at least, not so imperatively required— in the physicist ; although imagination is necessary to form a great hypothesis. Before the theory is proved it must have been conceived as possible. But, it may be asked, great as are the powers requisite to form a historian, will not large masses of history soon have found their final chronicler and be laid on the shelf, for men never to return to them ? Is not Renan right in saying that the historical sciences are always being reconstructed, that they never advance ? Yes, they are always being reconstructed, but they do advance. Of some portions of history it may perhaps be true that there is little to be added to our know- ledge of them, though even this assertion would be hazardous when every year brings fresh discoveries in detail to throw- light even on those periods which we think we know best. I \ m 246 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN But with regard to what I may perhaps call the wider relations of history, the bearings of one group of historical facts upon another, the connexion of the history of one nation with that of another, the progress of knowledge is constantly making momentous changes, and will continue to do so. There is hardly any line of investigation in any branch of physical science which may not, sooner or later, end by affecting, in some degree, our views of history ; hardly any historical fact which may not ultimately have its use in assisting scientific investigation, or in confirming its results. (2) Another great branch of letters is formed by what I may call the literature of imagination. In this I would include poetry, and all kinds of prose fiction. Poetry is not bound, of course, to truth of fact. A poet may invent the story on which he founds his lyric, or his epic, or his drama ; or he may take an existing story, and alter or modify its details at pleasure. But when this is said, the sphere of the poet's liberty is defined. He is not free to describe human feeling and action as other than what, accord- ing to the laws of human nature, they must be. He is not free to make characters inconsistent with themselves. He is not free to violate the truth of Nature in any of her manifesta- tions. This, too, must be added, that the wider the sphere of his sympathies, and the deeper their roots, the greater, the truer, and the more representative of its age will his poetr>' be. There are certain works which the world has agreed to call classical. These are the writings whose fame is absolutely assured so long as civilization exists; the writings which, whatever else is read, must always be read so long as there are people who care to read at all. Let us glance at some of these, and ask what is the secret of their great position. The elements which may always be discerned in such productions are grandeur of conception, width of view, force of passion and imagination, and industrious elaboration of form. The Homeric poems are a mirror of the ancient life which they \ NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURE. 247 describe, in all its aspects. Virgil's Aeneid is an imaginative presentment of the Roman world at the moment of its tran- sition from a republican to an imperial constitution. In the Divine Comedy of Dante all the highest culture and thought of the Middle Ages is summed up ; the modern world, with its infinity of individual feeling, its wide and lofty aspirations, its sensitiveness to every wave of emotion, its industrious working after real knowledge, finds its prophet in Goethe. All these writers, besides being representatives of the mental attitude of a whole age, show the power of their characters, by leaving their stamp indelibly on the language in which they wrote. But what separates poetry from prose fiction ? First, a greater sensitiveness and depth of feeling, which is reflected in the poet's language and in the form of his com- position. It is the duty of a prose writer to write well ; it is the duty of a poet to write perfectly. Let him give all his time and pains to his language, and he will hardly have given enough Poetical diction and metre, rhythm, and even rhyme and alliteration, are mere expressions of a hidden sympathy between sound and emotion, the laws of which we have not yet ascertained. That strong feeling will express itself in rhythmic as rhyming words is a law of nature. When was ther^ ever an exciting election contest without its rhymes and its epigrams? Ascend the scale of emotion from its lowest to its highest point, and you arrive at last at the marvellous and subtle music of a Milton, which seems to echo the voices not only of Nature, but of long generations of prophets and poets in its manifold and closely-wrought harmonies. The novelist has a field for imagination wider than that which is open to the poet, though in his wider field he may be content with humbler flights. He is nearer to the actual facts of life Indeed, the novelist and historian may to a certain extent claim the same ground. One thing, if no other, they must have in common, the knowledge and love of mankind, and the perception of the laws which regulate the play of human conduct. The greatest novelists are those who, to a deep and ' 248 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN delicate sympathy with the phases of human action and passion have added a comprehensive view of history; an appreciation of its greatness. Such writers are Fielding in the last centur>', Balzac and Thackeray in our own. These great novelists are in full contact with history and politics ; they have an eye for great situations wherever they are to be found. At the same time they move on the whole in the sphere of simple ideas and feelings ; ideas and feelings which, never- theless, are those out of which is born all that is sublime and all that is degraded in life. Balzac has such a vivid sense of the power of those natural intuitions, that in his imagination they flame up to a height unfamiliar to our soberer English perceptions. In Fielding and Thackeray, under the veil of a simple yet eminently beautiful style, and a rigidly accurate and unambitious style of drawing, you feel the seriousness and meaning of human life. You see the narrow and difficult path of goodness climbing to the sun-lit heights, and the bottomless abyss of destruction on either hand. Prediction is always dangerous ; but I cannot help believing that the works of these three writers, owing to their combination of depth of feeling with comprehensiveness of view, will last as long as literature i'tself. Between poetry and novels on the one hand, and physical science on the other, there is, I need not say, no more relation than the general unity of spirit which links all great work together ; a unity of spirit based partly on the desire to see and to record things as they are, partly on the exciting influence which the mere contemplation of facts in their harmonious unity has on the imagination. The mind is always restless and progressive. Give it a set of facts, the laws of which are completely ascertained, enable it even to trace all facts whatever to their ultimate origin, and to analyse the network of laws which connect them, still it will not be satisfied. The imagination and the love of beauty are awakened in the same proportion as the understanding is mformed ; the whole being is absorbed in a rapture which transcends the limits of pleasure and pain. \ NATURAL SaENCE AND LITERATURE. 249 (3) The highest form of literature is philosophy, which is the summing up of the whole moral and intellectual eflbrt of the age with which it deals. The philosopher aims at penetrating to the laws or final principles, not of any one set of phenomena, but of all phenomena. As the centuries roll on, and knowledge is increased, old systems of philosophy are thrown off" and new ones formed. But a great philosophic system has always the same characteristics. It seeks to elicit their meaning out of all known facts ; to bring facts under law, and to bring many laws under one law. For the sake of convenience I have called philosophy a branch of literature. It is rather science and literature in their ultimate unity. Let us now return a little upon our path, and having stated, very barely and meagrely, what are the respective spheres of literature and natural science, let us ask again whether there is any natural antagonism between them. The moral and intellectual impulse from which both literature and natural science have sprung is one and the same. It is no more and no less than the forward movement of the human spirit. Natural science is not, in spite of appearances, often mis- understood, materialistic. Concerned with matter it is, but science is mind concerned with matter, mind working for its own satisfaction. On the other hand, literature is not all fancy, nor its pursuit all enjoyment. Even in its most imagi- native phases, as I have tried to show, it would starve without a basis of fact ; and, however little it may be concerned with fact, it demands the whole mental and moral powers of its followers, as the condition of rewarding them and the world. Let men of letters and men of science forget themselves and think only of their work, how to do it, if possible, to perfection, and all disagreement will vanish. If there is a quarrel between literature and natural science, it is because the representatives of one side or the other have formed an inadequate idea of their duty. I am bound to say that for some time past, at least in England, there has been more of manly eff'ort, more of patient self-renunciation, among the students of natural ■■ •fp'.f^ ,'. t'i>Jk,^ 250 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN \ science than among the students of literature. I am not speaking of a past generation, of such men as John Stuart Mill or Herbert Spencer. But in the present generation it seems to me that a kind of paralysis has seized upon the thinking power which should produce good literature in this country. One cannot but notice, side by side with a restless desire to produce, a curious impatience of the labour of learning, of thinking, and even of writing well. Emotion, sentiment, a newly awakened interest in a subject, are taken as ample justification for writing about it. We have swarms of novels, but no great novelist ; much poetry, but very little which combines the two essential requisites of perfection in form with singleness of aim, and indirect interest in modern problems. What are the causes of this phenomenon I do not venture to say. But it is well to remember that the same cause has in times past virtually undermined the foundations of good literature, and that it may do so again. We are apt to assume, from the experience of the last three hundred years, that a supply of good literature will never be wanting. But there have been very long periods of history when the creative power seemed to have become extinct. At the beginning of the second century a.d. the spirit of the ancient Greek and Latin literature, the determination to think and to know, to live in the light of day, to write adequately to one's best ideas, sickened and died. A long period of barrenness followed, which lasted more than a thousand years. During that time many great men were born, but very few great books. If anything is to save literature at the present time, it is the spirit which inspires the best scientific work. Even the most imaginative work, even lyric poetr>' itself, suffers when put out of a healthy relation to fact. Imagination and fancy, without the courageous determination to face things as they are, to be straight and right with the world as it is, are like plants severed from their roots. Their mother earth gives them life no longer. NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURE. 251 To combat the encroachment of emotion and sentiment upon the domain of reason (and I think there is a real danger now of such encroachment) a powerful intellectual movement is required, such as shall be adequate to draw forth the whole power of those leading spirits who ought to aim at asserting their influence in shaping the course of future events. Such a movement was wanting in the ancient world, but may be kept alive in the modern world by the spirit of scientific investigation. Again and again it must be urged that it is the love of truth, the determination to penetrate to things as they are, which is the spring and principle of moral life. The devotion to this great end purifies and elevates every part of our existence, clothing it in the austere grace of virtue. And it is this devotion which in honest scientific investigations is, so to speak, organized and concentrated. There is a unity in all moral and intellectual effort, which is felt at once by those seriously concerned in furthering such effort, whether the sphere of their studies be the same or not. It is in the present age more than ever important that all should join hands who have the great cause at heart ; who care that men should be led in the steep and narrow path of advance ; for follow they always will, in the long run, those who will call * Forward' to them in such a cause. In the present age, I say, it is most important, for literature and science are no longer now, as they once were, the property of a comparatively small and privileged class. The tendency -the inexorable tendency— of things is towards destruction of privilege and diffusion of knowledge. Yet even in the most democratic state of society and politics there must be leaders ; nay, let us hope, and do all we can to realize the hope, that a democratic society may choose its leaders better than an aristocratic society. It is sometimes hinted that a democracy is jealous of superior merit. I hope not ; I shall not believe this until I see it. The danger to which democracy is liable seems to me to be not that it will naturally dislike superior merit— that I believe to be a shallow and ill-tempered calumny— but that 252 THE RELATIONS BETWEEN NATURAL SCIENCE AND LITERATURE. 253 the demand made by the people upon their leaders' individual efforts may be too much for the healthy development of their leaders' powers. The peril to the intellect in a large popular community is that it should become relaxed in quality ; that reflection should take the place of thought, and sentiment of passion ; that men should write before they think, and think before they learn. Every one in any way marked out as capable of serving his fellows is now called upon to give them, and that visibly and audibly, a large part of his time. It is right that every one's heart should be with his fellow-men. But the interests of the nation will not be well served if its superior men are prevented from concentrating their powers upon the great task of elevating the level of existence. It is, on the contrary, in the highest interests of the nation that every motive should be set before its intellectual leaders which may inspire them to the love of intellectual toil, and that they should in the same proportion be discouraged from allowing anything to weaken or dissipate their intellectual force. Literature and natural science represent two of the most important factors in the higher life of a country. Neither can subsist in a healthy state without the other. In face of the gigantic growth of science there is a visible danger lest literary men should feel their interests overborne, and started into antagonism against an intellectual force which is, in reality, identical with that which has inspired the best work of their own predecessors. To English literature, with its memories of Shakespeare, Milton, Locke, Hume, Gibbon, Fielding, Byron, Macaulay, Carlyle, the voice of its greatest representative seems to say— * To thine own self be true, And it will follow as the night the day, Thou canst not then be false to any man.' Without the spirit that animates the best scientific work literature will become emasculate and ultimately die. Imagine, if such a thing be possible, a society in which the whole of the best mental power and effort should be given to physical science. I almost think that a new literature would evolve itself from the mere sense of confinement. The mind must, after all, work upon itself and express itself. But of this I am sure, that the human race cannot afford to drop its connexion with its own past, nor to renounce its powers of imagination and its love of beauty. It is for the production of these and such-like qualities, after all, that civilization exists. One sacred fire animates the frame of human history, bursting into flame and light in the great acts by which genius in discovery, or invention, or research, or imagination asserts itself. The extinction of this fire would be the destruction of humanity itself. BIBLIOGRAPHY -•-•- The following list is intended to contain ever>'thing which Mr. Nettleship wrote, with the exception of a few — I believe, a very few— anonymous pieces. I have compiled it in the hope that it may be of use to scholars : incidentally it will be found to illustrate the history' of Mr. Nettleship's studies, and his method of work by printing his material piecemeal. The dates are the years of publication : within each year the larger works and original con- tributions are given precedence of reviews. References are usually to volumes and pages. 1863. Quibusnam praecipue de causis exortum sit Bellum Civile Ameri- canum. Oratio Latina in theatro Sheldoniano habita die Junii 17, 1863. Oxonii, 8vo. [Chancellor's prize for Latin Essay.] 1869. The Mostellaria of Plautus. Journal of Philology, ii. 229-234. [A review of Ramsay's Mostellaria.] Review of Wagner's Terence. Academy, i. 55. Review of Ribbeck's Beitrage zur Lehre von den lateinischen Partikeln. lb. 87. 1870. Sertum Carthusianum . . cura G. B. Brown. Cantabrigiae, 8vo. [This contains five pieces of Latin and Greek verse written at the Charterhouse by Mr. Nettleship while a schoolboy.] Review of Ritschl's Neue Plautinische Excurse, i. Academy, i. 114. Review of Schweizer-Sidler's Elementar- und Formenlehre der lateinischen Sprache fur Schulen. lb. 168. Review of Ritschl's Opuscula, vol. ii. lb. 275. 256 BIBLIOGRAPHY. 'ateinischen Sp.che, i. (secld SioT Sl^ s"' '"°"""^ '^' I87I. meL'jTy JoLrctni^r- J'^ '""^'^^ °^ ^"«"' ""'' ^ Com- of the Aeneid LonH^T' '^ '"' '™""'°'"« ""^ "''=' ='" books tne Aeneid. London, 8vo : part of the Bibliotheca CI-,«,V.. [Conmgton published the first volume of hi, v ' ^p Georgics, in ,858 (second edition X? ^ \^' ^"°^"'' ^"'l Aeneid i-vi, in ,86 In th. ' '^^^''j'"'' ""^ '^""d volume, .0 assist him wiiht til tire\7::„rsf '^'r ^^'^'r"' Jt-xii. In the end ho ^.„, .u ^ ^ "'* "°*^' '° books Mr. Nettleship "o.e L! "tf the' "T" °" .'°'""' ^''-''' -<» ^ = edited the whole "1^1 r °" '""'''" " »"<^ ""' »"d subsequent eduLs oHlf ^LeTor ' '^"''' '" ''''■ ^"^ M. Nettleship: see under ..r.8; :Xr.;r.88T'^' "^ .h.dvo,u,feof^i^^^^^^^^^ Review of Corssen's AussorachT V^l^ ^'^ '"""''• "'• ^53- .ateinischen Sprache, it^:^:^:^::"-^^;^' '^-o"-. ^er Rev,e.,v of liiedennann-s Christliche Dogmatfk. ,b. 5,7, 53,. 187a. P. \'ergili Maronis Opera . with n r^ Conington. Vol ii seconH.H.v* ' ' . Commentary by John [This did not diff^^; rch frl^^I ^^"^ -^ ^^ettleship. The Satires of A. ^^ZZ^^^; 'T''' ^" ^^^^'^ mentary by J. Conin-ton ^ . ". u , Translation and Com- [SeconIeIi.in:r,:r:hi;d S- fonX f ''''''''■ ""-^' «-• Phnl^;. iv.t:':^,^ °^ •^°"-'' --'- ^-"'. P-su.. joumal of .ioist"?thrmrd\TLLt;iT'^^ Classical schools. Harrow 8vo pp ^^ '" "' '''""' '"""^ "^ i. S::;, r,? '^"'' "~ ^-> ^'-'- - suetomus. BIBLIOGRAPHY. t 257 Review of Schweizer-Sidler's Taciti Germania. lb. 1 55. Review of Wagner's Trinummus. lb. 298. Review of Merguet's Entwickelung der lateinischen Formcn- bildung. lb. 358. Review of Merguet's Ableitung der Verbalendungen aus Hilfsverben und die Entstehung der lateinischen -e Declination, lb. 358. Conington's Persius [reply to a review]. lb. 419. 1873. Review of Madvig's Adversaria, i. Academy, iv. 55. Review of Naumann's Melanges Philologiques. lb. 257. Review of Forbiger's Virgil (ed. 4), i. ii. lb. 357. 1874. P. Vergili Maronis Opera . . . with a Commentary by John Conington. Vol. iii, second edition, revised by Long and Nettleship. [This edition differs very slightly from the first.] The Satires t)f A. Persius Flaccus, with a Translation and Com- mentary by J. Conington . . . edited by H. Nettleship. Second edition, revised. On the word ^ovydiot. On vis (second person of volo), invitus, invitare. On Thucydides, i. 37. Vergiliana [Eel. iv. 5 ; Aen. ii. 615, in. 525, vi. 126,273.] Ovid, Fasti, ii. 676. Joumal of Philology, V. 18-27. Review of Pretor's Letters of Cicero to Atticus, i. Academy. V. 292. Brief review of Prichard and Bernard's Selected Letters of Cicero. lb. 292. Brief review of Prichard and Bernard's Selected Letters of Pliny lb. 293. Review of F. A. Paley's edition of Lycidas. lb. 425. Review of Jules Simon's la R^forme de I'enseignement sdcondaire. lb. 693. Review of Lothar Meyer's Zukunft der deutschen Hochschulen und ihrer Vorbildungsanstalten. lb. 693. Review of Matthew Arnold's Higher Schools and Universities in Germany. lb. 693. Review of Kennedy's Public School Latin Grammar. lb. vi. 486. VOL. II. s 258 BIBLIOGRAPHY. 1875. BIBLIOGRAPHY. 259 Suggestions Introductory to a Study of the Aeneid. Oxford 8vo pp^ VI. and 47. [Reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, pp. 97- Review of Roby's Latin Grammar from Plautus to Suetonius, ii. Academy, vni. 457. * Review of W. Morris' Aeneids of Vergil done into English Verse lb. 493. Review of J. S. Reid's Academica of Cicero. lb. 607. 1876. P. Vergili Maronis Opera . . . with a Commentary by John Conington. Vol. ii, containing the first six books of the Aeneid i hird edition [a reprint of the second]. Essays on the Endowment of Research, by various writers. London, 8vo. [To this Mr. Nettleship contributed an article on the present relations between classical research and classical education in England (pp. 241-26SI, which is reprinted in the present volume.! Duumviri, triumviri ; saeculum ; superstes, superstitio, super- stitiosus. Journal of Philology, vi. 97-99. Reviewof Ribbeck's Romische Tragodie im Zeitalter der Republik Academy, ix. 612. t- ^ "v. Notmbl '' ^'''' ^'" ''"^^"' ^'^^^'^'^^^"'^ ^^^^^-'-' 1877. Grandis ; laetus ; aura. Remarks on Passages in Varro, Cicero [pm M^urena 42], Vergil [Aen. ix. 731.] Journal of Philology, vii. Review of Ussing's Plautus, i. Academy, xi. 34. Review of Opuscula Philologica ad lo. Nic. Madvigium a discipulis missa. lb. 79. & . . . Review of Ellis' Commentary on Catullus. lb. 165 Review of Gustavus Fischer's Latin Grammar, together with a systematic treatment of Latin composition, and Elements of Latin R^aTerA" r:r" "'' ' ^''^""^^ ^^^^ '"^"^"^^ "^^^ 1878. The Roman Satura. Oxford, 8vo. pp. 20. [Reprinted above.] Catullus Fortnightly Review. May .S78. [Reprinted in Essays m Latin Literature, pp. 84-96.] \ Review of Rudolf Hirzel's Untersuchungen zu Cicero's philoso- phischen Schriften. Academy, xiii. 13. The Bodleian NLS. of Catullus [letters]. lb. 441, 465. Two Oxford MSS. of the Life of Vergil attributed to Donatus [a letter], lb. xiv. 13. 1879. Maurice Haupt. A public lecture delivered in the Hall of Corpus Christi College, Oxford, on May 24, 1879. [Reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, pp. 1-22.] Ancient Lives of Vergil, with an essay on the poems of Vergil in connexion with his life and times. Oxford, 8vo. pp. 70. Vergil [part of 'Classical Writers,' edited by J. R. Green]. London, Svo. pp. 106. Notes on the Aeneid. Journal of Philology viii. 50-61. On the pro Cluentio of Cicero. lb. 233-248. [Reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, pp. 67-83.] Adfectus and Adfictus. lb. 273-4. A HarJeian MS. of Servius [a letter]. Academy, xv". 11. Reviewof J. E. B. Mayor's Thirteen Satires of Juvenal, ii. (second edition). lb. 459. 1880. Notes on the Graeci Annales of Fabius Pictor. Journal of Philology, ix. 51. [Reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, p. 341.] Verrius Flaccus [first article]. American Journal of Philology, 1. 253-270. [Reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, pp. 201-221.] Review of Lewis and Short's Latin Dictionary. Academy, xvii. 199. 1881. P. Vergili Maronis Opera . . . with a Commentary by John Conington. Vol. i, fourth edition, revised, with corrected ortho- graphy and additional notes and essays. Verrius Flaccus [second article]. American Journal of Philology, a. 1-19. [Reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, pp. 222-247.] Notes on Placidus. lb. 342-4 Review of Wilkins' Cicero de Oratore, ii. .Academy, xx. 241. 1882. Sermons preached in the Chapel of Harrow School and else- where, by Thomas Henry Steel, with a prefatory memoir by H. Nettleship [pp. 63]. London, 8vo. s 2 26o BIBLIOGRAPHY. Thilo's Servius. Journal of Philoloj^^y, x. 153- 171. [Reprinted in ii-ssays in Latin Literature, pp. 322-340,] Dissignare. lb. 206-8. Lexicographical Notes. lb. xi. 99-115. Notes on the Glosses quoted in Hagcn's Gradus ad Criticen. lb. 1 16— o. The Earliest Italian Literature, considered with especial reference to the evidence afforded on the subject by the Latin language lb. 175-194. [Public lecture, June 18S2 ; reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, pp. 45-66.] Nonius Marcellus. American Journal of Philology, iii i-,6 170-192. [Reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, pp. 277-321 l' Notes in Latin Lexicography : carina ; Dossennus ; lacuar and Ifr'n J'Td.'T '"""""^ f'^'"- "• ^"' ''•• 3^2]. Transactions of the Oxford Philological Society, 1882-3, 3-4- Review of Anecdota Oxoniensia, Classical Series, i. 2. Nonius Marcellus: the Harleian MS. 2719, collated by J. H. Onions. Academy, xxii. 170. Review of Ellis' Ibis. Philologische Wochenschrift, ii. 560. 1883. P. Vergili Maronis Opera . . . with a Commentary by John Conington. Vol. iii. revised. ^ ^ The de Arte Poetica of Horace. Journal of Philology, xii. 43-61 [Reprinted in Essays in Latin Literature, pp. 16S-187.] Notes in Latin Lexicography. lb. 191-202. The Bucolic Caesura. American Journal of Philology, iv. 75-76 TheNoctesAtticaeofAulusGelhus. lb. 391-415 [Reprinted in £-ssays m Latin Literature, pp. 248-276.] Horatian Chronology. Transactions of the Oxford Philological Society, 1882-3, 23-26. ^ Vergil in 1881 and 1882. Transactions of the Cambridge Philo- logical Society, iii. 222-227. Review of T. E. Page's Horatii Carminum libri iv. Academy xxiv. 301. '^' Review of A. Palmer's Satires of Horace. lb. 884. P. Vergili Maronis Opera . . . with a Commentary by John Conington Vol. ii, fourth edition, revised, with corrected ortho- graphy and additional notes and essays. BIBLIOGRAPHY. 261 Biographisches Jahrbuch fur Alterthumskunde, begriindet von C. Bursian, vii. 47-52. Obituary Notice of Mark Pattison. Reply to a Review of Notes on Latin Lexicography [Journal of Philolog>', 1883, xii. 191] in Wolfflin's Archiv, i. 312. Wolfflin's Archiv, i. 461. Review of Hertz's Aulus Gellius, i. Academy, xxvi. 155. 1885. Lectures and Essays on Subjects connected with Latin Literature and Scholarship. Oxford, 8vo. pp. xii. and 381. Notes in Latin Lexicography. Journal of Philology, xiii. 67-80, 164-168; xiv. 29-34. Cicero's Opinion of Lucretius [ad Q. F. ii. 11]. lb. xiii. 85. Notes on a few of the Glosses quoted in Hagen's Gradus ad Criticen. lb. 168. lus Gentium, lb. 169-181. [Reprinted in Contributions to Latin Lexicography.] Notes on the Epinal Glossary. lb. xiv. 34-39. Review of Verrall's Studies in the Odes of Horace. Academy, xxvii. 47. Review of Mark Pattison's Memoirs. lb. 215. Review of E. A. Sonnenschein's Mostellaria. lb. 348. Review of Wilkins' Epistles of Horace. lb. xxviii. 258. 1886. Coniectanea [Varro ap. Non. 543 ; Cicero pro Plancio, 95 ; Lucretius, iv. 418 ; Livy, ii. 23. 8 ; Quintilian, i. 6. i, vi .1, x. i. 83 ; Marius Victorinus, pp. 9, 11 Keil ; Cledonius, p. 47 Keil ; Servius in Donatum, p. 444 Keil ; (Sergius) expl. ad Donatum, p. 532 Keil ; Salvian de Gubcrn. Dei, i. 47J. Journal of Philology, xv. 21-23. Notes in Latin Lexicography. lb. 24-27. Part of the Excerpta Charisii and the fragment de Idiomatibus Generum, printed in the fourth volume of Keil's Grammatici Latini. lb. 27-28. Notes on Vergil. lb. 29-34. The Historical Development of Classical Latin Prose. lb. 35-56. [Reprinted in the present volume.] Dierectus. lb. 186- 1S8. [See Contributions to Latin Lexico- graphy, p. 437.] 262 BIBLIOGRAPHY. cemt- A D ' Ih "-f " "^"'T^' ^"°"= '"^ ^-^--^ - the first centurjA.D. b. ,89-214. [Reprinted in the present volume 1 fiu Tiacco, 18, 20; Charisius, Servius • the St r.,ii«« vi.'.T^';- r ''""^' "°^^-^- ^--'- ;our;a,":r^;Hi,te; telt"e?Tult'f-^"'"™"'r'''"'"^'''''"''^'"''<''''^-""^-^«ntio, andem 7 ,.^"!? "' '°"^''*' '^ ^''''^''^>' °f Technical Terms o ancent Latm Grammar. On varieties of form representinr,„ o der s, f ,.„,,,,^ ^^.^^^^ _ BoXs Sus pecu]. Transactions of the Oxford Philological Socie;y, ,885 6,' Ib.° 6-;; "'"'"'' "' '"' '^'""<^''°" ^™^' [C°"-'="'-o ad Liviam]. uftc::Ls:xL'"r'^™^'^^-^^''^^''^^^^™'^'^'-^'^'''-^. ^^Review of Beck's de M. Valerio Probo Berj-tio Quaestiones Novae. 1887. Londo?8vo'"nn'""- '"'? '""' "-="'" ''™^«' ^^'"^ ^" introduction. The St!r 7;, '^r''."'' '^'- '^''° ^ ''^y "> 'he same. Dictionar>' of National BioLTraphv xii 17-17' m^ u rr , Conington. ^ '^Pn>, mi. 13-17. Biography of John The Relations between Natural Science and Literature A lecture dehvered before the Tyneside Sunday Lecture Society London 8vo [Reprinted m the present volume.] i^onaon.bNo. Recent Theories of the Satumian Verse FKeller H^v.tl t .ions of the Oxford Philological Societ^tm '.S;'^' '^"""■ o/^r'TZXt^"'' ''~''"' °" '^^ '-""-=-'- 59fZ".'"'"' """'' f'^"'^^^'"" '^-^■- 45]- Walfflin-s Archiv, iv. tait?"Srmri::.x:r™'"''""^^'""^""^'-^'--^ The University Extension Scheme [a short letter] lb ^-^ c BIBLIOGRAPHY, 263 Review of Boelte's de Artium Scriptoribus Latinis. lb. 278-279. Review of Raskins and Heitland's Lucan. lb. 293-296. Review of Reitzenstein's Verrianische Forschungen (Breslauer Philologische Abhandlungen, i. 4). lb. 307-308. Review of Gertz's L. Annaei Senecae Dialogorum libri xii. Academy, xxxi. 328. 1888. Life and Poems of Juvenal. Journal of Philology, xvi. 41-66. [Reprinted in the present volume.] Notes in Latin Lexicography. lb. 67-70. The Title of the Second Book of Nonius. lb. 70. Servius on Aeneid ix. 289. lb, 160. Adversaria [Cato Origines, ii. 27 Jordan ; Horace Odes, ii. 2. 5 ; Livy, ii. 21. 4, iii. 5. 14 ; Servius on Aen. x. 664, 705 ; Digest ii. 4. 20; Lucan, i. 314, iii. 558, vii. 139; Velius Longus, pp. 49» 52, 63 Keil; Sergius in Donatum, 520 Keil ; Verg. Aen. xii. 158]. lb. 189-192. Coniectanea [Gellius, xviii. 4. 11 ; Nonius, 328, 9 ; Servius on Eel. ii. 8, vi. 626, &.C.; Orientius, i. 433, ii. 215, 219-222 ; Placidus, 8. 11 Deuerling; Glossae Nominum, p. 25, Lowe; Prodromus, p. 217; Eberhard of Bethune, viii. 242 Wrobel]. lb. xvii. 1 1 7-119- The Epinal Glossary. lb. 120-124. Lucan, iii. 559-560. lb. 155-156- Laedere numen. lb. 157-158. Angustator. Wolfflin's Archiv, v. 106. Ambago, ambigio. lb. 222. Glossae Nominum (Lowe). Nonius, p. 127 Miiller [perficus]. lb. 414. Sportula [Martial, ix. 72 ; Pliny, Epist. ii. 14. 4 ; Juvenal, x. 70]- Classical Review, ii. 37. Review of Thilo and Hagen's Servius,iii.l,In Bucolicaet Georgica Commentarii. lb. ii. 82. Review of Fierville's Grammaire in^dite du xiii. si^cle. lb. 214-215. Review of Rawlins and Inge's Eton Latin Grammar for use in the higher forms, Kennedy's Revised Latin Primer, Postgate and Vince's New Latin Primer, and Kennedy's Shorter Latin Primer. lb. 279-283. 264 BIBLIOGRAPHY. 1889. BIBLIOGRAPHY. 265 Contributions to Latin Lexicography OxforH « Essays by the late Mark Pattison ~'^7PP-^^'V'and624. H. Nettieship. Oxford. 8vo. . Toll^'nies "'^' '"' ^"^"^^^ ^^ Ordium, exordium. lb. 433. The Sacrifice of EdumfiV^r. fl r- Herben. London Sv^Pp JlTT'^'"' ' ' ' '^"""^ ^^ ^"^^^n Review of Ellis- Commenu™ 'on Cat7 '"/'" '^'"''"•''P- Academy, xxxvi. 240 ^ ^"""""^ ('^-^ond edition). nofutl'SletraS™:'^ <^°-- «'-~ i.,^is.i:rai^X;'^'-^^^^ '"• '4- 'n the present volume.] ''""I"")- lb. 225-270. [Reprinted Vergil Georgic i. 263. lb. 328. Ver;;iius. TLLllRSn' '°'^^'' ''^'"•"- P'- -- des ^^ Bnef^Review of Noire.-; Lettres in.dites de .Michel Apos- Brief review of Goetz and Gundermann's Corpus Glossariorum Latinorum, iv. lb. 255. Review of De Ponor's Festus, pars i. lb. 412-413. 1891. A Dictionary of Classical Antiquities, Mythology, Religion, and Art. From the German of Dr. Oscar Seyfifert, revised and edited with additions by H. Nettieship and J. E. Sandys. London, 8vo. [Mr. Nettieship translated the articles from Astrology to Heraea and wrote additional notes on Latin literature.] Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities, by William Smith. Third edition by \V. Wayte and G. E. Marindin, 2 volumes. London, Svo. Vol. ii. p. 597. Article on Satura. Cognomen, cognomentum. Commentationes Wolfflinianae, 183-8. Notes in Latin Lexicography. Journal of Philology, xix. 102-108. Adversaria [Plautus Miles, 654 ; Rudens, 60, 468, 509, 533, 538, 566, 574, 663; Vergil, Aeneid v. 602; Tacitus Dialogus, 28, 31; J. E. B. Mayor's Latin Heptateuch]. lb. 109-112. Notes on the Vatican Glossary 3321 [Corpus Glossariorum iv]. lb. 1 13-128, 1^4-192, 290-295. Horace de Arte Poetica [90, 172]. lb. 296. Review of Ellis' Noctes Manilianae. Academy, xl. 97. Review of Fisch's Lateinische Nomina Personalia auf -o, -onis. Classical Review, v. 61-62. Review of Stowasser's Dunkle VVorter. lb. 263-264. Review of Hessel's Eighth-Century Latin-Anglosaxon Glossary, preserved in the Library of Corpus Christi College, Cambridge, lb. 382-384. Brief Review of Hild's Juvenalis Satira Septima. lb. 429. Review of Forster's de Apulei quae fertur Physiognomia recen- senda et emendanda. lb. Brief Review of Georges' Lexicon der lateinischen Wortformen. lb. 431. Review of Keil's Catonis de Agricultura liber, Varronis Rerum Rusticarum libri tres, ii. 2 ; Commentarius in Varronis Rerum Rusti- carum libros tres. lb. 474-475. 1892. Isaac Casaubon, by Mark Pattison. Oxford, 8vo. Second edition [edited by H. Nettieship]. tvi 266 BIBLIOGRAPHY. volume.] ^ ^' ^ ^^'- t^eprinted in the present SyZ.i:^. ''"'^^" ^'"-"'^ 33... Journal of Philology, xx. Notes in Latin Lexicography. lb. ,7s-,8,. Ton,tral,s m Lucretius ii. ,,05. lb. ,8, ArchtTsTs"""'"^ f^^"" ^P- ^'''"- ■• ^7 M«ner]. Waifflin, ^^^ Sr^Ttursreair^i ^" "^-^^'^ vi.62-63. ^^'^"^- <^Jassical Review, ^^Review of Stowasser's Zweite Reihe dunkler Warter. lb. ,67- Brief Review of van VVageningen's Persiana lb Brief Review of Nordon'^ In \' • o vationes selectae. lb 226 ^ "'"'■""'' ^"^"^^^ Menippeas Obser- Review of Keller's Lateinische \^nlL-co. , • lb. 408-410. ^^e^n'sche \ oiksetymolog.e und Verwandtes. Keview of Bonnet's le I afin Ac (- - ■ Brief Review of Lec^r s T^ntl , ^^""A'' ^°"^" "'' "5 •-453- Brief Review of SacksTrrf ^ "''""'• '"• ^^'■ kgl. preuss. Akademfe der W^^e' :?'"" [^"-"g^'^-'chte der lb. 462. ^ "ssenschaften z„ Berlin, Nov. ,892]. •893. edition revised ^°"'"S*°" " • ' '^-ted by H. Nettleship. Third Corpus Poetarum Latinorum edidit T„ P d Londini 4». ,06-20, text of V "•; t ,! P^'tgate, Fast. i. was printtd in ,8^ : or the iS ^ '"^"'"'''P- ^^"^ '«« XK r, • , ^ ' '"'^ '"6 introduction see p. viii 1 xxi'^t-;;"" ^'^■■"onsof Nonius Marcel.us "journl. of Phiio.og,-, Notes on Nonius, Boole i. lb. 233-2,4 Notes m Latin Lexicography. ,b 235-239. INDEX. Authority, defined, 21S ; as affect- ing conduct, 3 1 9 foil.; the njeaning of law, 233 ; authority of the church, 225; of public opinion, 228; of great men, 229; moral basis of all authority, 232 ; the conscience, 233. Beck, J. W., on Valerius Trobus, 146 w., 169;/. Caesar, as a statesman, Madvfg's judgement of, 18; as an orator, 64, 105; as a writer on grammar, 14S, 161. Carlyle, his liberalism, 220; his dislike of science, 239. Cato the elder as writer of prose, 95 ; copied by Sal lust, 107. Christianity, reason of its success, 226. Churches, their influence on morals, 225; church and state, 226; in- fluence on speculation, 228. Cicero, as a literary critic of Roman poetry, 54 ; of oratorical prose, 57; of historians, 67 ; his merits, 68 ; his principles rejected in the early empire, 72, 76, 87 ; accepted by Quintilian, 85, 114 n.\ the esti- mate of Tacitus, 88 : as a writer of prose. 103; copied by Pliny the younger, 114 ;/, Cornificius on rhetoric, 107. Declamatio, 112. Dialogus de Oratoribus, see Tacitus. Dionysius as literary critic, 48 ; borrowed from the same source as Quintilian, 80. Domitian, attitude to literature, 133. Education, classical, English views of, 1 75 ; confusion of ideas as to, 183; education in Greece and Rome, 208 ; rhetorical character, 112; prominence of Greek and Latin in modern education, 214; advantages of this, 216, 237; place of science, 238. Ennius, saturae of, 27 ; Cicero's ver- dict, 56. Examinations, merits and defects of, 180, 189. Fronto as literary critic, 91. Gracchus, C, as writer of prose, 99. Grammar, Latin, 145; recent writers upon, 146; Varro, 147; Caesar, 148; Remmius Palaemon, 149; Pliny, 150; fragments of Verrius' de Orthographia preserved by Quintilian, &c., 151 ; fragments of Pliny's Dubii Sermonis preserved by Quintilian, 158 ; the Ars Gramniatica of Remmius, 163 ; used by Quintilian, 165 ; the Silva of Probus, 169 ; later grammma- rians, 1 70 ; position of grammar in the first century A.D., 171. Greek influence on Latin literature, on the satura, 41 ; on oratory, 98, 103. 105. Horace on Lucilius, 34 ; the Satires, 268 INDEX. rr^J ' 48, 54, 70 ; his literary crit,cism.69; revolt against Varro! Juvenal rhetorical power, ,0 • an c;^t lives of; „|;da;ef^;:°^ writings on internal evidence, 121 • friendship with Martial, i.^pL' rallelsm their writings, 1 2/fX. dates proved by su?h pa^aHeL; 131. date of satire vii, i^.' bamshment, 134; .^^^^^ 3^; roundings, 135; rhetorical over- colouring. ,39 ; contrasted with Law authority of in recent times, 1-iberalism in England. Mill, Carlyle "o; Its attitude to law, 22^ ^' Library criticism in GreeceT* 46 • Dionysius, 48; in Italy, i ! scholastic tendency to cano;s,to; 84, Varro, 5,; Cicero, = . • his compansonsof literature, paining and sculpture, 55 ; his'^itiS vidual orators 61; of historians, 07, Horace, 69; Ovid, 7^ Pet ronius, 75 ; the Ciceronians of the rSontt^-'^^^^-^-! Literature, present conflict with rn^RtL-^^'^^'^^^^^^Carlyie ^'wr'it.^^'^'^ ^"' ^'' ^8 J ^^ a writer of prose, 108 ; his /Wa vimtas, 109. ^^ Lucilius. .^/'^,;.a^ ^f, 28 ; literary value,28;Horace'sjudg;men^37 Momm^n, Th.. legal training. 2 c . Morality and literature, 191 • and art. 195: and knowledife ',q" Nonius Marcellus embodies Pliny 162; andProbus, 170. ^' Oratory, identified with literary edu- cation by Cicero, 67, iqc • .nd byguintilian.77;inVe-QW n;an age and the empire, 87, Ovid, as literary critic, 73. Madvig, life, 2-4; self-taught c- -Apuleius,6;the^./.X^^ oL:fifr""'''^^'°'^^he]^o-in constitution. 15; on Caesar iS- compared with Mommsen 2; ' Martia friendshipwithjuvenal ,2V parallels in their 4ingt V/^ ^/i?^//a a^-Zaj, ii8«. Palaemon (grammarian), see Rem- Pataviuitas of Livy, 109 1 ersius, parodied by I>etronins "r • obscurity of, 114. ^"5, Petronius, literary estimate of, ,8 • his criticisms of Lucan and Per-' siiis, 75 ; contrasted with Juvenal, ^^i7o^'\' '^/rl'-"^ a grammarian, 150. hisZ;,,^;, ^Vr///^«/V parti; preserved .nQuintilian, I ^8.^ why disliked by philosoph;rs CH N praef. 28),,6,; its sources and contents, 161 ; used by NonTus and later grammarians, 162, 170 Pomponius Marcdlus, grammarian, TrobMs (Valerius, of RerytDs\ gram- "ve^bvv"'- f"'8">^n'3 pre- served byAonius, 170 i rose, development of Latin, 9,. origins, 94 ;Cato, 95 jScinio, 98; C^assu^'^^'A ^^' ^- ^'^^"'"^ ^rassus (died 91 b.c), 102- Cicero, 103; Caesar, 10 v Sal ^st,io7;Uvv-,,o8 the'^ndof Periodic prose and change to abrupt sententious style, no; rea sons for , he change.' ui; '^C, 0fa'../a;;,a//^,„ Tacitus IIS INDEX. 269 Quintilian, 55 ; as literary critic, 77; source of his criticisms on Greek writers, 79 ; compared with that of Dionysius, 80 ; his criticisms on Latin writers, 84 ; his admira- tion for Cicero, 85, 114; opinion of Sallust, 108 ; teacher of Pliny and Tacitus, ii4«. ; as a gram- marian used Verrius' de Ortho- grapliia, 152; used Pliny's Duhii Sermonis, 158 ; used Remmius Palaemon, 166. Remmius Palaemon, grammarian, 149; his Ars Grammatica, 163; partly preserved in Quintilian, 166; its contents, 168. Research contrasted with education, 173 ; divorce of the two in Eng- land, 1 74 ; results of the examina- tion system, 180; isolation of learned men in England, 182 ; reforms, 186. Rome in the first century A.D., 135 ; how far described fairly by Ju- venal, 139. . Sallust as a writer of prose, 107 ; copied Cato, 107. Satura, origin, 24; Ennius, 27; Lucilius, 28; Varro, 35 ; Horace, 36 ; Petronius, 38, 76 ; Juvenal, 38 ; general characteristics, 29 ; Greek elements, 41. Scholarship, English conceptions of. 175; at schools, 177; at Univer- sities, 178; ways of reform, 186. Schools in England, 176, 187 : sug- gested reforms in teaching scholar- ship, 186. Science, conflict with literature in the present day, 236; place in education, 237. Tacitus as a literary critic, the Dialogus, 86 ; compaied with the Brutus, 90; style of the Dialogus, 114 n.\ of his historical works, « ' Terentius Scaurus, quotes largely from Verrius, 151. Varro (Terentius), saturae of, 35, 52 ; as a literary critic, 51 ; his dc Poematis, 53; disliked by Horace, 52, 72; his grammatical treatises, 147 ; whether used by Quintilian, *5'> ^b1* 1.^9; their character, 157 ; used by Pliny, 161. Velius Longus, quotes largely from Verrius, 151. Vergil, influence on literature of the empire, 73 ; influence on Juvenal, 153; the Aeneid, 247. Verrius Flaccus, 148; part of his de Orthographia preserved by Te- rentius Scaurus, Velius Longus, and Quintilian, 151 ; character of that work, 157 ; used by Pliny, 161. th:: end OtSet (Porftfi %2 (P'^^f- (P^^^f^e^ip. -♦♦- Oxforb PRINTED AT THE CLARENDON PRESS BV HORACE HA«T. «,VT8, TO THE LSrVERS.TY Crown Svo, js. 6d. LECTURES AND ESSAYS On Subjects connected with Latin Scholarship and Literature. Svo, 2IS. CONTRIBUTIONS TO LATIN LEXICOGRAPHY. 8vo, sewed, is. THE ROMAN SATURA. Svo, sewed, 2S. ANCIENT LIVES OF VERGIL. Third Edition. Svo, 8s. 6d. PERSIUS. THE SATIRES. With a Translation and Commentary, by John Conington, M.A. Edited by Henry Nettleship, M.A. Oxford* AT THE CLARENDON PRESS LONDON: HENRY FROWDE OXrORD CSIVERSITY PRESS WAREHOUSE, AMES CORNKR, B.C. Claren^on ipress, ©yforb. SELECT LIST OF STANDARD WORKS. -¥*- STANDARD LATIN WORKS . STANDARD GREEK WORKS . MISCELLANEOUS STANDARD WORKS STANDARD THEOLOGICAL WORKS . NEW ENGLISH DICTIONARY . . Page I .. 3 » 7 „ 8 .. 8 -♦■•- 1. STANDARD LATIN WORKS. AvianuB. The Fables. Edited, with Prolegomena, Critical Appa- ratus,Commentqry,&c., by Robinson Ellis, M.A.. LL.D. 8vo. 8s. 6d. Catnlli Veronensis Liber. Iterum recognovit, Apparatum Cri- ticum Prolegomena Appendices ad- didit, R. Ellis, A.M. Svo. i6s. Catullus, a Covimentai^ on. By Robinson Ellis, M.A. Second Edition. Svo. iSs. Cicero. De Oratore Libri Tres. With Introduction and Notes. By A. S. Wilkins, Litt.D. Svo. iSs. Also, separately. Book I. 7s. 6d. Book II. 5s. Book III. 68. Philippic Orations. With Notes. By J. R. King, M.A. Second Edition. Svo. 10s. 6d. Select Letters. With English Introductions, Notes, and Appendices. By Albert Watson, M.A. Fourth Edition. Svo. iSs. Horace. With a Commentary. By E. C. Wickham, M.A. Two Vols. Vol. I. The Odes, Carmen Secu- lare, and Epodes. Second Edition. Svo. 1 2S. Vol.11. The Satires, Epistles, and De Arte Poetica. Svo. 1 2s. Juvenal. Thirteen Satires. Edited, with Introduction and Notes, by C. H. Pearson, M.A., and Herbert A. Strong, M.A., LL.D. Second Edition. Crown Svo. 9s. Livy, Book I. With Intro- duction, Historical Examination, and Notes. By Sir J. R. Seeley, M.A. Second Edition. Svo. 6s. Manilius. NoctesManilianae; site Dissertafiones in Asironomica Ma- nila. Accedunt Ckmiecturae in Ger- manici Aratea. Scripsit R. Ellis. Crown Svo. 6s. Merry. Selected Fragments of Roman Poetry. Edited, with Intro- duction and Notes, by W. W. Merry, D.D. Crown Svo. 6s. 6d. Oxford : Clarendon Press. London : Henby Fbowde, Amen Comer, E.C, n wajjSifafe. ■ ."■ivv ■«.<.:«5afc«5— ■J-..iji8 taj«*E'iCi>>c.!a»a-i!>iiit-k.i STANDARD LATIN WORKS, I Ovid. P. Ovidii I^asonis Ibis. Ex Novis Codicibus edidit, Scholia Vetera Commentarium cum Pro- legomenis Appendice Indice addidit, R. Ellis, A.M. 8vo. los. 6d. P. Ovidi Nasonis Tris- Hum Libii V. Recensuit S. G. Owen, A.M. 8vo. 1 6s. Persius. The Satires, With a Translation and Commentary. By John Conington, M.A. Edited by Henry Nettleship, M.A. Third Edition. 8vo. 8s. 6d. Plautus. Rudens. Edited, with Critical and Explanatory Notes, by E. A. Sonnenschein, M.A. 8vo. 8s. 6rf. Quintilian. Instihitionis Oratoriae Liber Decimus. A Revised Text, with Introductory Essays, Critical Notes, &c. By W. Peterson, M.A., LL.D. 8vo. 12s. 6d. Rushforth. Latin Historical Inscriptions, illustrating the History 0/ the Early Empire. By G. McN. Rushforth, M.A. 8vo. los. net. Tacitus. The Annals. Edited, with Introduction and Notes, by H. Fumeaux, M.A. 2 Vols. 8vo. Vol. I, Books I-VI. i8». Vol. II, Books XI-XVI. 20s. Be Germania. By the same Editor. 8vo. 6s. 6d. Dialogus de Oratorihus. A Revised Text, with Introductory Essays, and Critical and Explana- tory- Notes. By W. Peterson, M.A., LL.D. 8vo. I OS. 6d. Virgil. With an Introduc- Hon and Notes. By T. L. Papillon, M.A., and A. E. Haigh, M.A. 2 vols. Crown 8vo. 1 2s. King and Cookson. The Prin- ciples of Sound and Injlexion, as illus- trated in the Greek and Latin Languages. By J.E. King.M.A.,and Christopher Cookson, M.A. 8vo. i8s. ■ An Introduction to the Nettleship. Am lent Lives of Vergil. 8vo, sewed, 2s. Contributions to Latin Comparative Grammar of Greek and Latin. Crown 8vo. 5s. 6d. Lindsay. The Latin Lan- guage. An Historical Account of Latin Sounds, Stems and Flexions. By W. M. Lind.^ay, M.A. Demy Svo. 2 IS. Nettleship. Lectures and Essays on Subjects connected vrith Latin Scholarsh ipandL iterature. By Henry Nettleship, M.A, Crown Svo. 7s. 6d. The Roman Satura. 8vo, sewed, is. Lexicography. 8vo. 21s. Sellar. Roman Poets of the Augustan Age. By W. Y. Sellar, M.A. ; viz. I. Virgil. Xew Edition. Crown Svo. 9s. II. Horace and the Elegiac Poets. With a Memoir of the Author by Andrew Lang, M.A., and a Portrait. Svo. 14&. Roman Poets of the Re- public. Third Edition. Crown Svo. io«. Wordsworth. Fragments and Specimens of Early Latin. With Intro- ductions and Notes. By J. Words- worth, D.D. Svo. 1 8s. STANDARD GREEK WORKS. 2. STANDARD Allen. J^oies on Abbrevia- tions in Greek Manuscripts. By T. W. Allen. Royal Svo. 5s. Chandler. A Practical IntrO' duction to Greek Accentuation, by H. W. Chandler, M.A. Second Edition. I OS. 6rf. Haigh. The Attic Theatre. A Description of the Stage and Theatre of the Athenians, and of the Dramatic Performances at Athens. By A. E. Haigh, M.A. Svo. I2S. 6d. Head. Historia Numorum: A Manual of Greek Numismatics. By Barclay V. Head. Royal Svo, half-bound, 2/. 2s. Hicks. A Manual of Greek HtstoHcfd In^it COLUMBIA UNIVERSITY STANDARD THEOLOGICAL WORKS. 4. STANDARD THEOLOGICAL WORKS. St. Basil: The Book of St. Basil on the Holy Spirit. A Revised Text, with Notes and Introduction by C, F. H. Johnston, M.A. Crown 8vo. 7s, 6rf. Bigg. The Christian Platonist 8 of Alexandria ; being the Bampton Lectures for 1 886, By Charles Bigg, D.D. 8vo. ios.6d. Bright. Chapters of Early English Church History. By W. Bright, D.D. Second Edition. 8vo. i as. Canons of the First Four General Councils of Nicaea, Con' starUinople, Ephesus, and Chalcedon. With Notes, by W. Bright, D D. Seco^id Edition. Crown 8vo. 7s. 6rf. The Book of Enoch. Trans- latedfrom Dillmann'sEthiopicText (emended and revised), and Edited by R. H. Charles, M.A. 8vo. 16s. Hatch and Redpath. A Con- cordance to the Greek Versions and Apocryphal Books of the Old Testament. By the late Edwin Hatch, M. A., and H. A. Redpath, M.A. Parts I-IV. A-MTPEH'IKOS. Imperial 4to. a is. each. Part V. In the I^ess. Studia Biblica et Ecclesias- tica. Essays in Biblical and PatiUtic Ctiticism, and kifidred subjects. By Members of the University of Oxford. Svo. Vol. I. I OS. 6d. Vol. II. I as. 6d. Vol. III. i6s. Vol. IV. In the Prtsi, 5. A NEW ENGLISH DICTIONARY on Historical Prin- ciples, founded mainly on the materials collected by the Philo- logical Society. Imperial 4to. Present State of the Work. A ) \ Edited by Dr. Murray C Edited by Dr. Murray Vol. I. Vol. II. Vol III. Vol. IV. D Edited by Dr. Murray E Edited by Henry Bradley P Edited by Henry Bradley Q To be edited by Henry Bradley. H To be edited by Dr. Murray. £ s. Half-morocco a i a d. 6 2 12 { D Half-morocco -Deceit ...03 Deceit-Deject . o 3 E-Every . . .013 Everybody-Ezod o ^ P-Pang . . . o a Panged- Fee ..03 In Preparation. 6 6 6 6 o 6 6 AT THE CLARENDON PRESS LONDON: HENRY FROWDE OXFORD UNIVERSITY PRESS WAREHOUSE, AMEN CORNER, E.C. f • » Nil i^','« 'J \ Vv COLUMBIA UNIVERSITY LBRARlES m 6L MAI^ 61986. oEcao 610.4 hS&\ N